Skip to main content

Full text of "Myths And Mythmakers Old Tales And Superstitions Interpreted By Comparative Mythology"

See other formats


TEXT CUT BOOK 



291 
Fiske 



and myth makers 





1148 00256 6826 



TEXT CUT BOOK 



MYTHS ANE> 
MAKERS 



OLD TALES AND SUPERSTITIONS 
INTERPRETED BY COMPAR- 
ATIVE MYTHOLOGY 

BY 

JOHN FISKE 

La mythologie, cette science toute nouvelle, qul nous fait sulvre les croy- 
ances de nos pcrcs, depuis le berceau du monde jusqu'aux superstitions de noa 
campagnes. EDMOND SCHERER. 




BOSTON AND ijjgtf ,^ 
HOUGHTON MIFFL1N COMPANY 



COPYRIGHT 1872 BY JAMES R. OSGOOD & CO. 

COPYRIGHT 1900 BY JOHN PISKE 

COPYRIGHT 1902 BY HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN & CO. 

ALL RIGHTS RESERVED 



TO MY DEAR FRIEND 

WILLIAM DEAN HOWELLS 

IN REMEMBRANCE OP PLEASANT AUTUMN 

EVENINGS SPENT AMONG WEREWOLVES 

AND TROLLS AND NIXIES 

31 ticbfcate 
THIS RECORD OF OUR ADVENTURES 



PREFACE 

IN publishing this somewhat Gambling and 
unsystematic series of papers, in which I 
have endeavoured to touch briefly upon a 
great many of the most important points in the 
study of mythology, I think it right to observe 
that, in order to avoid confusing the reader with 
intricate discussions, I have sometimes cut the 
matter short., expressing myself with dogmatic 
definiteness where a sceptical vagueness might 
perhaps have seemed more becoming. In treat- 
ing of popular legends and superstitions, the 
paths of inquiry are circuitous enough, and sel- 
dom can we reach a satisfactory conclusion until 
we have travelled all the way around Robin 
Hood's barn and back again. I am sure that 
the reader would not have thanked me for ob- 
structing these crooked lanes with the thorns 
and brambles of philological and antiquarian 
discussion, to such an extent as perhaps to 
make him despair of ever reaching the high 
road. I have not attempted to review, other* 
wise than incidentally, the works of Grimm* 
Muller, Kuhn, Breal, Dasent, and Tylor ; 0or 
vii 



PREFACE 

can I pretend to have added anything of con- 
sequence, save now and then some bit of ex- 
planatory comment, to the results obtained by 
the labour of these scholars ; but it has rather 
been my aim to present these results in such a 
way as to awaken general interest in them. And 
accordingly, in dealing with a subject which de- 
pends upon philology almost as much as astro- 
nomy depends upon mathematics, I have omitted 
philological considerations wherever it has been 
possible to do so. Nevertheless, I believe that 
nothing has been advanced as established which 
is not now generally admitted by scholars, and 
that nothing has been advanced as probable for 
which due evidence cannot be produced. Yet 
among many points which are proved, and 
many others which are probable, there must 
always remain many other facts of which we 
cannot feel sure that our own explanation is the 
true one ; and the student who endeavours to 
fathom the primitive thoughts of mankind, as 
enshrined in mythology, will do well to bear in 
mind the modest words of Jacob Grimm, 
himself the greatest scholar and thinker who 
has ever dealt with this class of subjects, c< I 
shall indeed interpret all that I can, but 1 can- 
not interpret all that I should like." 
PETERSHAM, September 6, 1872* 



CONTENTS 

PAGE 

I. THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE ... X 

II. THE DESCENT OF FIRE* . . 50 

III. WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS . . 94 

IV. LIGHT AND DARKNESS ... 141 
V. MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD . . -rgi 

VI. JUVENTUS MUNDI 2135 

VII. THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD . . a8 

NOTE ....... 3*5 

INDEX ....... 327 

The portrait of Dr. Fiake is from a photograph taken in 1883 



MYTHS AND MYTH- 
MAKERS 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

FEW mediaeval heroes are sp widely known 
as William Tell. His exploits have been 
jcelebrated by one of the greatest poets 
and one of the most popular musicians of mod- 
ern times. They are .doubtless familiar to many 
who have never heard of Stamffaeher or Winkei- 
ried, who are quite ignorant pf the prowcos of 
Roland, and to whom Arthur and Lancelot, 
nay, even Charlem&gtie, are but empty names. 
Nevertheless, in $pite of his vast reputation, 
it .is very likely that up such person as William 
Tell ever existed, Mid it is certain that the story 
of his shooting the apple from his son's head has 
no historical value whatever* In spite of the 
wrath of unlear&ed but patriotic Swiss, especially 
of those of the ncerme clam, this conclusion is 
forced upon ms as soo us we begin to study the 
legend in accordance* with the eaooas of modern 
. It is 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Tell's lime-tree, standing to-day in the centre of 
the market-place at Altdorf, or to quote for our 
confusion his crossbow preserved in the arsenal 
at Zurich, as unimpeachable witnesses to the 
truth of the story. It is in vain that we are told, 
cc The bricks are alive to this day to testify to 
it; therefore, deny it not." These proofs are 
not more valid than the handkerchief of St. 
Veronica, or the fragments of the true cross. 
For if relics are to be received as evidence, we 
must needs admit the truth of every miracle 
narrated by the Bollandists. 

The earliest work which makes any allusion 
to the adventures of William Tell is the chroni- 
cle of the younger Melchior Russ, written in 
1482. As the shooting of the apple was sup- 
posed to have taken place in 1296, this leaves 
an interval of one hundred and eighty-six years, 
during which neither a Tell, nor a William, nor 
the apple, nor the cruelty of Gessler, received 
any mention. It may also be observed, paren- 
thetically, that the charters of Kxissenach, when 
examined, show that no man by the name of 
Gessler ever ruled there. The chroniclers of the 
fifteenth century, Faber and Hammerlin, who 
minutely describe the tyrannical acts by which 
the Duke of Austria goaded the Swiss to re- 
bellion, do not once mention Tell's name, or 
betray the slightest acquaintance with his exploits 
or with his existence. In the Zurich chronicle 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

of 1479 he is not alluded to. But we have still 
better negative evidence. John of Winterthiir, 
one of the best chroniclers of the Middle Ages, 
was living at the time of the battle of Morgarten 
(i3 x 5)> a t which his father was present. He 
tells us how, on the evening of that dreadful 
day, he saw Duke Leopold himself in his flight 
from the fatal field, half dead with fear. He 
describes, with the loving minuteness of a con- 
temporary, all the incidents of the Swiss revo- 
lution, but nowhere does he say a word about 
William Tell. This is sufficiently conclusive. 
These mediaeval chroniclers, who never failed to 
go out of their way after a bit of the epigram- 
matic and marvellous, who thought far more 
of a pointed story than of historical credibility, 
would never have kept silent about the adven- 
tures of Tell if they had known anything about 
them. 

After this, it is not surprising to find that no 
two authors who describe the deeds of William 
Tell agree in the details of topography and 
chronology. Such discrepancies never fail to 
confront us when we leave the solid ground of 
history and begin to deal with floating legends. 
Yet, if the story be not historical, what could 
have been its origin ? To answer this question 
we must considerably expand the discussion. 

The first author of any celebrity who doubted 
the story of William Tell was Guillimatm, in 

3 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

his work on Swiss Antiquities, published in 
1598. He calls the story a pure fable, but, 
nevertheless, eating his words, concludes by 
proclaiming his belief in it, because the tale is 
so popular ! Undoubtedly he acted a wise part ; 
for, in 1760, as we are told, Uriel Freuden- 
berger was condemned by the canton of Uri to 
be burnt alive, for publishing his opinion that 
the legend of Tell had a Danish origin. 1 

The bold heretic was substantially right, how- 
ever, like so many other heretics, earlier and 
later. The Danish account of Tell is given as 
follows, by Saxo Grammaticus : 

" A certain Palnatoki, for some time among 
King Harold's body-guard, had made his brav- 
ery odious to very many of his fellow soldiers 
by the zeal with which he surpassed them in the 
discharge of his duty. This man once, when 
talking tipsily over his cups, had boasted that 
he was so skilled an archer that he could hit the 
smallest apple placed a long way off on a wand 
at the first shot ; which talk, caught up at first 
by the e&rs of backbiters, soon came to the 
hearing of the king. Now, mark how the wick- 
edness of the king turned the confidence of the 
sire to the peril of the son, by commanding that 
this dearest pledge of his life should be placed 
instead of the wand, with the threat that, unless 
the author of this promise could strike off the 
1 See Delepierre, Historical Difficulties* p. 75. 

4 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

apple at the first flight of the arrow, he should 
pay the penalty of his empty boasting by the 
loss of his head. The king's command forced 
the soldier to perform more than he had pro- 
mised, and what he had said, reported by the 
tongues of slanderers, bound him to accomplish 
what he had not said. Yet did not his sterling 
courage, though caught in the snare of slander, 
suffer him to lay aside his firmness of heart; 
nay, he accepted the trial the more readily 
because it was hard. So Palnatoki warned the 
boy urgently when he took his stand to await 
the coming of the hurtling arrow with calm ears 
and unbent head, lest, by a slight turn of his 
body, he should defeat the practised skill of the 
bowman ; and, taking further counsel to pre- 
vent his fear, he turned away his face, lest he 
should be scared at the sight of the weapon. 
Then, taking three arrows from the quiver, he 
struck the mark given him with the first he 
fitted to the string. . . . But Palnatoki, when 
asked by the king why he had taken more 
arrows from the quiver, when it had been settled 
that he should only try the fortune of the bow 
once> made answer, c That I might avenge on 
thee the swerving of the first by the points of 
the rest, lest perchance my innocence might 
have been punished, while your violence escaped 
scot-free/ " * 

1 Saxo Grtmmaticus, bL x, p. 166, ed. FranW, 1576* 

5 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

This ruthless king is none other than the 
famous Harold Blue-tooth, and the occurrence 
is placed by Saxo in the year 950. But the 
story appears not only in Denmark, but in 
England, in Norway, in Finland and Russia, 
and in Persia, and there is some reason for sup- 
posing that it was known in India. In Norway 
we have the adventures of Pansa the Splay- 
footed, and of Hemingr, a vassal of Harold 
Hardrada, who invaded England in 1066. In 
Iceland there is the kindred legend of Egil, 
brother of Wayland Smith, the Norse Vulcan, 
In England there is the ballad of William of 
Cloudeslee, which supplied Scott with many 
details of the archery scene in " Ivanhoe." 
Here says the dauntless bowman, 

" I have a sonne seven years old; 

Hee is to me full deere; 
I will tye him to a stake 

All shall see him that bee here 
And lay an apple upon his head, , 

And goe six paces him froe, 
And I myself with a broad arrowe 

Shall cleave the apple in towe.** 

In the <c Malleus Maleficarum " a similar 
story is told of Puncher, a famous magician on 
the Upper Rhine. The great ethnologist Cas- 
tren dug up the same legend in Finland* It is 
common, as Dr. Dasent observes, to the Turks 
and Mongolians ; " and a legend of the wild 

6 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

Samoyeds, who never heard of Tell or saw a 
book in their lives, relates it, chapter and verse, 
of one of their marksmen." Finally, in the 
Persian poem of Farid-Uddin Attar, born in 
1 1 1 9, we read a story of a prince who shoots an 
apple from the head of a beloved page. In all 
these stones, names and motives of course dif- 
fer ; but all contain the same essential incidents. 
It is always an unerring archer who, at the ca 
pricious command of a tyrant, shoots from the 
head of some one dear to him a small object, be 
it an apple, a nut, or a piece of coin* The archer 
always provides himself with a second arrow, 
and, when questioned as to the use he intended 
to make of his extra weapon, the invariable re- 
ply is, " To kill thee, tyrant, had I slain my 
son/' Now, when a marvellous occurrence is 
said to have happened everywhere, we may feel 
sure that it never happened anywhere. Popular 
fancies propagate themselves indefinitely, but 
historical events, especially the striking and dra- 
matic ones, are rarely repeated. The facts here 
collected lead inevitably to the conclusion that 
the Tell myth was known, in its general features, 
to our Aryan ancestors, before ever they left 
their primitive dwelling-place in Central Asia. 

It may, indeed, be urged that some one of 
these wonderful marksmen may really have ex- 
isted and have performed the feat recorded in 
the legend; and that his true story, carried 

7 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

about by hearsay tradition from one country to 
another and from age to age, may have formed 
the theme for all the variations above men- 
tioned, just as the fables of La Fontaine were 
patterned after those of ^Esop and Phsedrus, 
and just as many of Chaucer's tales were con- 
sciously adopted from Boccaccio. No doubt 
there has been a good deal of borrowing and 
lending among the legends of different peoples, 
as well as among the words of different lan- 
guages ; and possibly even some picturesque 
fragment of early history may have now and 
then been carried about the world in this man- 
ner. But as the philologist can with almost un- 
erring certainty distinguish between the native 
and the imported words in any Aryan language, 
by examining their phonetic peculiarities, so the 
student of popular traditions, though working 
with far less perfect instruments, can safely as- 
sert, with reference to a vast number of legends, 
that they cannot have been obtained by any 
process of conscious borrowing. The difficul- 
ties inseparable from any such hypothesis will 
become more and more apparent as we proceed 
to examine a few other stories current in differ- 
ent portions of the Aryan domain. 

As the Swiss must give up his Tell, so must 
the Welshman be deprived of his brave dog 
Gellert, over whose cruel fate I confess to hav- 
ing shed more tears than I should regard as 

8 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

\ 

well bestowed upon the misfortunes of many a 
human h^ro of romance. Every one knows how 
the dear old brute killed the wolf which had 
come to devour Llewellyn's child, and how the 
prince, returning home and finding the cradle 
upset and the dog's mouth dripping blood, 
hastily slew his benefactor, before the cry of the 
child from behind the cradle and the sight of 
the wolf's body had rectified his error. To this 
day the visitor to Snowdon is told the touching 
story, and shown the place called Beth-Gellert, 1 
where the dog's grave is still to be seen. Never- 
theless, the story occurs in the fireside lore of 
nearly every Aryan people. Under the Gellert- 
form it started in the Panchatantra, a collec- 
tion of Sanskrit fables ; and it has even been 
discovered in a Chinese work which dates from 
A. D, 668. Usually the hero is a dog, but 
sometimes a falcon, an ichneumon, an insect, or 
even a man. In Egypt it takes the following 
comical shape : " A Wall once smashed a pot 
full of herbs which a cook had prepared. The 
exasperated cook thrashed the well-intentioned 
but unfortunate Wall within an inch of his life, 
and when he returned, exhausted with his ef- 
forts at belabouring the man, to examine the 

1 According to Mr. Isaac Taylor, the name is really de- 
rived from ** St. Celert, a Welsh saint of the fifth century, to 
whom the church of LlangeUer is consecrated. ' * ( Words mi 
p. 339,) 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

broken pot, he discovered amongst the herbs a 
poisonous snake/' * Now this story of the Wali 
is as manifestly identical with the legend of 
Gellert as the English word father is with the 
Latin pater ; but as no one would maintain that 
the word father is in any sense derived from 
pater, so it would be impossible to represent 
either the Welsh or the Egyptian legend as a 
copy of the other. Obviously the conclusion is 
forced upon us that the stories, like the words, 
are related collaterally, having descended from 
a common ancestral legend, or having been sug- 
gested by one and the same primeval idea. 

Closely connected with the Gellert myth are 
the stories of Faithful John and of Rama and 
Luxman. In the German story. Faithful John 
accompanies the prince, his master, on a journey 
in quest of a beautiful maiden, whom he wishes 
to make his bride. As they are carrying her 
home across the seas, Faithful John hears some 
crows, whose language he understands, fore- 
telling three dangers impending over the prince, 
from which his friend can save him only by 
sacrificing his own life. As soon as they land, 

1 Compare Krilof 's story of the Gnat and the Shepherd* 
in Mr. Ralston' s excellent version* Krilof anJ Ms Falhs, 
p. 170. Many parallel examples are cited by Mr. Baring- 
Gould, Curious Myths* vol. L pp. 126-136. See, also, the 
story of Folliculus, Swan, Gesta Romanorum, ed. Wright, 
voL L p. IxxxiL 

IO 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

a horse will spring toward the king, which, if 
he mounts it, will bear him away from his bride 
forever ; but whoever shoots the horse, and 
tells the king the reason, will be turned into 
stone from toe to knee. Then, before the wed- 
ding a bridal garment will lie before the king, 
which, if he puts it on, will burn him like the 
Nessos shirt of Herakles ; but whoever throws 
the shirt into the fire and tells the king the reason 
will be turned into stone from knee to heart. 
Finally, during the wedding festivities, the 
queen will suddenly fall in a swoon, and "un- 
less some one takes three drops of blood from 
her right breast she will die ; " but whoever 
does so, and tells the king the reason, will be 
turned into stone from head to foot. Thus fore- 
warned, Faithful John saves his master from all 
these dangers ; but the king misinterprets his 
motive in bleeding his wife, and orders him to 
be hanged. On the scaffold he tells his story, 
and while the king humbles himself in an agony 
of remorse, his noble friend is turned into stone. 
In the South Indian tale Luxman accom- 
panies Rama, who is carrying home his bride. 
Luxman overhears two owls talking about 
the perils that await his master and mistress. 
First he saves them from being crushed by the 
falling limb of a banyan-tree, and then he drags 
them away from an arch which immediately 
after gives way. By and by, as they rest under 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

a tree, the king falls asleep. A cobra creeps 
up to the queen, and Luxman kills it with his 
sword ; but, as the owls had foretold, a drop 
of the cobra's blood falls on the queen's fore- 
head. As Luxman licks off the blood, the king 
starts up, and, thinking that his vizier is kissing 
his wife, upbraids him with his ingratitude, 
whereupon Luxman, through grief at this un- 
kind interpretation of his conduct, is turned 
into stone. 1 

For further illustration we may refer to thei 
Norse tale of the "Giant who had.no Heart in 
his Body," as related by Dr. Dasent. This 
burly magician having turned six brothers with 
their wives into stone, the seventh brother 
the crafty Boots or many-witted Odysseus of 
European folk-lore sets out to obtain ven- 
geance if not reparation for the evil done to his 
kith and kin. On the way he shows the kind- 
ness of his nature by rescuing from destruction 
a raven, a salmon, and a wolf The grateful 
wolf carries him on his back to the giant's 
castle, where the lovely princess whom the 
monster keeps in irksome bondage promises to 
act, in behalf of Boots, the part of Delilah, and 
to find out, if possible, where her lord keeps 
his heart The giant, like the Jewish hero, 
finally succumbs to feminine blandishments- 

1 See Cox, Mythology of the Aryan Nations, vol. L pp. 
145^149. 

12 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

" Far, far away in a lake lies an island ; on that 
island stands a church ; in that church is a well ; 
in that well swims a duck ; in that duck there 
is an egg ; and in that egg there lies my heart, 
you darling/' Boots, thus instructed, rides on 
the wolf's back to the island ; the raven flies to 
the top of the steeple and gets the church keys ; 
the salmon dives to the bottom of the well, and 
brings up the egg from the place where the 
duck had dropped it ; and so Boots becomes 
master of the situation. As he squeezes the 
egg, the giant, in mortal terror, begs and prays 
for his life, which Boots promises to spare on 
condition that his brothers and their brides 
should be released from their enchantment. 
But when all has been duly effected, the treach- 
erous youth squeezes the egg in two, and the 
giant instantly bursts. 

- The same story has lately been found in 
Southern India, and is published in Miss Frere's 
remarkable collection of tales entitled cc Old 
Deccan Days." In the Hindu version the seven 
daughters of a rajah, with their husbands, are 
transformed into stone by the great magician 
Punchkin, all save the youngest daughter, 
whom Punchkin keeps shut up in a tower until 
by threats or coaxing he may prevail upon her 
to marry him. But the captive princess leaves 
a son at home in the cradle, who grows up to 
manhood unmolested, and finally undertakes 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the rescue of his family. After long and weary 
wanderings he finds his mother shut up in 
Punchkin's tower, and persuades her to play 
the part of the princess in the Norse legend. 
The trick is equally successful. <c Hundreds of 
thousands of miles away there lies a desolate 
country covered with thick jungle. In the 
midst of the jungle grows a circle of palm-trees, 
and in the centre of the circle stand six jars full 
of water, piled* one above another; below the 
sixth jar is a small cage which contains a little 
green parrot ; on the life of the parrot depends 
my life, and if the parrot is killed I must die." l 
The young prince finds the place guarded by a 
host of dragons, but some eaglets whom he has 
saved from a devouring serpent in the course 
of his journey take him on their crossed wings 
and carry him to the place where the jars are 
standing. He instantly overturns the jars, and 

i The same incident occurs in the Arabian story of Seyf- 
el-Mulook and Bedeea-el-Jemal, where the Jinni's soul is in- 
closed in the crop of a sparrbw, and the sparrow imprisoned 
in a small box, and this inclosed in another small box, and 
this again in seven other boxes, which are put into seven 
chests, contained in a coffer of marble, which is sunk in the 
ocean that surrounds the world. Seyf-el-Mulook raises the 
coffer by the aid of Suley man's seal-ring, and having extri- 
cated the sparrow, strangles it, whereupon the Jinni's body 
is converted into a heap of black ashes, and Seyf-el-Mulook 
escapes with the maiden D61et~Khatoon. See Lane*a 
Arabian Nights, vol. iiL p. 316. 

14 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

seizing the parrot, obtains from the terrified 
magician full reparation. As soon as his own 
friends and a stately procession of other royal 
or noble victims have been set at liberty, he 
proceeds to pull the parrot to pieces. As the 
wings and legs come away, so tumble off the 
arms and legs of the magician ; and finally as 
the prince wrings the bird's neck, Punchkin 
twists his own head round and dies. 

The story is also told in the highlands of 
Scotland, and some portions of it will be recog- 
nized by the reader as incidents in the Arabian 
tale of the Princess Parizade. The union of 
close correspondence in conception with mani- 
fest independence in the management of the 
details of these stories is striking enough, but 
it is a phenomenon with which we become 
quite familiar as we proceed in the study of 
Aryan popular literature. The legend of the 
Master Thief is no less remarkable than that 
of Punchkin. In the Scandinavian tale the 
Thief, wishing to get possession of a farmer's 
ox, carefully hangs himself to a tree by the 
roadside. The farmer, passing by with his ox, 
is indeed struck by the sight of the dangling 
body, but thinks it none of his business, and 
does not stop to interfere. No sooner has he 
passed than the Thief lets himself down, and 
running swiftly along a by-path, hangs himself 
with equal precaution to a second tree. This 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

time the farmer is astonished and puzzled ; but 
when for the third time he meets the same 
unwonted spectacle, thinking that three suicides 
in one morning are too much for easy credence, 
he leaves his ox and runs back to see whether 
the other two bodies are really where he thought 
he saw them. While he is framing hypotheses 
of witchcraft by which to explain the phenom- 
enon, the Thief gets away with the ox. In the 
Hitopadesa the story receives a finer point. 
" A Brahman, who had vowed a sacrifice, went 
to the market to buy a goat. Three thieves saw 
him, and wanted to get hold of the goat. They 
stationed themselves at intervals on the high- 
road. When the Brahman, who carried the 
goat on his back, approached the first thief, the 
thief said, c Brahman, why do you carry a dog 
on your back ? ' The Brahman replied, c It is 
not a dog, it is a goat/ A little while after he 
was accosted by the second thief, who said, 
* Brahman, why do you carry a dog on your 
back ? ' The Brahman felt perplexed, put the 
goat down, examined it, took it up again, and 
walked on. Soon after he was stopped by the 
third thief, who said, * Brahman, why do you 
carry a dog on your back ? ' Then the Brah- 
man was frightened, threw down the goat, and 
walked home to perform his ablutions for hav- 
ing touched an unclean animal. The thieves 
took the goat and ate it." The adroitness of 

16 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

the Norse king in cc The Three Princesses of 
Whiteland " shows but poorly in comparison 
with the keen psychological insight and cynical 
sarcasm of these Hindu sharpers. In the course 
of his travels this prince met three brothers 
fighting * on a lonely moor. They had been 
fighting for a hundred years about the posses- 
sion of a hat, a cloak, and a pair of boots, which 
would make the wearer invisible, and convey 
him instantly whithersoever he might wish to 
go. The king consents to act as umpire, pro- 
vided he may once try the virtue of the magic 
garments ; but once clothed in them, of course 
he disappears, leaving the combatants to sit 
down and suck their thumbs. Now in the " Sea 
of Streams of Story," written in the twelfth 
century by Somadeva of Cashmere, the In- 
dian king Putraka, wandering in the Vindhya 
Mountains, similarly discomfits two brothers 
who are quarrelling over a pair of shoes, which 
are like the sandals of Hermes, and a bowl 
which has the same virtue as Aladdin's lamp. 
" Why don't you run a race for them ? *' sug- 
gests Putraka ; and, as the two blockheads start 
furiously off, he quietly picks up the bowl, ties 
on the shoes, and flies away 1 * 

It is unnecessary to cite further illustrations. 
The tales here quoted are fair samples of the 

1 The same incident is repeated in the story of Hassan of 
El-Basrah. Sec Lane's Arabian Nighty vol. Hi. p. 452. 

17 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

remarkable correspondence which holds good 
through all the various sections of Aryan folk- 
lore. The hypothesis of lateral diffusion, as we 
may call it, manifestly fails to explain coinci- 
dences which are maintained on such an im- 
mense scale* It is quite credible that one nation 
may have borrowed from another a solitary 
legend of an archer who performs the feats of 
Tell and Palnatoki ; but it is utterly incredible 
that ten thousand stories, constituting the en- 
tire mass of household mythology throughout 
a dozen separate nations, should have been 
handed from one to another in this way. No 
one would venture to suggest that the old gran- 
nies of Iceland and Norway, to whom we owe 
such stories as the Master Thief and the Prin- 
cesses of Whiteland, had ever read Somadeva 
or heard of the treasures of Rhampsinitos. A 
large proportion of the tales with which we are 
dealing were utterly unknown to literature until 
they were taken down by Grimm and Frere and 
Castren and Campbell, from the lips of ignorant 
peasants, nurses, or house-servants, in Germany 
and Hindustan, in Siberia and Scotland. Yet, 
as Mr. Cox observes, these old men and women, 
sitting by the chimney corner and somewhat 
timidly recounting to the literary explorer the 
stories which they had learned in childhood 
from their own nurses and grandmas, f repro- 
duce the most subtle turns of thought and 

18 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

expression, and an endless series of complicated 
narratives, in which the order of incidents and 
the words of the speakers are preserved with a 
fidelity nowhere paralleled in the oral tradition 
of historical events. It may safely be said that 
no series of stories introduced in the form of 
translations from other languages could ever thus 
have filtered down into the lowest strata of 
society, and thence have sprung up again, like 
Antaios, with greater energy and heightened 
beauty/' There is indeed no alternative for us 
but to admit that these fireside tales have been 
handed down from parent to child for more than 
a hundred generations; that the primitive Aryan 
cottager, as he took his evening meal of yava 
and sipped his fermented mead, listened with 
his children to the stories of Boots and Cinder- 
ella and the Master Thief, in the days when the 
squat Laplander was master of Europe and the 
dark-skinned Sudra was as yet unmolested in 
the Punjab, Only such community of origin 
can explain the community in character between 
the stories told by the Aryan's descendants, 
from the jungles of Ceylon to the highlands of 
Scotland. . 

This conclusion essentially modifies our view 
of the origin and growth of a legend like that 
of William Tell. The case of the Tell legend 
is radically different from the case of the blind- 
ness of Belisarius or the burning of the Alexan* 

19 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

drian library by order of Omar. The latter are 
isolated stories or beliefs ; the former is one of 
a family of stories or beliefs. The latter are un- 
trustworthy traditions of doubtful events ; but 
in dealing with the former, we are face to face 
with a myth. 

What, then, is a myth ? The theory of Euhe- 
meros, which was so fashionable a century ago, 
in the days of the Abbe Banier, has long since 
been so utterly abandoned that to refute it now 
is but to slay the slain. The peculiarity of this 
theory was that it cut away all the extraordi- 
nary features of a given myth, wherein dwelt 
its inmost significance, and to the dull and use- 
less residuum accorded the dignity of primeval 
history. In this way the myth was lost without 
compensation, and the student, in seeking good 
digestible bread, found but the hardest of peb- 
bles. Considered merely as a pretty story, the 
legend of the golden fruit watched by the dragon 
in the garden of the Hesperides is not without 
its value. But what merit can there be in the 
gratuitous statement which, degrading the grand 
Doric hero to a level with any "vulgar fruit- 
stealer, makes Herakles break a close with force 
and arms, and carry off a crop of oranges which 
had been guarded by mastiffs ? It is still worse 
when we come to the more homely folk-lore 
with which the student of mythology now has 
to deal. The theories of 'Banier, which limped 

20 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

and stumbled awkwardly enough when it was 
only a question of Hermes and Minos and 
Odin, have fallen never to rise again since the 
problems of Punchkin and Cinderella and the 
Blue Belt have begun to demand solution. 
The conclusion has been gradually forced upon 
the student that the marvellous portion of these 
old stories is no illegitimate excrescence, but 
was rather the pith and centre of the whole/ in 
days when there was no supernatural, because 
it had not yet been discovered that there was 
such a thing as nature. The religious myths of 
antiquity and the fireside legends of ancient and 
modern times have their common root in the 
mental habits of primeval humanity. T-hy'are 
the earliest recorded utterances of men concern- 
ing the visible phenomena of the world into 
which they were born. 

TThat prosaic and coldly rational temper with 
whicH 'modern men are wont to regard natural 
phenomena was in early times unknown. We 
have come to regard all events as taking place 
regularly, in strict conformity to law ; what- 
ever our official theories may be, we instinctively 
take this view of things. But our primitive 
ancestors knew nothing about laws of nature, 
nothing about physical forces, nothing about the 
relations of cause and effect, nothing about the 

1 ** Retrancher le merveilleux; d*un my the, c'est le sup- 
primer,** Bred, Hercnk et Cams> p 50. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

necessary regularity of things. There was a time 
in the history of mankind when these things 
had never been inquired into, and when no gen- 
eralizations about them had been framed, tested, 
or established. There was no conception of an 
order of nature, and therefore no distinct con- 
ception of a supernatural order of things. There 
was no belief in miracles as infractions of natural 
laws, but there was a belief in the occurrence 
of wonderful events too mighty to have been 
brought about by ordinary means. There was an 
unlimited capacity for believing and fancying, 
because fancy and belief had not yet been checked 
and headed off in various directions by estab- 
lished rules of experience. Physical science is a 
very late acquisition of the human mind, but 
we are already sufficiently imbued with it to be 
almost completely disabled from comprehending 
the thoughts of our ancestors. " How Finn 
cosmogonists could have believed the earth and 
heaven to be made out of a severed egg, the 
upper concave shell representing heaven, the 
yolk being earth, and the crystal surrounding 
fluid the circumambient ocean, is to us incom- 
prehensible ; and yet It remains a fact that they 
did so regard them. How the Scandinavians 
could have supposed the mountains to be the 
mouldering bones of a mighty Jotun, and the 
earth to be his festering flesh, we cannot con- 
ceive ; yet such a theory was solemnly taught 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

and accepted. How the ancient Indians could 
regard the rain-clouds as cows with full udders 
milked by the winds of heaven is beyond our 
comprehension, and yet their Veda contains in- 
disputable testimony to the fact that they were 
so regarded.' 1 ^ We have only to read Mr. Bar- 
ing-Gould's book of " Curious Myths/' from 
which I have just quoted, or to dip into Mr. 
Thorpe's treatise on cc Northern Mythology," 
to realize how vast is the difference between our 
standpoint and that from which, in the later 
Middle Agesi" our immediate forefathers re- 
garded things. | The frightful superstition of 
werewolves is a good instance. In those days 
it was firmly believed that men could be, and 
were in the habit of being, transformed into 
wolves. It was believed that women might 
bring forth snakes or poodle-dogs. It was 
believed that if a man had his side pierced in 
battle, you could cure hiiii by nursing the sword 
which inflicted the wound. "As late as 1600 
a German writer would illustrate a thunder- 
storm destroying a crop of corn by a picture of 
a dragon devouring the produce of the field with 
his flaming tongue and iron teeth." 

Now if such was the condition of the human 
intellect only three or four centuries ago, what 
must it have been in that dark antiquity when 
not even the crudest generalizations of Greek 
or of Oriental science had been reached ? The 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

same mighty power of imagination which now, 
restrained and guided by scientific principles, 
leads us to discoveries and inventions, must 
then have wildly run riot in mythologic fictions 
whereby to explain the phenomena of nature. 
Knowing nothing whatever of physical forces, 
of the blind steadiness with which a given effect 
invariably follows its cause, the men of prime- 
val antiquity could interpret the actions of na- 
ture only after the analogy of their own actions. 
The only force they knew was the force of 
which they were directly conscious, the force 
of will. Accordingly, they imagined all the out- 
ward world to be endowed with volition, and to 
be directed by it. T^hey personified everything, 
sky, clouds, thunHer, sunT" moon, ocean, 
earthquake, whirlwind. 1 The comparatively en- 
lightened Athenians of the age of Perikles 
addressed the sky as a person, and prayed to 
it to rain upon their gardens. 2 And for calling 

* * e No distinction between the animate and inanimate is 
made in the languages of the Esquimaux, the Choctaws, 
the Muskoghee, and the Caddo. Only the Iroquois, Chero- 
kee, and the Algonquin-Lenape have it, so far as is known, 
and with them it is partial." According to the Fijians, 
"vegetables and stones, nay, even tools and weapons, pots 
and canoes, have souls that are immortal, and that, like the 
souls of men, pass on at last to Mbulu* the abode of departed 
spirits." M'Lennan, ** The Worship of Animals and 
Plants," Fortnightly Rwiew, voL :ni. p, 416. 

3 Marcus Aurelius, v, 7. 

24 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

the moon a mass of dead matter, Anaxagoras 
came near losing his life. To the ancients the 
moon was not a lifeless ball of stones and clods : 
it was the horned huntress, Artemis, coursing 
through the upper ether, or bathing herself in 
the clear lake ; or it was Aphrodite, protectress 
of lovers, born of the sea-foam in the East near 
Cyprus. Tlje clouds were no bodies of vapor- 
ized water : they were cows with swelling udders, 
driven to the milking by Hermes, the summer 
wind ; or great sheep with moist fleeces, slain 
by the unerring arrows of Bellerophon, the sun ; 
or swan-maidens, flitting across the firmament, 
Valkyries hovering over the battlefield to re- 
ceive the souls of falling heroes ; or, again, they 
were mighty mountains piled one above another, 
in whose cavernous recesses the divining wand 
of the storm-god Thor revealed hidden treasures. 
The yellow-haired sun, Phoibos, drove westerly 
all day in his flaming chariot ; or perhaps, as 
Meleagros, retired for a while in disgust from 
the sight of men ; wedded at eventide the violet 
light (Oinone, lole), which he had forsaken in 
the morning ; sank, as Herakles, upon a blazing 
funeral-pyre ; or, like Agamemnon, perished in 
a blood-stained bath ; or, as the fish-god, Dagon, 
swam nightly through the subterranean waters, 
to appear eastward again at daybreak. Some- 
times Phaethon, his rash, inexperienced son, 
would take the reins and drive the solar chariot 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

too near the earth, causing the fruits to perish, 
and the grass to wither, and the wells to dry up. 
Sometimes, too, the great all-seeing divinity, in 
his wrath at the impiety of men, would shoot 
down his scorching arrows, causing pestilence 
to spread over the land. Still other conceptions 
clustered around the sun. Now it was the won- 
derful treasure-house, into which no one could 
look and live ; and again it was Ixion himself, 
bound on the fiery wheel in punishment for 
violence offered to Here, the queen of the blue 
air. 

This theory of ancient mythology is not only 
beautiful and plausible, it is, in its essential 
points, demonstrated. It stands on as firm a 
foundation as Grimm's law in philology, or the 
undulatory theory in molecular physics. It*is 
philology which has here enabled us to read the 
primitive thoughts of *mankindi * A large num- 
ber of the names of Greek gods and heroes have 
no meaning in the Greek language ; but thes6 
names occur also in Sanskrit, with plain physic 
cal meanings. In the Veda we find Zeus or 
Jupiter (Dyaus-pitar) meaning the sky, and 
Sarameias or Hermes, meaning the breeze of a 
summer morning. We find Athene (Ahana), 
meaning the light of daybreak ; and we are thus 
enabled to understand why the Greek described 
her as sprung from the forehead of Zeus. There, 
too, we find Helena (Sarama), the fickle twilight, 

26 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

whom the Panis, or night demons, who serve 
as the prototypes of the Hellenic Paris, strive 
to seduce from her allegiance to the solar mon- 
arch. Even Achilleus (Aharyu) again confronts 
us, with his captive Briseis (Brisaya's offspring) ; 
and the fierce Kerberos (arvara) barks on Vedic 
ground in strict conformity to the laws of pho- 
netics. 1 Now, when the Hindu talked about 
Father Dyaus, or the sleek kine of Siva, he 
thought of the personified sky and clouds ; he 
had not outgrown the primitive mental habits 
of the race. But the Greek, in whose language 
these physical meanings were lost, had long be- 
fore the Homeric epoch come to regard Zeus 
and Hermes, Athene, Helena, Paris, and Achil- 
leus, as mere persons, and in most cases the 
originals of his myths were completely forgotten. 
In the Vedas the Trojan War is carried on in 
the sky, between the bright deities and the de- 
mons of night ; but the Greek poet, influenced 
perhaps by some dim historical tradition, has 
located the contest on the shore of the Helles- 
pont, and in his mind the actors, though super- 

1 Some of these etymologies are attacked by Mr. MahafFy 
ia Ms Prolegomena to Ancient History, p. 49. After long 
cotwideration I am still disposed to follow Max Miiller in 
ftdopAtg them, with the possible exception of Achilleus* 
WM Mr* MahaiFy's suggestion (p. 52) that many of the 
Hotatffic legends may have ec clustered around some historical 
** I fully agree ; as will appear, further on, from my 
o ' Juventus Mundi/* 
27 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

human, are still completely anthropomorphic. 
Of the true origin of his epic story he knew 
as little as Euhemeros, or Lord Bacon, or the 
Abbe Banier. 

After these illustrations, we shall run no risk 
of being misunderstood when we define a myth 
as, in its origin, an explanation, by the uncivi- 
lized mind, of some natural phenomenon ; not 
an allegory, not an esoteric symbol, for the 
ingenuity is wasted which strives to detect in 
myths the remnants of a refined primeval sci- 
ence, but an explanation. Primitive men had 
no profound science to perpetuate by means of 
allegory, nor were they such sorry pedants as to 
talk in riddles when plain language would serve 
their purpose. Their minds, we may be sure, 
worked like our own, and when they spoke of 
the far-darting sun-god they meant just what 
they said, save that where we propound a sci- 
entific theorem they constructed a myth, 1 A 
thing is said to be explained when it is classified 
with other things with which we are already ac- 
quainted. Thsrt.is the only kind of explanation 

1 Les faculte*s qui engendrent la mythologie sent les 
memes que celles qui engendront la philosophic, et cc n'est 
pas sans raison que PInde et la Grece nous pr6sentent le phe- 
nomene de la plus riche mythologie it c6t6 de la plus profbnde 
metaphysique." La conception de la multiplieite dans 
I'univers, c*est le polytheisme chez les peuples enfants ; c'est 
la science chez les peuples arrives a Page mftr.** Rentn, 
Hist, des Langues S&mitfyuts, torn. i. p, 9. 

a8 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

of which the highest science is capable. We 
explain the origin, progress, and ending of a 
thunderstorm when we classify the phenomena 
presented by it along with other more familiar 
phenomena of vaporization and condensation. 
But the primitive man explained the same thing 
to his own satisfaction when he had classified 
it along with the well-known phenomena of 
human volition, by constructing a theory of a 
great black dragon pierced ty the unerring ar- 
rows of a heavenly archer.^ We consider the 
nature of the stars to a certain extent explained 
when they are classified as suns ; but the Mo- 
hammedan compiler of the " Mishkat-ul-Ma'- 
sabih " was content to explain them as missiles 
useful for stoning the Devil ! Now, as soon as 
the old Greek, forgetting the source of his con- 
ception, began to talk of a human Oidipous 
slaying a leonine Sphinx, and as soon as the 
Mussulman began, if he ever did, to tell his 
children how the Devil once got a good pelting 
with golden bullets, then both the one and the 
other were talking pure mythology, 

We are justified, accordingly, in distinguish- 
ing between a myth and a legend. Though the 
words are etymologically parallel, and though 
in ordinary discourse we may use them inter- 
changeably, yet when strict accuracy is required, 
it is well to keep them separate. And it is per- 
haps needless, save for the sake of complete- 

29 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ness, to say that both are to be distinguished 
from stories which have been designedly fabri- 
cated. The distinction may occasionally be sub- 
tle, but is usually broad enough. Thus, the 
story that Philip II. murdered his wife Eliza- 
beth, is a misrepresentation ; but the story 
that the same Elizabeth was culpably enam- 
oured of her stepson Don Carlos, is a legend. 
The story that Queen Eleanor saved the life 
of her husband, Edward L, by sucking a wound 
made in his arm by a poisoned arrow, is a le- 
gend ; but the story that Hercules killed a great 
robber, Cacus, who had stolen his cattle, con- 
ceals a physical meaning, and is a myth. While 
a legend is usually confined to one or two local- 
ities, and is told of not more than one or two 
persons, it is characteristic of a myth that it is 
spread, in one form or another, over a large 
part of the earth, the leading incidents remain- 
ing constant, while the names and often the 
motives vary with each locality. This is partly 
due to the immense antiquity of myths, dating 
as they do from a period when many nations, 
now widely separated, had not yet ceased to 
form one people. Thus, many elements of the 
myth of the Trojan War are to be found in the 
Rig-Veda ; and the myth of St. George and the 
Dragon is found in all the Aryan nations. But 
we must not always infer that myths have a 
common descent, merely because they resemble 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

eadi other. We must remember that the pro- 
ceedings of the uncultivated mind are more or 
less alike in all latitudes, and that the same 
phenomenon might in various places independ- 
ently give rise to similar stories. 1 The myth 
of Jack and the Bean-Stalk is found not only 
among people of Aryan descent, but also among 
the Zulus of South Africa, and again among the 
American Indians. Whenever we can trace a 
story in this way from one end of the world to 
the other, or through a whole family of kindred 
nations, we are pretty safe in assuming that we 
are dealing with a true myth, and not with a 
mere legend. 

Applying these considerations to the Tell 
myth, we at once obtain a valid explanation of 
its origin. The conception of infallible skill in. 
archery, which underlies such a great variety 
of myths and popular fairy-tales, is originally 
derived from the inevitable victory of the sun 
over his enemies, the demons of night, winter, 
and tempest. Arrows and spears which never 
miss their mark, swords from whose blow no 
armour can protect, are invariably the weapons 
of solar divinities or heroes. The shafts of 
Bellerophon never fail to slay the black demon 
of the rain-cloud, and the bolt of Phoibos 
Chrysaor deals sure destruction to the serpent of 

1 Cases coming under this head are discussed further on, 
in my paper on " Myths of the Barbaric World." 

3* 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

winter. Odysseus, warring against the impious 
night-heroes, who have endeavoured through- 
out ten long years or hours of darkness to se- 
duce from her allegiance his twilight bride, 
the weaver of the never-finished web of vio- 
let clouds, Odysseus, stripped of his beg- 
gar's raiment and endowed with fresh youth 
and beauty by the dawn-goddess, Athene, en- 
gages in no doubtful conflict as he raises the 
bow which none but himself can bend. Nor is 
there less virtue in the spear of Achilleus, in 
the swords of Perseus and Sigurd, in Roland's 
stout blade Durandal, or in the brand Excali- 
bur, with which Sir Bedivere was so loath to 
part. All these are solar weapons, and so, too, 
are the arrows of Tell and Palnatoki, Egil and 
Hemingr, and William of Cloudeslee, whose 
surname proclaims him an inhabitant of the 
Phaiakian land. William Tell, whether of 
Cloudland or of Altdorf, is the last reflection of 
the beneficent divinity of daytime and summer, 
constrained for a while to obey the caprice of 
the powers of cold and darkness, as Apollo 
served Laomedon, and Herakles did the bid- 
ding of Eurystheus. His solar character is well 
preserved, even in the sequel of the Swiss le- 
gend, in which he appears no less skilful as a 
steersman than as an archer, and in which, after 
traversing, like Dagon, the tempestuous sea of 
night, he leaps at daybreak in regained freedom 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

upon the land, and strikes down the oppressor 
who has held him in bondage. 

But the sun, though ever victorious in open 
contest with his enemies, is nevertheless not 
invulnerable. At times he succumbs to treach- 
ery, is bound by the frost giants, or slain by 
the demons of darkness. The poisoned shirt 
of the cloud fiend Nessos is fataleven to the 
mighty Herakles, and the prowess of Siegfried 
at last fails to save him from the craft of Hagen. 
In Achilleus and Meleagros we see the unhappy 
solar hero doomed to toil for the profit of others, 
and to be cut off by an untimely death. The 
more fortunate Odysseus, who lives to a ripe 
old age, and triumphs again and again over 
all the powers of darkness, must nevertheless 
yield to the craving desire to visit new cities 
and look upon new works of strange men, until 
at last he is swallowed up in the western sea. 
That the unrivalled navigator of the celestial 
ocean should disappear beneath the western 
waves is as intelligible as it is that the horned 
Venus or Astarte should rise from the sea in 
the far east. It is perhaps less obvious that 
winter should be so frequently symbolized as a 
thorn or sharp instrument. Achilleus dies by 
an arrow wound in the heel; the thigh of 
Adonis is pierced by the boar's tusk, while 
Odysseus escapes with an ugly scar, which after- 
wards secures his recognition by his old servant, 

33 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the dawn nymph Eurykleia ; Sigurd is slain by 
a thorn, and Balder by a sharp sprig of mistle- 
toe ; and in the myth of the Sleeping Beauty, 
the earth-goddess sinks into her long winter 
sleep when pricked by the point of the spindle. 
In her cosmic palace all is locked in icy repose, 
naught thriving save the ivy which defies the 
cold, until the kiss of the golden-haired sun- 
god reawakens life and activity. 

The wintry sleep of nature is symbolized in 
innumerable stories of spell-bound maidens and 
fair-featured youths, saints, martyrs, and heroes. 
Sometimes it is the sun, sometimes the earth, 
that is supposed to slumber. Among the 
American Indians the sun-god Michabo is said 
to sleep through the winter months ; and at the 
time of the falling leaves, by way of composing 
himself for his nap, he fills his great pipe and 
divinely smokes ; the blue clouds, gently float- 
ing over the landscape, fill the air with the haze 
of Indian summer. In the Greek myth the 
shepherd Endymion preserves his freshness in 
a perennial slumber. The German Siegfried, 
pierced by the thorn of winter, is sleeping until 
he shall be again called forth to fight. In Swit- 
zerland, by the Vierwaldstattersee, three Tells 
are awaiting the hour when their country shall 
again need to be delivered from the oppressor* 
Charlemagne is reposing in the Untersberg, 
sword in hand, waiting for the coming of And- 

34 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

christ ; Olger Danske similarly dreams away his 
time in Avallon ; and in a lofty mountain in 
Thuringia, the great Emperor Frederic Barba- 
rossa slumbers with his knights around him, 
until the time comes for him to sally forth and 
raise Germany to the first rank among the 
kingdoms of the world. The same story is told 
of Olaf Tryggvesson, of Don Sebastian of 
Portugal, and of the Moorish King BoabdiL 
The Seven Sleepers of Ephesus, having taken 
refuge in a cave from the persecutions of the 
heathen Decius, slept one hundred and sixty- 
four years, and awoke to find a Christian em- 
peror on the throne. The monk of Hilde- 
sheim, in the legend so beautifully rendered by 
Longfellow, doubting how with God a thousand 
years ago could be as yesterday, listened three 
minutes entranced by the singing of a bird in 
the forest, and found, on waking from his rev- 
erie, that a thousand years had flown. To the 
same family of legends belong the notion that 
St. John is sleeping at Ephesus until the last 
days of the world ; the myth of the enchanter 
Merlin, spellbound by Vivien ; the story of 
the Cretan philosopher Epimenides, who dozed 
away fifty -seven years in a cave ; and Rip Van 
Winkle's nap in the Catskills. 1 

1 A collection of these interesting legends may be found 
in Baring-Gould's Curious Myths of the Middle Jges, of 
which work this paper was originally a review. 

3S 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

We might go on almost indefinitely citing 
household tales of wonderful sleepers ; but, on 
the principle of the association of opposites, we 
are here reminded of sundry cases of marvellous 
life and wakefulness, illustrated in the Wander- 
ing Jew ; the dancers of Kolbeck ; Joseph of 
Arimathaea with the Holy Grail ; the Wild 
Huntsman, who to all eternity chases the red 
deer ; the Captain of the Phantom Ship ; the 
classic Tithonos ; and the Man in the Moon. 

The lunar spots have afforded a rich subject 
for the play of human fancy. Plutarch wrote a 
treatise on them, but the myth-makers had 
been before him. "Every one/' says Mr. 
Baring-Gould, cc knows that the moon is inhab- 
ited by a man with a bundle of sticks on his 
back, who has been exiled thither for many cen- 
turies, and who is so far off that he is beyond 
the reach of death. He has once visited this 
earth, if the nursery rhyme is to be credited 
when it asserts that 

The Man In the Moon 

Came down too soon 
i And asked his way to Norwich ; * 

but whether he ever reached that city the same 
authority does not state/ 1 Dante calls him 
Cain ; Chaucer has him put up there as a pun- 
ishment for theft, and gives him a thorn bush 
to carry ; Shakespeare also loads him with the 
thorns, but by way of compensation gives him 

36 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

a dog for a companion. Ordinarily, however, 
his offence is stated to have been, not stealing, 
but Sabbath-breaking, an idea derived from 
the Old Testament. Like the man mentioned 
in the Book of Numbers, he is caught gather- 
ing sticks on the Sabbath ; and, as an example 
to mankind, he is condemned to stand forever 
in the moon, with his bundle on his back. In- 
stead of a dog, one German version places .him 
with a woman, whose crime was churning but- 
ter on Sunday. She carries her butter-tub ; and 
this brings us to Mother Goose again : 

" Jack and Jill went up the Mil 

To get a pail of water. 
Jack fell down and broke his crown, 
And Jill came tumbling after. * * 

This may read like mere nonsense ; but there 
is a point of view from which it may be safely 
said that there is very little absolute nonsense 
in the world. The story of Jack and Jill is a 
venerable one. In Iceki^c mythology we read 
that Jack and Jill were two children whom the 
moon once kidnapped and carried up to heaven. 
They had been drawing water in a bucket, 
which they were carrying by means of a pole 
placed across their shoulders ; and in this atti- 
tude they have stood to the present day in the 
moon. Even now this explanation of the moon 
spots is to be heard from the mouths of Swed- 
ish peasants. They fall away one after the 
37 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

other, as the moon wanes, and their water-pail 
symbolizes the supposed connection of the 
moon with rain-storms. Other forms of the 
myth occur in Sanskrit. 

The moon-goddess, or Aphrodite, of the 
ancient Germans was called Horsel, or Ursula, 
who figures in Christian mediaeval mythology 
as a persecuted saint, attended by a troop of 
eleven thousand virgins, who all suffer martyr- 
dom as they journey from England to Cologne. 
The meaning of the myth is obvious. In Ger- 
man mythology, England is the Phaiakian land 
of clouds and phantoms ; the succubus, leaving 
her lover before daybreak, excuses herself on 
the plea that cc her mother is calling her in 
England." l The companions of Ursula are the 
pure stars, who leave the cloudland and suffer 
martyrdom as they approach the regions of day. 
In the Christian tradition, Ursula is the pure 
Artemis ; but, in accordance with her ancient 
character, she is likewise the sensual Aphro- 
dite, who haunts the Venusberg; and this 
brings us to the story of Tannhauser. 

The Horselberg, or mountain of Venus, lies 
in Thuringia, between Eisenach and Gotha. 
High up on its slope yawns a cavern, the Hor- 

1 See Procopius, De Edlo Gothico, iv. 20 ; Villemarque, 
Barzas Breiz i. 136. As a child I was instructed by an old 
nurse that Van Diemen'$ Land is the home of ghosts and de- 
parted spirits. 

38 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

selloch, or cave of Venus, within, which is heard 
a muffled roar, as of subterranean water. From 
this cave, in old times, the frightened inhabitants 
of the neighbouring valley would hear at night 
wild moans and cries issuing, mingled with peals 
of demon-like laughter. Here it was believed 
that Venus held her court ; cc and there were not 
a few who declared that they had seen fair 
forms of female beauty beckoning them from 
the mouth of the chasm/' l Tannhauser was a 
Prankish knight and famous minnesinger, who, 
travelling at twilight past the Horselberg, " saw 
a white glimmering figure of matchless beauty 
standing before him and beckoning him to her." 
Leaving his horse, he went up to meet her, 
whom he knew to be none other than Venus. 
He descended to her palace in the heart of the 
mountain, and there passed seven years in care- 
less revelry. Then, stricken with remorse and 
yearning for another glimpse of the pure light 
of day, he called in agony upon the Virgin 
Mother, who took compassion on him and 
released him. He sought a village church, and 
to priest after priest confessed his sin, without 
obtaining absolution, until finally he had re- 
course to the Pope. But the holy father, horri- 
fied at the enormity of his misdoing, declared 
that guilt such as his could never be remitted : 
sooner should the staff in his hand grow green 
* Baring-Gould, Curious Myths, vol. i. p. 197. 
39 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

and blossom, cc Then Tannhauser, full of de- 
spair and with his soul darkened, went away, 
and returned to the only asylum open to him, 
the Venusberg, But lo ! three days after he had 
gone. Pope Urban discovered that his pastoral 
staff had put forth buds and had burst into 
flower. Then he sent messengers after Tann- 
hauser, and they reached the Horsel vale to 
hear that a wayworn man, with haggard brow 
and bowed head, had just entered the Horsel- 
loch. Since then Tannhauser has not been 
seen" (p. 201)* 

As Mr, Baring-Gould rightly observes, this 
sad legend, in its Christianized form, is doubt- 
less descriptive of the struggle between the new 
and the old faiths. The knightly Tannhauser, 
satiated with pagan sensuality, turns to Chris- 
tianity for relief, but, repelled by the hypocrisy, 
pride, and lack of sympathy of its ministers, 
gives up in despair, and returns to drown his 
anxieties in his old debauchery. 

But this is not the primitive form of the 
myth, which recurs in the folk-lore of every 
people of Aryan descent. Who, indeed, can read 
it without being at once reminded of Thomas 
of Erceldoune (or Horsel-hill), entranced by 
the sorceress of the Eilden ; of the nightly vis- 
its of Numa to the grove of the nymph Ege- 
ria; of Odysseus held captive by the Lady 
Kalypso ; and* last but not least, of the delight- 

40 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

ful Arabian tale of Prince Ahmed and the Peri 
Banou ? On his westward journey, Odysseus is 
ensnared and kept in temporary bondage by the 
amorous nymph of darkness, Kalypso (/eaXvTmy, 
to veil or cover). So the zone of the moon- 
goddess Aphrodite inveigles all-seeing Zeus to 
treacherous slumber on Mount Ida ; and by a 
similar sorcery Tasso's great hero is lulled in 
unseemly idleness in Armida's golden paradise, 
at the western verge of the world. The dis- 
appearance of Tannhauser behind the moonlit 
cliff, lured by Venus Ursula, the pale goddess 
of night, is a precisely parallel circumstance. 

But solar and lunar phenomena are by no 
means the only sources of popular mythology. 
Opposite my writing-table hangs a quaint Ger- 
man picture, illustrating Goethe's ballad of the 
Erlking, in which the whole wild pathos of the 
story is compressed into one supreme moment ; 
we see the fearful, half-gliding rush of the Erl- 
king, his long, spectral arms outstretched to 
grasp the child, the frantic gallop of the horse, 
the alarmed father clasping his darling to his 
bosom in convulsive embrace, the siren-like 
elves hovering overhead, to lure the little soul 
with their weird harps. There can be no better 
illustration than is furnished by this terrible 
scene of the magic power of mythology to in- 
vest the simplest physical phenomena with the 
most intense human interest ; for the true sig- 

41 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

nificance of the whole picture is contained in 
the father's address to his child, 
*< Sei ruhig, bleibe ruhig, meln Kind ; 
In diirren Blattern sauselt der Wind." 

The story of the Piper of Hamelin, well 
known in the version of Robert Browning, leads 
to the same conclusion. In 1284 the good peo- 
ple of Hamelin could obtain no rest, night or 
day, by reason of the direful host of rats which 
infested their town. One day came a strange 
man in a bunting suit, and offered for five hun- 
dred guilders to rid the town of the vermin. 
The people agreed : whereupon the man took 
out a pipe and piped, and instantly all the rats 
in town, in an army which blackened the face 
of the earth, came forth from their haunts, and 
followed the piper until he piped them to the 
river Weser, where they all jumped in and were 
drowned. But as soon as the torment was gone, 
the townsfolk refused to pay the piper, on the 
ground that he was evidently a wizard* He went 
away, vowing vengeance, and on St. John's day 
reappeared, and putting his pipe to his mouth 
blew a different air. Whereat all the little* 
plump, rosy-cheeked, golden-haired children 
came merrily running after him, their parents 
standing aghast, not knowing what to do, while 
he led them up a hill in the neighbourhood. 
A door opened in the mountain-side, through 
which he led them in, and they never were 

42 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

seen again ; save one lame boy, who hobbled 
not fast enough to get in before the door shut, 
and who lamented for the rest of his life that he 
had not been able to share the rare luck of his 
comrades. In the street through which this 
procession passed no music was ever afterward 
allowed to be played. For a long time the town 
dated its public documents from this fearful 
calamity, and many authorities have treated it 
as an historical event. 1 Similar stories are told 
of other towns in Germany, and, strange to say, 
in remote Abyssinia also. Wesleyan peasants 
in England believe that angels pipe to children 
who are about to die ; and in Scandinavia youths 
are said to have been enticed away by the songs 
of elf-maidens. In Greece the sirens by their 
magic lay allured voyagers to destruction ; and 
Orpheus caused the trees and dumb beasts to 
follow him. Here we reach the explanation. 
For Orpheus is the wind sighing through un- 
told acres of pine forest. "The piper is no 
other than the wind, and the ancients held that 
in the wind were the souls of the dead." To 
this day the English peasantry believe that they 
hear the wail of the spirits of unbaptized chil- 
dren, as the gale sweeps past their cottage doors. 
The Greek Hermes resulted from the fusion 
of two deities. He is the sun and also {he wind ; 

2 Hence perhaps the adage, " Always remember to pay 
the piper. 11 

43 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

and in the latter capacity he bears away the 
souls of the dead. So the Norse Odin, who like 
Hermes fulfils a double function, is supposed 
to rush at night over the treetops, "accom- 
panied by the scudding train of brave men's 
spirits." And readers of recent French litera- 
ture cannot fail to remember Erckmann-Cha- 
trian's terrible story of the wild huntsman 
Vittikab, and how he sped through the forest, 
carrying away a young girl's soul. 

Thus, as Tannhauser is the Northern Ulys- 
ses, so is Goethe's Erlking none other than the 
Piper of Hamelin. And the piper, in turn, is 
the classic Hermes or Orpheus, the counterpart 
of the Finnish Wainamoinen and the Sanskrit 
Gunadhya. His wonderful pipe is the horn 
of Oberon, the lyre of Apollo (who, like the 
piper, was a rat-killer), the harp stolen by Jack 
when he climbed the bean-stalk to the ogre's 
castle, 1 And the father, in Goethe's ballad, is no 
more than right when he assures his child that the 
siren voice which tempts him is but the rustle of 
the wind among the dried leaves ; for from such 
a simple class of phenomena arose this entire 
family of charming legends, 

1 And it reappears as the mysterious lyre of the Gaelic 
musician, who 

<* Could harp a fish out o* the waterj 

Or bluid out of a sttne, 

Or milk out of a maiden* s breast, 

That bairns had never nane. 1 ' 

44 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

But why does the piper, who is a leader of 
souls (Psychopompos), also draw rats after him ? 
In answering this we shall have occasion to note 
that the ancients by no means shared that curi- 
ous prejudice against the brute creation which 
is indulged in by modern anti-Darwinians. In 
many countries rats and mice have been re- 
garded as sacred animals ; but in Germany they 
were thought to represent the human soul. One 
story out of a hundred must suffice to illustrate 
this. "In Thuringia, at Saalfeld, a servant-girl 
fell asleep whilst her companions were shelling 
nuts. They observed a little red mouse creep 
from her mouth and run out of the window. 
One of the fellows present shook the sleeper, 
but could not wake her, so he moved her to 
another place. Presently "the mouse ran back to 
the former place and dashed about, seeking the 
girl ; not finding her, it vanished ; at the same 
moment the girl died/' * This completes the 
explanation of the piper, and it also furnishes 
the key to the horrible story of Bishop Hatto. 

This wicked prelate lived on the bank of the 
Rhine, in the middle of which stream he pos- 
sessed a tower, now pointed out to travellers as 
the Mouse Tower. In the year 970 there was 
a dreadful famine, and people came from far 
and near craving sustenance out of the Bishop's 
ample and well-filled granaries. Well, he told 

x l Baring-Gould, Curious Myths, vol. ii. p. 159. 

45 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

them all to go into the barn, and when they had 
got in there, as many as could stand, he set fire to 
the barn and burnt them all up, and went home 
to eat a merry supper. But when he arose next 
morning, he heard that an army of rats had eaten 
all the corn in his granaries, and was now ad- 
vancing to storm the palace. Looking from his 
window, he saw the roads and fields dark with 
them, as they came with fell purpose straight 
toward his mansion. In frenzied terror he took 
his boat and rowed out to the tower in the river. 
But it was of no use : down into the water 
marched the rats, and swam across, and scaled 
the walls, and gnawed through the stones, and 
came swarming in about the shrieking Bishop, 
and ate him up, flesh, bones, and all. Now, 
bearing in mind what was said above, there can 
be no doubt that these rats were the souls of 
those whom the Bishop had murdered. There 
are many versions of the story in different 
Teutonic countries, and in some of them the 
avenging rats or mice issue directly, by a strange 
metamorphosis, from the corpses of the victims. 
St. Gertrude, moreover, the heathen Holda, 
was symbolized as a mouse, and was said to lead 
an army of mice ; she was the receiver of chil- 
dren's souls. Odin, also, in his character of a 
Psychopompos, was followed by a host of rats. 1 

1 Perhaps we may trace back to this source the frantic ter- 
ror which Irish servant-girls often manifest at sight of a mouie* 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

As the souls of the departed are symbolized 
as rats, so is the psychopomp himself often 
figured as a dog. Sarameias, the Vedic counter- 
part of Hermes and Odin, sometimes appears 
invested with canine attributes ; and countless 
other examples go to show that by the early 
Aryan mind the howling wind was conceived as a 
great dog or wolf. As the fearful beast was heard 
speeding by the windows or over the housetop, 
the inmates trembled, for none knew but his 
own soul might forthwith be required of him* 
Hence, to this day, among ignorant people, the 
howling of a dog under the window is supposed 
to portend a death in the family. It is the fleet 
greyhound of Hermes, come to escort the soul 
to the river Styx. 1 

But the wind-god is not always so terrible. 
Nothing can be more transparent than the 
phraseology of the Homeric Hymn, in which 
Hermes is described as acquiring the strength 
of a giant while yet a babe in the cradle, as 
sallying out and stealing the cattle (clouds) of 
Apollo, and driving them helter-skelter in va- 
rious directions, then as crawling through the 
keyhole, and with a mocking laugh shrinking 

1 In Persia a dog is brought to the bedside of the person 
who is dying, in order that the soul may be sure of a prompt 
escort. The same custom exists in India. Breal, Hercule 
et Cacus, p. 123. 



47 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

into his cradle. He is the Master Thief, who 
can steal the burgomaster's horse from under 
him and his wife's mantle from off her back, 
the prototype not only of the crafty architect of 
Rhampsinitos, but even of the ungrateful slave 
who robs Sancho of his mule in the Sierra 
Morena. He furnishes in part the conceptions 
of Boots and Reynard ; he is the prototype of 
Paul Pry and peeping Tom of Coventry ; and 
in virtue of his ability to contract or expand 
himself at pleasure, he is both the Devil in the 
Norse Tale, 1 whom the lad persuades to enter 
a walnut, and the Arabian Efreet, whom the 
fisherman releases from the bottle. 

The very interesting series of myths and pop- 
ular superstitions suggested by the storm-cloud 
and the lightning must be reserved for a future 
occasion. When carefully examined, they will 
richly illustrate the conclusion which is the re- 
sult of the present inquiry, that the marvellous 
tales and quaint superstitions current in every 
Aryan household have a common origin with 
the classic legends of gods and heroes, which 
formerly were alone thought worthy of the 
student's serious attention. These stories 
some of them familiar to us in infancy, others 

1 The Devil, who Is proverbially active in a gale of 
wind," is none other than Hermes. 



THE ORIGINS OF FOLK-LORE 

the delight of our maturer years constitute 
the debris, or alluvium, brought down by the 
stream of tradition from the distant highlands 
of ancient mythology. 

September 9 1870. 



49 



II 

THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

IN the course of my last summer's vaca- 
tion, which was spent at a small inland 
village, I came upon an unexpected illus- 
tration of the tenacity with which conceptions 
descended from prehistoric antiquity 1 have now 
and then kept their hold upon life. While sit- 
ting one evening under the trees by the road- 
side, my attention was called to the unusual 
conduct of half a dozen men and boys who 
were standing opposite. An elderly man was 
moving slowly up and down the road, holding 
with both hands a forked twig of hazel, shaped 
like the letter Y inverted. With his palms 
turned upward, he held in each hand a branch 
of the twig in such a way that the shauk pointed 
upward ; but every few moments, as hf halted 
over a certain spot, the twig would gradually 
bend downwards until it had assumed tnpe like- 
ness of a Y in its natural position, wftere it 
would remain pointing to something in the 
ground beneath. One by one the bystanders 
proceeded to try the experiment, but with no 
variation in the result* Something in the ground 

SO 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

seemed to fascinate the bit of hazel, for it could 
not pass over that spot without bending down 
and pointing to it. 

My thoughts i everted at once to Jacques 
Aymar and Dousterswivel, as I perceived that 
these men were engaged in sorcery. During the 
long drought more than half the wells in the 
village had become dry, and here was an attempt 
to make good the loss by the aid of the god 
Thor. These men were seeking water with a 




divining rod. Here, alive before my eyes, was a 
superstitious observance, which I had supposed 
long since dead and forgotten by all men except 
students interested in mythology. 

As I crossed the road to take part in the 
ceremony a farmer's boy came up, stoutly affirm- 
ing his incredulity, and offering to show the 

5* 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

company how he could carry the rod motion- 
less across the charmed fspot. But when he 
came to take the weird twig he trembled with 
an ill-defined feeling of insecurity as to the 
soundness of his conclusions, and when he 
stood over the supposed rivulet the rod- bent 
in spite of him, as was not so very strange ; 
for, with all his vague scepticism, the honest 
lad had not, and could not be supposed to have, 
the/0z scientifique of which Littre speaks. 1 

Hereupon I requested leave to try the rod; 
but something in my manner seemed at once to 
excite the suspicion and scorn of the sorcerer. 
" Yes, take it," said he, with uncalled-for vehe- 
mence, a but you can't stop it ; there *s water 
below here, and you can't help its bending, if 
you break your back trying to hold it." So he 
gave me the twig, and awaited, with a smile 
which was meant to express withering sarcasm, 
the discomfiture of the supposed scoffer. But 
when I proceeded to walk four or five times 
across the mysterious place, the rod pointing 
steadfastly toward the zenith all the while, our 
friend became grave and began to philosophize* 
i Well/* said he, "you see your temperament 

1 "11 faut quc la comr dcvicnne anden parnn lo ancicnms 
choscs, ct la plenitude do 1'histoire nc sc dcvoilc quM nJui 
qui descend, ain.si dispose, dans le patusc, Mais II faut <|ur 
1' esprit dcmeurc moderne, et n'ouhlic jurnais qu'il n*y a puir 
lui d'autre foi que la fbi srientifiquc,'* Fattrc. 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

is peculiar ; the conditions ain't favourable in 
your case ; there are some people who never 
can work these things. But there J s water below 
here, for all that, as you 11 find, if you dig for 
it ; there *s nothing like a hazel rod for finding 
out water." 

Very true : there are some persons who never 
can make such things work ; who somehow 
always encounter " unfavourable conditions " 
when they wish to test the marvellous powers 
of a clairvoyant ; who never can make cc Plan- 
chette " move in conformity to the requirements 
of any known alphabet ; who never see ghosts, 
and never have " presentiments/' save such as 
are obviously due to association of ideas. The 
ill-success of these persons is commonly ascribed 
to their lack of faith ; but, in the majority of 
cases, it might be more truly referred to the 
strength of their faith, faith in the constancy 
of nature, and in the adequacy of ordinary hu- 
man experience as interpreted by science. 1 La 
foi scientifique is an excellent preventive against 
that obscure, though not uncommon, kind of 
self-deception which enables wooden tripods 
to write and tables to tip and hazel twigs to 
twist upside down, without the conscious inter- 

1 For an admirable example of scientific self-analysis tracing 
s>ne of these illusions to its psychological sources, see the ac- 
count of Dr. Lazarus, in Taine, De P Intelligence* voL i 

pp. I2I-I25, 

53 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

vention of the performer. It was this kind of 
faith, no doubt, which caused the discomfiture 
of Jacques Aymar on his visit to Paris, 1 and 
which has in late years prevented persons from 
obtaining the handsome prize offered by the 
French Academy for the first authentic case of 
clairvoyance. 

But our village friend, though perhaps con- 
structively right in his philosophizing, was cer- 
tainly very defective in his acquaintance with the 
time-honoured art of rhabdomancy. Had he 
extended his inquiries so as to cover the field of 
Indo-European tradition, he would have learned 
that the mountain-ash, the mistletoe, the white 
and black thorn, the Hindu asvattha y and sev- 
eral other woods are quite as efficient as the 
hazel for the purpose of detecting water in times 
of drought ; and in due course of time he would 
have perceived that the divining rod itself is 
but one among a large class of things to which 
popular belief has ascribed, along with other 
talismanic properties, the power of opening 
the ground or cleaving rocks, in order to reveal 
hidden treasures. Leaving him in peace, then, 
with his bit of forked hazel, to seek for cooling 

1 See the story of Aymar in Baring-Gould, Curious Myths* 
vol. i. pp. 57-77. The learned author attributes the dis- 
comfiture to the uncongenial Parisian environment ; which is 
a style of reasoning much like that of my village sorcerer, I 
fear. 

54 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

springs in some future thirsty season, let us en- 
deavour to elucidate the origin of this curious 
superstition. 

The detection of subterranean water is by no 
means the only use to which the divining rod 
has been put. Among the ancient Frisians it 
was regularly used for the detection of criminals ; 
and the reputation of Jacques Aymar was won 
by his discovery of the perpetrator of a horrible 
murder at Lyons. Throughout Europe it has 
been used from time immemorial by miners 
for ascertaining the position of veins of metal ; 
and in the days when talents were wrapped in 
napkins and buried in the field, instead of being 
exposed to the risks of financial speculation, the 
divining rod was employed by persons covetous 
of their neighbours' wealth. If Boulatruelle had 
lived in the sixteenth century, he would have 
taken a forked stick of hazel when he went to 
search for the buried treasures of Jean Valjean. 
It has also been applied to the cure of disease, 
and has been kept in households, like a wizard's 
charm, to insure general good-fortune and im- 
munity from disaster. 

As we follow the conception further into the 
elfland of popular tradition, we come upon a 
rod which not only points out the situation of 
hidden treasure, but even splits open the ground 
and reveals the mineral wealth contained therein. 
In German legend, " a shepherd, who was driv- 

55 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ing his flock over the Ilsenstein, haying stopped 
to rest, leaning on his staff, the mountain sud- 
denly opened, for there was a springwort in his 
staff without his knowing it, and the princess 
[Use] stood before him. She bade him follow 
her, and when he was inside the mountain she 
told him to take as much gold as he pleased. 
The shepherd filled all his pockets, and was 
going away, when the princess called after him, 
c Forget not the best/ So, thinking she meant 
that he had not taken enough, he filled his hat 
also ; but what she meant was his staff with the 
springwort, which he had laid against the wall 
as soon as he stepped in. But now, just as he 
was going out at the opening, the rock suddenly 
slammed together and cut him in two." l 

Here the rod derives its marvellous proper- 
ties from the inclosed springwort, but in many 
cases a leaf or flower is itself competent to open 
the hillside. The little blue flower, forget-me- 
not, about which so many sentimental associa- 
tions have clustered, owes its name to the legends 
told of its talismanic virtues. 2 A man, travel- 
ling on a lonely mountain, picks up a little blue 
flower and sticks it in his hat. Forthwith an 
iron door opens, showing up a lighted passage- 
way, through which the man advances into a 

1 Kelly, Indo-European Folk-Lore^ p. 177. 

2 The story of the luck- flower Is well told in verse by Mr. 
Baring-Gould, in his Silver Stow, p, 1 1 J, se<j, 

56 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

magnificent hall, where rubies and diamonds and 
all other kinds of gems are lying piled in great 
heaps on the floor. As he eagerly fills his pock- 
ets his hat drops from his head, and when he 
turns to go out the little flower calls after him, 
" Forget me not ! " He turns back and looks 
around, but is too bewildered with his good for- 
tune to think of his bare head or of the luck- 
flower which he has let fall. He selects several 
more of the finest jewels he can find, and again 
starts to go out ; but as he passes through the 
door the mountain closes amid the crashing of 
thunder, and cuts off one of his heels. Alone, 
in the gloom of the forest, he searches in vain 
for the mysterious door : it has disappeared for- 
ever, and the traveller goes on his way, thank- 
ful, let us hope, that he has fared no worse. 

Sometimes it is a white lady, like the Princess 
Use, who invites the finder of the luck-flower 
to help himself to her treasures, and who utters 
the enigmatical warning. The mountain where 
the event occurred may be found almost any- 
where in Germany, and one just like it stood in 
Persia, in the golden prime of Haroun Al- 
raschid. In the story of the Forty Thieves, the 
mere name of the plant sesame serves as a talis- 
man to open and shut the secret door which 
leads into the robbers' cavern ; and when the 
avaricious Cassim Baba, absorbed in the con- 
templation of the bags of gold and bales of rich 

57 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

merchandise, forgets the magic formula, he meets 
no better fate than the shepherd of the Ilsen- 
stein. In the story of Prince Ahmed, it is an 
enchanted arrow which guides the young ad- 
venturer through the hillside to the grotto of 
the Peri Banou. In the tale of Baba Abdallah, 
it is an ointment rubbed on the eyelid which 
reveals at a single glance all the treasures hid* 
den in the bowels of the earth. 

The ancient Romans also had their rock- 
breaking plant, called Saxifraga, or " sassafras." 
And the further we penetrate into this charmed 
circle of traditions the more evident does it ap- 
pear that the power of cleaving rocks or shat- 
tering hard substances enters, as a primitive 
element, into the conception of these treasure- 
showing talismans. Mr. Baring-Gould has given 
an excellent account of the rabbinical legends 
concerning the wonderful schamir, by the aid 
of which Solomon was said to have built his 
temple. From Asmodeus, prince of the Jann, 
Benaiah, the son of Jehoiada, wrested the secret 
of a worm no bigger than a barley-corn, which 
could split the hardest substance. This worm 
was called schamir. fc If Solomon desired to 
possess himself of the worm, he must find the 
nest of the moor-hen, and cover it with a plate 
of glass, so that the mother bird could not get 
at her young without breaking the glass. She 
would seek schamir for the purpose, and the 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

worm must be obtained from her/' As the 
Jewish king did need the worm in order to hew 
the stones for that temple which was to be built 
without sound of hammer, or axe, or any tool of 
iron/ he sent Benaiah to obtain it. According 
to another account, schamir was a mystic stone 
which enabled Solomon to penetrate the earth in 
search of mineral wealth. Directed by a Jinni, 
the wise king covered a raven's eggs with a 
plate of crystal, and thus obtained schamir which 
the bird brought in order to break the plate. 2 

In these traditions, which may possibly be 
of Aryan descent, due to the prolonged inter- 
course between the Jews and the Persians, a new 
feature is added to those before enumerated : the 
rock-splitting talisman is always found in the 
possession of a bird. The same feature in the 
myth reappears on Aryan soil. The springwort, 
whose marvellous powers we have noticed in 
the case of the Ilsenstein shepherd, is obtained, 
according to Pliny, by stopping up the hole in 
a tree where a woodpecker keeps its young. 
The bird flies away, and presently returns with 

1 i Kings vi, 7. 

2 Compare the Mussulman account of the building of the 
temple, in Baring-Gould, Legends of the Patriarchs an& 
Prophets, pp. 337, 338. And see the story of Diocletian's 
ostrich, Swan, Gesta Romanorum, ed. Wright, vol. i. p. bdv. 
See, also, the pretty story of the knight unjustly imprisoned* 
id. p. ciL 

59 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the springwort, which it applies to the plug, 
causing it to shoot out with a loud explosion. 
The same account is given in German folk-lore. 
Elsewhere, as in Iceland, Normandy, and an- 
cient Greece, the bird is an eagle, a swallow, an 
ostrich, or a hoopoe. 

In the Icelandic and Pomeranian myths the 
schamir, or tf raven-stone," also renders its pos- 
sessor invisible, a property which It shares 
with one of the treasure-finding plants, the fern. 1 
In this respect it resembles the ring of Gyges, 
as in its divining and rock-splitting qualities it 
resembles that other ring which the African 
magician gave to Aladdin, to enable him to de- 
scend into the cavern where stood the wonder- 
ful lamp. 

In the north of Europe schamir appears 
strangely and grotesquely metamorphosed. The 
hand of a man that has been hanged, when dried 

1 e< We have the receipt of fern-seed. We walk invisible. ' ' 
Shakespeare, Henry IV. See Ralston, Songs of the Russian 
People 9 p. 98. 

According to one North German tradition, the luck-flower 
also will make its finder invisible at pleasure. But, as the 
myth shrewdly adds, it is absolutely essential that the flower 
be found by accident : he who seeks for it never finds it! 
Thus all cavils are skilfully forestalled, even if not satisfactorily 
disposed of. The same kind of reasoning is favoured by our 
modern dealers in mystery : somehow the " conditions *' al- 
ways are askew whenever a scientific observer wishes to test 
their pretensions. 

60 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

and prepared with certain weird unguents and 
set on fire, is known as the Hand of Glory ; 
and as it not only bursts open all safe locks, 
but also lulls to sleep all persons within the 
circle of its influence, it is of course invaluable 
to thieves and burglars. I quote the following 
story from Thorpe's " Northern Mythology : " 
<c Two fellows once came to Huy, who pre- 
tended to be exceedingly fatigued, and when 
they had supped would not retire to a sleeping- 
room, but begged their host would allow them 
to take a nap on the hearth. But the maid- 
servant, who did not like the looks of the two 
guests, remained by the kitchen door and 
peeped through a chink, when she saw that one 
of them drew a thief's hand from his pocket, 
the fingers of which, after having' rubbed them 
with an ointment, he lighted, and they all burned 
except one. Again they held this finger to the 
fire, but still it would not burn, at which they 
appeared much surprised, and one said, c There 
must surely be some one in the house who is 
not yet asleep/ They then hung the fyand with 
its four burning fingers by the chimney, and 
went out to call their associates. But the maid 
followed them instantly and made the door fast, 
then ran upstairs, where the landlord slept, 
that she might wake him, but was unable, not- 
withstanding all her shaking and calling. In 
the mean time the thieves had returned and 

61 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

were endeavouring to enter the house by a win- 
dow, but the maid cast them down from the 
ladder. They then took a different course, and 
would have forced an entrance, had it not oc- 
curred to the maid that the burning fingers 
might probably be the cause of her master's 
profound sleep. Impressed with this idea she 
ran to the kitchen and blew them out, when the 
master and his men-servants instantly awoke, 
and soon drove away the robbers." The same 
event is said to have occurred at Stainmore in 
England ; and Torquemada relates of Mexican 
thieves that they carry with them the left hand 
of a woman who has died in her first childbed, 
before which talisman all bolts yield and all 
opposition is benumbed. In 1831 tc some Irish 
thieves attempted to commit a robbery on the 
estate of Mr. Naper, of Loughcrew, county 
Meath. They entered the house armed with a 
dead man's hand with a lighted candle in it, be- 
lieving in the superstitious notion that a candle 
placed in a dead man's hand will not be seen 
by any but those by whom it is used ; and also 
that if a candle in a dead hand be introduced 
into a house, it will prevent those who may be 
asleep from awaking. The inmates, however, 
were alarmed, and the robbers fled, leaving the 
hand behind them." * 

1 Henderson, Folk- Lore of the Northern Counties of Eng* 
land, p. 202. , 

62 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

In the Middle Ages the hand of glory was 
used, just like the divining rod, for the detec- 
tion of buried treasures. 

Here, then, we have a large and motley group 
of objects the forked rod of ash or hazel, the 
springwort and the luck-flower, leaves, worms, 
stones, rings, and dead men's hands which 
are for the most part competent to open the 
way into cavernous rocks, and which all agree 
in pointing out hidden wealth. We find, more- 
over, that many of these charmed objects are 
carried about by birds, and that some of them 
possess, in addition to their generic properties, 
the specific power of benumbing people's senses. 
What, now, is the common origin of this whole 
group of superstitions ? And since mythology 
has been shown to be the result of primeval 
attempts to explain the phenomena of nature, 
what natural phenomenon could ever have given 
rise to so many seemingly wanton conceptions ? 
Hopeless as the problem may at first sight 
seem, it has nevertheless been solved. In his 
great treatise on " The Descent of Fire," Dr. 
Kuhn has shown that all these legends and tra- 
ditions are descended from primitive myths ex- 
planatory of the lightning and the storm-cloud. 1 

To us, who are nourished from childhood on 
the truths revealed by science, the sky is known 

1 Kuhn, Die Herabkunft des Fetters md de$ G&tUr franks, 
Berlin, 1859. 

63 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

to be merely an optical appearance due to the 
partial absorption of the solar rays in pass- 
ing through a thick stratum of atmospheric 
air ; the clouds are known to be large masses 
of watery vapour, which descend in raindrops 
when sufficiently condensed ; and the lightning 
is known to be a flash of light accompanying an 
electric discharge. But these conceptions are 
extremely recondite, and have been attained 
only through centuries of philosophizing and 
after careful observation and laborious experi- 
ment. To the untaught mind of a child or of 
an uncivilized man, it seems far more natural 
and plausible to regard the sky as a solid dome 
of blue crystal, the clouds as snowy mountains, 
or perhaps even as giants or angels, the light- 
ning as a flashing dart or a fiery serpent. In 
point of fact, we find that the conceptions ac- 
tually entertained are often far more grotesque 
than these* I can recollect once framing the 
hypothesis that the flaming clouds of sunset 
were transient apparitions, vouchsafed us by 
way of warning, of that burning Calvinistic hell 
with which my childish imagination had been 
unwisely terrified; 1 and I have known of a 

1 Saga me fbrwhan byth seo sunne read on fen ? Ic 
the secge, forthon lieo locath on helle. Tell me, why Is the 
sun red at even? I tell thee, because she looketh on hell,** 
Thorpe, Anakcta Anglo-Saxonica, p. n $ , apud Tylor, 
Primitive Culture, vol. ii. p. 63* Barbaric thought had 
partly anticipated my childish theory. 

6 4 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

four-year-old boy who thought that the snowy 
clouds of noonday were the white robes of the 
angels hung out to dry in the sun. 1 My little 
daughter is anxious to know whether it is ne- 
cessary to take a balloon in order to get to the 
place where God lives, or whether the same end 
can be accomplished by going to the horizon 
and crawling up the sky ; 2 the Mohammedan 
of old was working at the same problem when 
he called the rainbow the bridge Es-Sirat, over 
which souls must pass on their way to heaven. 
According to the ancient Jew, the sky was a 
solid plate, hammered out by the gods, and 
spread over the earth in order to keep up the 
ocean overhead ; 3 but the plate was full of 
little windows, which were opened whenever it 
became necessary to let the rain come through. 4 

1 fftf Still in North Gennan7 does the peasant sa7 of thunder, 
that the angels are playing skittles aloft, and of the snow, that 
they are shaking up the feather-beds in heaven." Baring- 
Gould, Book of Werewolves, p. 172. 

2 " The Polynesians imagine that the sky descends at the 
horizon and incloses the earth. Hence they call foreigners 
papalangi, or * heaven-bursters,' as having broken in from 
another world outside.'* Max Miiller, Chips 9 ii. 268. 

s Way-yo'hmer 'helohim y e hi raquia n h b e -thok ham- 
mayim wihi mavdil beyn mayim la-mayim. And said the 
gods, Let there be a hammered plate in the midst of the wa- 
ters, and let it be dividing between waters and waters.'* 
Genesis i. 6. 

* Genesis vH. 1 1 . 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

With equal plausibility the Greek represented 
the rainy sky as a sieve in which the daughters 
of Danaos were vainly trying to draw water ; 
while to the Hindu the rain-clouds were celes- 
tial cattle milked by the wind-god. In primi- 
tive Aryan lore, the sky itself was a blue sea, 
and the clouds were ships sailing over it ; and 
an English legend tells how one of these ships 
once caught its anchor on a gravestone in the 
churchyard, to the great astonishment of the 
people who were coming out of church. Cha- 
ron's ferry-boat was one of these vessels, and 
another was Odin's golden ship, in which the 
souls of slain heroes were conveyed to Valhalla. 
Hence it was once the Scandinavian practice 
to bury the dead in boats ; and in Altmark a 
penny is still placed in the mouth of the corpse, 
that it may have the means of paying its fare to 
the ghostly ferryman. 1 In such a vessel drifted 
the Lady of Shalott on her fatal voyage ; and 
of similar nature was the dusky barge, u dark 
as a funeral scarf from stem to stern/' in which 

1 See Kelly, Indo-European Folk-Lore, p. 1 20 ; who 
states also that in Bengal the Garrows burn their dead in a 
small boat, placed on top of the funeral pile, 

In their character of cows, also, the clouds were regarded 
as psychopomps j and hence it is still a popular superstition 
that a cow breaking into the yard foretokens a death in the 
family. 



66 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

Arthur was received by the black-hooded 
queens. 1 

But the fact that a natural phenomenon was 
explained in one way did not hinder it from be- 
ing explained in a dozen other ways. The fact 
that the sun was generally regarded as an all- 
conquering hero did not prevent its being called 
an egg, an apple, or a frog squatting on the 
waters, or Ixion's wheel, or the eye of Poly- 
phemos, or the stone of Sisyphos, which was no 
sooner pushed up to the zenith than it rolled 
down to the horizon. So the sky was not only 
a crystal dome or a celestial ocean, but it was 
also the Aleian land through which Bellerophon 
wandered, the country of the Lotos-eaters, 
or again the realm of the Graiai beyond the 
twilight ; and finally it was personified and wor- 
shipped as Dyaus or Varuna, the Vedic proto- 
types of the Greek Zeus and Ouranos. The 
clouds, too, had many other representatives 

1 The sun-god Freyr had a cloud-ship called Skithblath- 
nir, which is thus described in Dasent's Prose Edda : ** She 
is so great that all the ^Esir, with their weapons and war- 
gear, may find room on board her ; " but "when there is 
no need of faring on the sea In her, she is made . . . with 
so much craft that Freyr may fold her together like a cloth, 
and keep her in his bag." This same virtue was possessed by 
the fairy pavilion which the Peri Banou gave to Ahmed ; the 
cloud which is no bigger than a man's hand may soon over- 
spread the whole heaven, and shade the Sultan's army from 
the solar rays. 

6 7 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

besides ships and cows. In a future paper it 
will be shown that they were sometimes re- 
garded as angels or houris ; at present it more 
nearly concerns us to know that they appear, 
throughout all Aryan mythology, under the 
form of birds. It used to be a matter of hope- 
less wonder to me that Aladdin's innocent re- 
quest for a roc's egg to hang in the dome of 
his palace should have been regarded as a crime 
worthy of punishment by the loss of the won- 
derful lamp ; the obscurest part of the whole 
affair being perhaps the Jinni's passionate allu- 
sion to the egg as his master : " Wretch ! dost 
thou command me to bring thee my master, 
and hang him up in the midst of this vaulted 
dome ? " But the incident is to some extent 
cleared of its mystery when we learn that the 
roc's egg is the bright sun, and that the roc 
itself is the rushing storm-cloud which, in the 
tale of Sindbad, haunts the sparkling starry fir- 
mament, symbolized as a valley of diamonds. 1 
According to one Arabic authority, the length 

1 Euhemerism has done its best with this bird, represent- 
ing it as an immense vulture or condor .or as a reminiscence 
of the extinct dodo. But a Chinese myth, cited by Klaproth, 
well preserves its true character when it describes it as ft a 
bird which in flying obscures the sun 9 and of whose quills are 
made water -turn*** See Notweau Journal Anatique* torn. 
xii. p. 235. The big bird in the Norse tale of the ** Blue 
Belt" belongs to the same species. 

68 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

of its wings is ten thousand fathoms. But in 
European tradition it dwindles from these huge 
dimensions to the size of an eagle, a raven, or 
a woodpecker. Among the birds enumerated 
by Kuhn and others as representing the storm- 
cloud are likewise the wren, or " kinglet " 
(French roitelet] ; the owl, sacred to Athene ; 
the cuckoo, stork, and sparrow ; and the red- 
breasted robin, whose name Robert was origi- 
nally an epithet of the lightning-god Thor. In 
certain parts of France it is still believed that 
the robbing of a wren's nest will render the cul- 
prit liable to be struck by lightning. The same 
belief was formerly entertained in Teutonic 
countries with respect to the robin ; and I sup- 
pose that from this superstition is descended 
the prevalent notion, which I often encountered 
in childhood, that there is something peculiarly 
wicked in killing robins. 

Now, as the raven or woodpecker, in the 
various myths of schamir, is the dark storm- 
cloud, so the rock-splitting worm or plant or 
pebble which the bird carries in its beak and 
lets fall to the ground is nothing more or less 
thun the flash of lightning carried and dropped 
by the cloud. a If the cloud was supposed to 
be a great bird, the lightnings were regarded as 
^ rithing worms or serpents in its beak. These 
fiery serpents, cXi/c&u ypa/^octSfis <jkepo- 
i, are believed in to this day by the Cana- 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

dian Indians, who call the thunder their hiss- 
ing." 1 

But these are not the only mythical concep- 
tions which are to be found wrapped up in 
the various myths of schamir and the divining 
rod. The persons who told these stories were 
not weaving ingenious allegories about thunder- 
storms ; they were telling stories, or giving 
utterance to superstitions, of which the original 
meaning was forgotten. The old grannies who, 
along with a stoical indifference to the fate of 
quails and partridges, used to impress upon me 
the wickedness of killing robins, did not add 
that I should be struck by lightning if I failed 
to heed their admonitions. They had never 
heard that the robin was the bird of Thor; they 
merely rehearsed the remnant of the supersti- 
tion which had survived to their own times, 
while the essential part of it had long since faded 
from recollection. The reason for regarding a 
robin's life as more sacred than a partridge's had 
been forgotten ; but it left behind, as was natu- 
ral, a vague recognition of that mythical sanc- 
tity. The primitive meaning of a myth fades 
away as inevitably as the primitive meaning of 
a word or phrase ; and the rabbins who told of 
a worm which shatters rocks no more thought 
of the writhing thunderbolts than the modern 

1 Baring-Gould, Curious Myths 9 vol. ii. p. 146. Com- 
pare Tylor, Primitive Culture, vol. ii. p. 237, seq. 

70 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

reader thinks of oyster shells when he sees the 
word ostracism, or consciously breathes a prayer 
as he writes the phrase good-by. It is only in 
its callow infancy that the full force of a myth 
is felt, and its period of luxuriant development 
dates from the time when its physical signifi- 
cance is lost or obscured. It was because the 
Greek had forgotten that Zeus meant the bright 
sky, that he could make him king over an 
anthropomorphic Olympos. The Hindu Dy- 
aus, who carried his significance in his name as 
plainly as the Greek Helios, never attained 
such an exalted position ; he yielded to deities 
of less obvious pedigree, such as Brahma and 
Vishnu. 

Since, therefore, the myth-tellers recounted 
merely the wonderful stories which their own 
nurses and grandmas had told them, and had 
no intention of weaving subtle allegories or 
wrapping up a physical truth in mystic em- 
blems, it follows that they were not bound to 
avoid incongruities or to preserve a philosophi- 
cal symmetry in their narratives. In the great 
majority of complex myths, no such symmetry 
is to be found. A score of different mythical 
conceptions would get wrought into the same 
story, and the attempt to pull them apart and 
construct a single harmonious system of con- 
ceptions out of the pieces must often end in 
ingenious absurdity. If Odysseus is unques* 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

tionably the sun, so is the eye of Polyphemos, 
which Odysseus puts out. 1 But the Greek poet 
knew nothing of the incongruity, for he was 
thinking only of a superhuman hero freeing 
himself from a giant cannibal ; he knew no- 
thing of Sanskrit, or of comparative mythology, 
and the sources of his myths were as com- 
pletely hidden from his view as the sources of 
the Nile. 

We need not be surprised, then, to find that 
in one version of the schamir myth the cloud 
is the bird which carries the worm, while in 
another version the cloud is the rock or moun- 
tain which the talisman cleaves open ; nor need 
we wonder at it, if we find stories in which the 
two conceptions are mingled together without 
regard to an incongruity which in the mind of 
the myth-teller no longer exists* 2 

1 "If Polyphemos's eye be the sun, then Odysseus, the 
solar hero, extinguishes himself, a very primitive instance of 
suicide." Mahaffy, Prolegomena, p. 57, See, also, Brown, 
Poseidon, pp, 39, 40. This objection would be relevant only 
in case Homer were supposed to be constructing an allegory 
with entire knowledge of its meaning. It has no validity 
whatever when we recollect that Homer could have known 
nothing of the incongruity. 

2 The Sanskrit myth-teller indeed mixes up his materials 
in a way which seems ludicrous to a Western reader. He 
describes Indra (the sun-god) as not only cleaving the cloud- 
mountains with his sword, but also cutting off their wings 
and hurling them from the sky. See Burnouf, 

Pur ana, vi. 12, 26. 

72 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

In early Aryan mythology there is nothing 
by which the clouds are more frequently repre- 
sented than by rocks or mountains. Such were 
the Symplegades, which,, charmed by the harp 
of the wind-god Orpheus, parted to make way 
for the talking ship Argo, with its crew of solar 
heroes. 1 Such, too, were the mountains Ossa 
and Pelion, which the giants piled up one upon 
another in their impious assault upon Zeus, the 
lord of the bright sky. As Mr. Baring-Gould 
observes: "The ancient Aryan had the same 
name for cloud and mountain. To him the 
piles of vapour on the horizon were so like 
Alpine ranges that he had but one word whereby 
to designate both. 2 These great mountains of 
heaven were opened by the lightning. In the 
sudden flash he beheld the dazzling splendour 
within, but only for a moment, and then, with 

1 Mr. Tylor offers a different,' and possibly a better, ex- 
planation of the Symplegades as the gates of Night through, 
which the solar ship, having passed successfully once, may 
henceforth pass forever. See the details of the evidence in his 
Primitive Culture, i. 315. 

2 The Sanskrit parvata, a bulging or inflated body, means 
both ** cloud" and ft mountain." "In the Edda, too, the 
rocks, said to have been fashioned out of Ymir's bones, are 
supposed to be intended for clouds. In Old Norse Klakkr 
means both cloud and rock ; nay, the English word cloud 
itself has been identified with the Anglo-Saxon clud, rock. 
See Justi, Orient und Occident, vol ii. p. 62." Max Miiller, 
Rig-Feda, vol. i, p. 44. 

73 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

a crash, the celestial rocks closed again. Believ- 
ing these vaporous piles to contain resplendent 
treasures of which partial glimpse was obtained 
by mortals in a momentary gleam, tales were 
speedily formed, relating the adventures of some 
who had succeeded in entering these treasure 
mountains." 

This sudden flash is the smiting of the cloud- 
rock by the arrow of Ahmed, the resistless ham- 
mer of Thor, the spear of Odin, the trident of 
Poseidon, or the rod of Hermes. The forked 
streak of light is the archetype of the divining 
rod in its oldest form, that in which it not 
only indicates the hidden treasures, but, like the 
staff of the Ilsenstein shepherd, bursts open the 
enchanted crypt and reveals them to the aston- 
ished wayfarer. Hence the one thing essential 
to the divining rod, from whatever tree it be 
chosen, is that it shall be forked. 

It is not difficult to comprehend the reasons 
which led the ancients to speak of the light- 
ning as a worm, serpent, trident, arrow, or forked 
wand ; but when we inquire why it was some- 
times symbolized as a flower or leaf, or when 
we seek to ascertain why certain trees, such as 
the ash, hazel* white-thorn, and mistletoe, were 
supposed to be in a certain sense embodiments 
of it, we are entering upon a subject too com- 
plicated to be satisfactorily treated within the 
limits of the present paper. It has been said 

74 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

that the point of resemblance between a cow 
and a comet, that both have tails, was quite 
enough for the primitive word-maker : it was 
certainly enough for the primitive myth-teller. 1 
Sometimes the pinnate shape of a leaf, the fork- 
ing of a branch, the tri-cleft corolla, or even the 
red colour of a flower, seems to have been suffi- 
cient to determine the association of ideas. The 
Hindu commentators of the Veda certainly lay 
great stress on the fact that the palasa, one 
of their lightning-trees, is trident-leaved. The 
mistletoe branch is forked, like a wish-bone, 2 
and so is the stem which bears the forget-me- 
not or wild scorpion grass. So, too, the leaves 
of the Hindu ficus religiosa resemble long spear- 
heads. 3 But in many cases it is impossible for 

1 In accordance with the mediaeval " doctrine of signa- 
tures/' it was maintained " that the hard, stony seeds of the 
Gromwell must be good for gravel, and the knotty tubers 
of scrophularia for scrofulous glands ; while the scaly pappus 
of scaliosa showed it to be a specific in leprous diseases, the 
spotted leaves of pulmonaria that it was a sovereign remedy 
for tuberculous lungs, and the growth of saxifrage in the fis- 
sures of rocks that it would disintegrate stone in the bladder." 
Prior, Popular Names of British Plants, introd., p. xiv. 
See, also, Chapiel, La Doctrine des Signatures. Paris, 1866. 

2 Indeed, the wish-bone, or forked clavicle of a fowl, it- 
self belongs to the same family of talismans as the divining 
tod. 

8 The ash, on the other hand, has been from time im- 
memorial used for spears in many parts of the Aryan domain. 
The word <e$c meant, in Anglo-Saxon, indifferently " ash- 

75 



MYTHS AND MYTH^MAKERS 

us to determine with confidence the reasons 
which may have guided primitive menjta their 
choice of talismanic plants. In the case of some 
of these stories, it would no doubt be wasting 
ingenuity to attempt to assign a mythical origin 
for each point of detail. The ointment of the 
dervise, for instance, in the Arabian tale, has 
probably no special mythical significance, but 
was rather suggested by the exigencies of the 
story, in an age when the old mythologies were 
so far disintegrated and mingled together that 
any one talisman would serve as well as another 
the purposes of the narrator. But the lightning 
plants of Indo-European folk-lore cannot be 
thus summarily disposed of; for however diffi- 
cult it may be for us to perceive any connection 
between them and the celestial phenomena which 
they represent, the myths concerning them are 
so numerous and explicit as to render it certain 
that some such connection was imagined by the 
myth-makers. The superstition concerning the 
hand of glory is not so hard to interpret. In 
the mythology of the Finns, the storm-cloud is 
a black man with a bright copper hand ; and in 
Hindustan, Indra Savitar, the deity who slays 

tree" or " spear ; " and the same is, or has been, true of 
the French fresne and the Greek ^cXi'a. The root of tesc 
appears in the Sanskrit as, ec to throw " or " lance," whence 
asa, ef a bow,'* and asana, ** an arrow." See Pictet, On- 
gines Indo-Euro}eennes, i 222. 

7 6 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

the demon of the cloud, is golden-handed. The 
selection of the hand of a man who has been 
hanged is probably due to the superstition which 
regarded the storm~god Odin as peculiarly the 
lord of the gallows. The man who is raised upon 
the gallows is placed directly in the track of 
the wild huntsman, who comes with his hounds 
to carry off the victim ; and hence the notion, 
which, according to Mr. Kelly, is " very com- 
mon in Germany and not extinct in England," 
that every suicide by hanging is followed by a 
storm. 

The paths of comparative mythology are 
devious, but we have now pursued them long 
enough, I believe, to have arrived at a tolerably 
clear understanding of the original nature of the 
divining rod* Its power of revealing treasures 
has been sufficiently explained ; and its affinity 
for water results so obviously from the character 
of " the lightning myth as to need no further 
comment. But its power of detecting criminals 
still remains to be accounted for. 

In Greek mythology, the being which detects 
and punishes crime is the Erinys, the prototype 
of the Latin Fury, figured by late writers as a 
horrible monster with serpent locks. But this 
is a degradation of the original conception. The 
name Erinys did not originally mean Fury, and 
tt cannot be explained from Greek sources alone. 
It appears in Sanskrit as Saranyu> a word which 

77 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

signifies the light of morning creeping over the 
sky. And thus we are led to the startling 
conclusion that, as the light of morning re- 
veals the evil deeds done under the cover of 
night, so the lovely Dawn, or Erinys, came to 
be regarded under one aspect as the terrible 
detector and avenger of iniquity. Yet startling 
as the conclusion is, it is based on established 
laws of phonetic change, and cannot be gain- 
said. 

But what has the avenging daybreak to do 
with the lightning and the divining rod ? To 
the modern mind the association is not an 
obvious one : in antiquity it was otherwise. 
Myths of the daybreak and myths of the light- 
ning often resemble each other so closely that, 
except by a delicate philological analysis, it is 
difficult to distinguish the one from the other. 
The reason is obvious. In each case the phe- 
nomenon to be explained is the struggle be- 
tween the day-god and one of the demons of 
darknes$. There is essentially no distinction to 
the mind of the primitive man between the 
Panis, who steal Indra's bright cows and keep 
them in a dark cavern all night, and the throt- 
tling snake Ahi, or Echidna, who imprisons the 
waters in the stronghold of the thunder-cloud 
and covers the earth with a short-lived dark- 
ness. And so the poisoned arrows of Bellero- 
phon, which slay the storm dragon, differ in no 

78 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

essential respect from the shafts with which 
Odysseus slaughters the night demons who 
have for ten long hours beset his mansion. 
Thus the divining rod, representing as it does 
the weapon of the god of day, comes legiti- 
mately enough by its function of detecting and 
avenging crime. 

But the lightning not only reveals strange 
treasures and gives water to the thirsty land 
and makes plain what is doing under cover of 
darkness ; it also sometimes kills, benumbs, or 
paralyzes. Thus the head of the Gorgon Me- 
dusa turns into stone those who look upon it. 
Thus the ointment of the dervise, in the tale 
of Baba Abdallah, not only reveals all the trea- 
sures of the earth, but instantly thereafter blinds 
the unhappy man who tests its powers. And 
thus the hand of glory, which bursts open bars 
and bolts, benumbs also those who happen to 
be near it. Indeed, few of the favoured mortals 
who were allowed to visit the caverns opened 
by sesame, or the luck-flower, escaped without 
disaster. The monkish tale of " The Clerk and 
the Image," in which the primeval mythical 
features are curiously distorted, well illustrates 
this point. 

In the city of Rome there formerly stood 
an image, with its right hand extended, and on 
its forefinger the words " Strike here/* Many 
wise men puzzled in vain over the meaning of 

79 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the inscription ; but at last a certain priest ob- 
served that whenever the sun shone on the fig- 
ure, the shadow of the finger was discernible on 
the ground at a little distance from the statue. 
Having marked the spot, he waited until mid- 
night, and then began to dig. At last his spade 
struck upon something hard. It was a trap- 
door, below which a flight of marble steps de- 
scended into a spacious hall, where many men 
were sitting in solemn silence amid piles of gold 
and diamonds and long rows of enamelled 
vases. Beyond this he found another room, a 
gyntfcium filled with beautiful women reclining 
on richly embroidered sofas ; yet here, too, all 
was profound silence. A superb banqueting- 
hall next met his astonished gaze ; then a silent 
kitchen ; then granaries loaded with forage ; 
then a stable crowded with motionless horses. 
The whole place was brilliantly lighted by a 
carbuncle which was suspended in one corner 
of the reception room ; and opposite stood an 
archer, with his bow and arrow raised, in the act 
of taking aim at the jewel. As the priest passed 
back through this hall, he saw a diamond-hiked 
knife lying on a marble table ; and wishing to 
carry away something wherewith to accredit his 
story, he reached out his hand to take it ; but 
no sooner had he touched it than all was dark. 
The archer had shot with his arrow,, the bright 
jewel was shivered into a thousand pieces, the 

80 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

staircase had fled, and the priest found himself 
buried alive. 1 

Usually , however, though the lightning is 
wont to strike dead, with its basilisk glance, 
those who rashly enter its mysterious caverns, 
it is regarded rather as a benefactor than as a 
destroyer. The feelings with which the myth- 
making age contemplated the thunder-shower 
as it revived the earth paralyzed by a long 
drought are shown in the myth of Oidipous. 
The Sphinx, whose name signifies " the one 
who binds/' is the demon who sits on the cloud- 
rock and imprisons the rain, muttering dark 
sayings which none but the all-knowing sun 
may understand. The flash of solar light, which 
causes the monster to fling herself down from 
the cliff with a fearful roar, restores the land 
to prosperity. But besides this* the association 
of the thunderstorm with the approach of sum- 
mer has produced many myths in which the 
lightning is symbolized as the life-renewing 
wand of the victorious sun-god. Hence the 
use of the divining rod in the cure of disease ; 
and hence the large family of schamir myths in 

1 Compare Spenser's story of Sir Guyon, in the Faery 
Queen, where, however, the knight fares better than this poor 
priest. Usually these lightning caverns were like Ixion's 
treasure-house, into which none might look and live. This 
conception is the foundation of part of the story of Blue-Beard 
and of the Arabian tale of the third one-eyed Calender. 

81 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

which the dead are restored to life by leaves or 
herbs. In Grimm's tale of the Three Snake 
Leaves, e a prince Is buried alive (like Sindbad) 
with his dead wife, and seeing a snake approach- 
ing her body, he cuts It in three pieces. Pre- 
sently another snake, crawling from the corner, 
saw the other lying dead, and going away soon 
returned with three green leaves in its mouth ; 
then laying the parts of the body together so 
as to join, it put one leaf on each wound, and 
the dead snake was alive again. The prince, 
applying the leaves to his wife's body, restores 
her also to life." l In the Greek story, told by 
JElian and Apollodoros, Polyidos is shut up with 
the corpse of Glaukos, which he is ordered to 
restore to life. He kills a dragon which Is ap- 
proaching the body, but is presently astonished 
at seeing another dragon come with a blade of 
grass and place it upon its dead companion, 
which instantly rises from the ground. Polyi- 
dos takes the same blade of grass, and with it 
resuscitates Glaukos. The same incident occurs 
in the Hindu story of Panch Phul Ranee, and 
in Fouque's " Sir Elidoc," which is founded 
on a Breton legend. 

We need not wonder, then, at the extraordi- 
nary therapeutic properties which are in all Ar- 
yan folk-lore ascribed to the various lightning- 

1 Cox, Mythology of the Aryan Nations, vol. i. p. i6i. 

82 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

plants. In Sweden sanitary amulets are made 
of mistletoe twigs^ and the plant is supposed to 
be a specific against epilepsy and an antidote 
for poisons. In Cornwall children are passed 
through holes in ash-trees in order to cure them 
of hernia. Ash rods are used in some parts of 
England for the cure of diseased sheep, cows, 
and horses ; and in particular they are supposed 
to neutralize the venom of serpents. The no- 
tion that snakes are afraid of an ash-tree is not 
extinct even in the United States. The other 
day I was told, not by an old granny, but by a 
man fairly educated and endowed with a very 
unusual amount of good common sense, that 
a rattlesnake will sooner go through fire than 
creep over ash leaves or into the shadow of an 
ash-tree. Exactly the same statement is made 
by Pliny, who adds that if you draw a circle 
with an ash rod around the spot of ground on 
which a snake is lying, the animal must die 
of starvation, being as effectually imprisoned as 
Ugolino in the dungeon at Pisa. In Corn- 
wall it is believed that a blow from an ash 
stick will instantly kill any serpent. The ash 
shares this virtue with the hazel and fern. A 
Swedish peasant will tell you that snakes may 
be deprived of their venom by a touch with a 
hazel wand ; and when an ancient Greek had 
occasion to make his bed in the woods, he se- 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

lected fern leaves if possible, in the belief that 
the smell of them would drive away poisonous 
animals. 1 

But the beneficent character of the light- 
ning appears still more clearly in another class 
of myths. To the primitive man the shaft of 
light coming down from heaven was typical of 
the original descent of fire for the benefit and 
improvement of the human race. The Sioux 
Indians account for the origin of fire by a myth 
of unmistakable kinship ; they say that " their 
first ancestor obtained his fire from the sparks 
which a friendly panther struck from the rocks 
as he scampered up a stony hill" 2 This pan- 
ther is obviously the counterpart of the Aryan 
bird which drops schamir. But the Aryan im- 
agination hit upon a far more remarkable con- 
ception. The ancient Hindus obtained fire by 
a process similar to that employed by Count 
Rumford in his experiments on the generation 
of h'eat by friction* They first wound a couple 
of cords around a pointed stick in such a way 
that the unwinding of the one would wind up 
the other, and then, placing the point of the 
stick against a circular disk of wood, twirled it 
rapidly by alternate pulls on the two strings. 
This instrument is called a chark^ and is still 

i Kelly, Indo-European Folk-Lore, pp. 147, 183, 186, 
193, 
* Brinton, Myths of the New World, p. 151. 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

used in South Africa/ in Australia, in Sumatra, 
and among the Veddahs of Ceylon. The Rus- 
sians found it in Kamtchatka ; and it was for- 
merly employed in America, from Labrador to 
the Straits of Magellan. 2 The Hindus churned 
milk by a similar process ; 3 and in order to ex- 
plain the thunderstorm, a Sanskrit poem tells 
how "once upon a time the Devas, or gods, 
and their opponents, the Asuras, made a truce, 
and joined together in churning the ocean to 
procure amrita, the drink of immortality. They 
took Mount Mandara for a churning stick, and, 
wrapping the great serpent Sesha round it for 
a rope, they made the mountain spin round to 

1 Callaway, Zulu Nursery Tales, L 173, note 12. 

2 Tyler, Early History of Mankind, p. 238 ; Primitive 
Culture, vol. ii. p. 254 ; Darwin, Naturalist ' s Voyage, p. 
409. 

** Jacky's next proceeding was to get some dry sticks and 
wood, and prepare a fire, which, to George's astonishment, 
he lighted thus. He got a block of wood, in the middle of 
which he made a hole ; then he cut and pointed a long stick, 
and inserting the point into the block, worked it round be- 
tween his palms for some time and with increasing rapidity. 
Presently there came a smell of burning wood, and soon after 
it burst into a flame at the point of contact, Jacky cut slices 
of shark and roasted them." Reade, Never too Late to 
Mend, chap, xjxxviii. 

8 The production of fire by the drill is often called churn- 
ing, e. g,, " He took the uvati [chark], and sat down and 
churned it, and kindled a fire." Callaway, Zulu Nursery 
Tales, i. 174. 

85 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

and fro, the Devas pulling at the serpent's tail, 
and the Asuras at its head." 1 In this myth 
the churning stick, with its flying serpent-cords, 
is the lightning, and the amrita, or drink of 
immortality, is simply the rain-water, which in 
Aryan folk-lore possesses the same healing vir- 
tues as the lightning. 4C In Sclavonic myths it is 
the water of life which restores the dead earth, 
a water brought by a: bird from the depths of 
a gloomy cave/* 2 It is the celestial soma or 
mead which Indra loves to drink; it is the 
ambrosial nectar of the Olympian gods ; it is 
the charmed water which in the Arabian Nights 
restores to human shape the victims of wicked 
sorcerers ; and it is the elixir of life which me- 
diaeval philosophers tried to discover, and in 
quest of which Ponce de Leon traversed the 
wilds of Florida, 3 

The most interesting point in this Hindu 
myth is the name of the peaked mountain 
Mandara, or Manthara, which the gods and 
devils took for their churning stick. The word 
means <c a churning stick," and it appears also, 
with a prefixed preposition, in the name of the 

1 Kelly, Indo-European Folk-Lore, p, 39. Bumouf, 
Bhagavata Parana, viii. 6, 32. 

3 Baring-Gould, Curious Myths, p. 149. 

8 It is also the regenerating water of baptism, aad the 
<* holy water " of the Roman CathoHc. 



86 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

fire drill, pramantha. Now Kuhn has proved 
that this name, framantha^ is etymologically 
identical with Prometheus , the name of the bene- 
ficent Titan, who stole fire from heaven and be- 
stowed it upon mankind as the richest of boons. 
This sublime personage was originally nothing 
but the celestial drill which churns fire out of 
the clouds ; but the Greeks had so entirely for- 
gotten his origin that they interpreted his name 
as meaning " the one who thinks beforehand," 
and accredited him with a brother, Epimetheus, 
or " the one who thinks too late." The Greeks 
had adopted another name, tryfanon, for their 
fire drill, and thus the primitive character of 
Prometheus became obscured. 

I have said above that it was regarded as ab- 
solutely essential that the divining rod should 
be forked. To this rule, however, there was 
one exception, and if any further evidence be 
needed to convince the most sceptical that the 
divining rod is nothing but a symbol of the 
lightning, that exception will furnish such evi- 
dence. For this exceptional kind of divining 
rod was made of a pointed stick rotating in a 
block of wood, and it was the presence of hid- 
den water or treasure which was supposed to 
excite the rotatory motion. 

In the myths relating to Prometheus, the 
lightning-god appears as the originator of civili- 

87 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

zation, sometimes as the creator of the human 
race, and always as its friend/ suffering in its 
behalf the most fearful tortures at the hands of 
the jealous Zeus. In one story he creates man 
by making a clay image and infusing into it a 
spark of the fire which he had brought from 
heaven ; in another story he is himself the first 
man. In the Peloponnesian myth Phoroneus, 
who is Prometheus under another name, is the 
first man, and his mother was an ash-tree. In 
Norse mythology, also, the gods were said to 
have made the first man out of the ash-tree 
Yggdrasil. The association of the heavenly fire 
with the life-giving forces of nature is very com- 
mon in the myths of both hemispheres, and in 
view of the facts already cited it need not sur- 
prise us. Hence the Hindu Agni and the Norse 
Thor were patrons of marriage, and in Norway 
tKe most lucky day on which to be married is 
still supposed to be Thursday, which in old 
times was the day of the fire-god. 2 Hence the 
lightning plants have divers virtues in matters 
pertaining to marriage* The Romans made 
their wedding torches of white-thorn; hazel- 

1 In the Vedas the rain-god Soma, originally the personi- 
fication of the sacrificial ambrosia, is the deity who imparts to 
men life, knowledge, and happiness. See Breal, Hercule ft 
Cacus, p. 85. Tylor, Primitive Culture, vol. EL p. 277. 

2 We may, perhaps, see here the reason for making the 
Greek fire-god Hephaistos the husband of Aphrodite. 

88 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

nuts are still used all over Europe in divina- 
tions relating to the future lover or sweetheart ; 1 
and under a mistletoe bough it is allowable for 
a gentleman to kiss a lady. A vast number 
of kindred superstitions are described by Mr. 
Kelly, to whom I am indebted for many of 
these examples, 2 

Thus we reach at last the completed concep- 
tion of the divining rod, or as it is called in this 
sense the wish rod, with its kindred talismans, 
from Aladdin's lamp and the purse of Bedred- 
din Hassan, to the Sangreal, the philosopher's 
stone, and the goblets of Oberon and Tristram. 
These symbols of the reproductive energies of 
nature, which give to the possessor every good 
and perfect gift, illustrate the uncurbed belief 
in the power of wish which the ancient man 
shared with modern children. In the Norse 
story of Prodi's quern, the myth assumes a 
whimsical shape. The prose Edda tells of a 

1 " Our country maidens are well aware that triple leaves 
plucked at hazard from the common ash are worn in the 
breast for the purpose of causing prophetic dreams respecting 
a dilatory lover. The leaves of the yellow trefoil are sup- 
posed to possess similar virtues." Harland and Wilkinson, 
Lancashire Folk-Lore, p. ,20. 

2 *< In Peru, a mighty and far- worshipped deity was Cat- 
equil, the thunder-god, ... he who in thunder-flash and 
clap hurls from his sling the small, round, smooth thunder- 
stones, treasured in the villages as fire fetiches and charms to 
kindle the flames of love.'* Tylor, op. cit* vol. IL p. 239. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

primeval age of gold, when everybody had 
whatever he wanted. This was because the 
giant Frodi had a mill which ground out peace 
and plenty and abundance of gold withal, so that 
it lay about the roads like pebbles. Through 
the inexcusable avarice of Frodi, this wonderful 
implement was lost to the world. For he kept 
his maid-servants working at the mill until they 
got out of patience, and began to make it grind 
out hatred and war. Then came a mighty sea- 
rover by night and slew Frodi and carried away 
the maids and the quern. When he got well 
out to sea, he told them to grind out salt, and 
so they did with a vengeance. They ground the 
ship full of salt and sank it, and so the quern 
was lost forever, but the sea remains salt unto 
this day. 

Mr. Kelly rightly identifies Frodi with the 
sun-god Fro or Freyr, and observes that the 
magic mill is only another form of the fire- 
churn, or chark. According to another version 
the quern is still grinding away and keeping 
the sea salt, and over the place where it lies 
there is a prodigious whirlpool or maelstrom 
which sucks down ships. 

In its completed shape, the lightning wand 
is the caduceusy or rod of Hermes. I observed, 
in the preceding paper, that in the Greek con- 
ception of Hermes there have been fused to- 
gether the attributes of two deities who were 

90 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

originally distinct. The Hermes of the Ho- 
meric Hymn is a wind-god; but the later 
Hermes Agoraios, the patron of gymnasia, the 
mutilation of whose statues caused such terri- 
ble excitement in Athens during the Pelopon- 
nesian War, is a very different personage. He 
is a fire-god, invested with many solar attributes, 
and represents the quickening forces of nature. 
In this capacity the invention of fire was as- 
cribed to him as well as to Prometheus ; he was 
said to be the friend of mankind, and was sur- 
named Ploutodotes, or " the giver of wealth." 
The Norse wind-god Odin has in like man- 
ner acquired several of the attributes of Freyr 
and Thor. 1 His lightning spear, which is bor- 
rowed from Thor, appears by a comical meta- 
morphosis as a wish rod which will administer 
a sound thrashing to the enemies of its posses- 
sor. Having cut a hazel stick, you have only 
to lay down an old coat, name your intended 
victim, wish he was there, and whack away : he 
will howl with pain at every blow. This won- 
derful cudgel appears in Dasent's tale of cc The 
Lad who went to the North Wind," with which 
we may conclude this discussion. The story is 
told, with little variation, in Hindustan, Ger- 
many, and Scandinavia. 

1 In Polynesia, "the great deity Maui adds a new com- 
plication to his enigmatic solar-celestial character by appearing 
as a wind-god.** Tylor, op. rit. vol f ii. p. 242. 

91 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

The North Wind, representing the mischiev- 
ous Hermes., once blew away a poor woman's 
meal. So her boy went to the North Wind and 
demanded his rights for the meal his mother 
had lost. " I have n't got your meal/' said the 
Wind, " but here 's a tablecloth which will cover 
Itself with an excellent dinner whenever you tell 
it to." So the lad took the cloth and started for 
home. At nightfall he stopped at an inn, spread 
his cloth on the table, and ordered it to cover 
itself with good things, and so it did. But the 
landlord, who thought it would be money in 
his pocket to have such a cloth, stole it after the 
boy had gone to bed, and substituted another 
just like it in appearance. Next day the boy 
went home in great glee to show off for his 
mother's astonishment what the North Wind 
had given him, but all the dinner he got that 
day was what the old woman cooked for him, 
In his despair he went back to the North Wind 
and called him a liar, and again demanded his 
rights for the meal he had lost. " I have n't got 
your meal," said the Wind, " but here 's a ram 
which will drop money out of its fleece when- 
ever you tell it to." So the lad travelled home, 
stopping over-night at the same inn, and when 
he got home he found himself with a ram which 
did n't drop coins out of its fleece, A third time 
he visited the North Wind, and obtained a bag 
with a stick in it which, at the word of command, 

92 



THE DESCENT OF FIRE 

would jump out of the bag and lay on until told 
to stop. Guessing how matters stood as to his 
cloth and ram, he turned in at the same tavern., 
and going to a bench lay down as if to sleep. 
The landlord thought that a stick carried about 
In a bag must be worth something, and so he 
stole quietly up to the bag, meaning to get the 
stick out and change it. But just as he got 
within whacking distance, the boy gave the word, 
and out jumped the stick and beat the thief 
until he promised to give back the ram and the 
tablecloth. And so the boy got his rights for 
the meal which the North Wind had blown 
away. 

October , 1870 



93 



Ill 

WEREWOLVES AND SWAN- 
MAIDENS 

IT is related by Ovid that Lykaon, king of 
Arkadia, once invited Zeus to dinner, and 
served up for him a dish of human flesh, 
in order to test the god's omniscience. But 
the trick miserably failed, and the impious mon- 
arch received the punishment which his crime 
had merited. He was transformed into a wolf, 
that he might henceforth feed upon the viands 
with which he had dared to pollute the table 
of the king of Olympos. From that time forth, 
according to Pliny, a noble Arkadian was each 
year, on the festival of Zeus Lykaios, led to the 
margin of a certain lake. Hanging his clothes 
upon a tree, he then plunged into the water and 
became a wolf. For the space of nine years he 
roamed about the adjacent woods, and then, if 
he had not tasted human flesh during all this 
time, he was allowed to swim back to the place 
where his clothes were hanging, put them on, 
and return to his natural form. It is further 
related of a certain Demainetos, that, having 
once been present at a human sacrifice to Zeus 
94 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

Lykaios, he ate of the flesh, and was transformed 
into a wolf for a term of ten years, 1 

Tiiese.and.ather sljmlarmythical germs were 
developed by the mediaeval imagination into the 
horiibJe superstition of werewolves. 

A werewolf^ or hup-garou? was a person who 
had the power of transforming himself into a 
wolf, being endowed, while in the lupine state, 
with the intelligence of a man, the ferocity of a 
wolf, and the irresistible strength of a demon* 
The ancients believed in the existence of such 
persons; but in the Middle Ages the meta- 
morphosis was supposed to be a phenomenon 
of daily occurrence, and even at the present day, 
in secluded portions of Europe, the supersti- 
tion is still cherished by peasants. The belief, 
moreover, is supported by a vast amount of 
evidence, which can neither be argued nor pooh- 
poohed into insignificance. ^ It is the business 
of the comparative mythologist to trace the pedi- 
gree of the ideas from which such a conception 
may have sprung ; while to the critical historian 
belongs the task of ascertaining and classifying 
the actual facts which this particular conception 
was used to interpret. 

The mediaeval belief in werewolves is es- 

* Compare Plato, Republic, viii. 15. 

2 Were-wolf=. man-wolf, wer meaning "man." Gar oil 
is a Gallic corruption of werewolf, so that loup-garou is a tau- 
tological expression. 

95 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

pecially adapted to illustrate the complicated 
manner in which divers mythical conceptions 
and misunderstood natural occurrences will com- 
bine to generate a long-enduring superstition. 
Mr. Cox, indeed, would have us believe that 
the whole notion arose from an unintentional 
play upon words ; but the careful survey of the 
field, which has been taken by Hertz and Bar- 
ing-Gould, leads to the conclusion that many 
other circumstances have been at work. The 
delusion, though doubtless purely mythical in 
its origin, nevertheless presents in its developed 
state a curious mixture of mythical and histor- 
ical elements. 

With regard to the Arkadian legend, taken 
by itself, Mr. Cox is probably right. The story 
seems to belong to that large class of myths 
which have been devised in order to explain the 
meaning of equivocal words whose true signifi- 
cance has been forgotten. The epithet Lykaios^ 
as applied to Zeus, had originally no reference 
to wolves : it means " the bright one," and gave 
rise to lycanthropic legends only because of 
the similarity in sound between the names for 
"wolf 1 and " brightness." Aryan mythology 
furnishes numerous other instances of this con- 
fusion. The solar deity, Phoibos Lykegenes, 
was originally the <c offspring of light ; " but 
popular etymology made a kind of werewolf 
of him by interpreting his name as the " wolf- 

96 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

born." The name of the hero Autolykos means 
simply the " self-luminous ; " but it was more 
frequently interpreted as meaning " a very wolf/* 
in allusion to the supposed character of its pos- 
sessor. Bazra, the name of the citadel of Car- 
thage, was the Punic word for cc fortress ; " but 
the Greeks confounded it with byrsa, " a hide/* 
and hence the story of the ox-hides cut into 
strips by Dido in order to measure the area of 
the place to be fortified. The old theory that 
the Irish were Phoenicians had a similar origin. 
The name Fena y used to designate the old Scoti 
or Irish, is the plural of Fion, ^ fair," seen in 
the name of the hero Fion Gall, or c< Fin- 
gal ; " but the monkish chroniclers identified 
Fena with Phoinix, whence arose the myth ; and 
by a like misunderstanding of the epithet Afi- 
ledh, or "warrior," applied to Fion by the Gaelic 
bards, there was generated a mythical hero, Mi- 
lesiuSy and the sobriquet f Milesian," colloqui- 
ally employed in speaking of the Irish. 1 So the 
Franks explained the name of the town Daras, 
in Mesopotamia, by the story that the Em- 
peror Justinian once addressed the chief magis- 
trate with the exclamation, daras, a thou shalt 
give : " 2 the Greek chronicler, Malalas, who 
spells the name Doras, informs us with equal 

1 Meyer, in Bunsen's Philosophy of Universal History, 
vol. L p. 151. 

3 Aimoin, De Gestis Francorum, ii, 5. 

97 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

complacency that it was the place where Alex- 
ander overcame Codomanmis with Sopi/, " the 
spear." A certain passage in the Alps is called 
Scaletta, from its resemblance to a staircase ; but 
according to a local tradition it owes its name 
to the bleaching skeletons of a company of Moors 
who were destroyed there in the eighth century, 
while attempting to penetrate into Northern Italy. 
The name of Antwerp denotes the town built 
at a "wharf; " but it sounds very much like 
the Flemish handt werpen^ " hand-throwing : " 
cc hence arose the legend of the giant who cut 
off the hands of those who passed his castle 
without paying him blackmail, and threw them 
into the Scheldt/' l In the myth of Bishop 
Hatto, related in a previous paper, the Mause- 
thurm is a corruption of maut-thurm ; it means 
" customs-tower," and has nothing to do with 
mice or rats. Doubtless this etymology was the 
cause of the floating myth getting fastened to 
this particular place ; that it did not give rise to 
the myth itself is shown by the existence of the 
same tale in other places. Somewhere in Eng- 
land there is a place called Chateau Vert ; the 
peasantry have corrupted it into Shotover, and 
say that it has borne that name ever since Little 
John shot over a high hill in the neighbour- 
hood 2 Latium means " the flat land ; " but, 

1 Taylor, Words and Places > p. 393. 

fl Very similar to this is the etymological confusion upon 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

according to Virgil, it is the place where Saturn 
once hid (latuissef) from the wrath of his usurp- 
ing son Jupiter. 1 

It was in this way that the constellation of 
the Great Bear received its name. The Greek 
word arktoSy answering to the Sanskrit riksha, 
meant originally any bright object, and was ap- 
plied to the bear for what reason it would 
not be easy to state and to that constella- 
tion which was most conspicuous in the lati- 
tude of the early home of the Aryans. When 
the Greeks had long forgotten why these stars 
were called arktoi^ they symbolized them as a 
Great Bear fixed in the sky. So that, as Max 
Miiller observes, " the name of the Arctic re- 
gions r rests on a misunderstanding of a name 
framed thousands of years ago in Central Asia, 
and the surprise with which many a thoughtful 

which is based the myth of tlie * confusion of tongues " in 
the eleventh chapter of Genesis. The name ** Babel ** is 
really Bab-Il, or "the gate of Godj" but the Hebrew 
writer erroneously derives the word from the root V^* balal, 
( * to confuse ;" and hence arises the mythical explanation 
that Babel was a place where human speech became confused. 
See RawHnson, in Smith's Dictionary of the Bible, vol. i. 
p. 149 ; Renan, Histoire des Langues Bemitiques, vol. i* p. 32; 
Donaldson, New Cratylus, p. 74, note; Colenso on the Pen- 
tateuch, vol. iv. p. 268. 

1 Virg. j3En. yiii. 322. With Latium compare TrAarue, 
Skr. prat A (to spread out), Eng.j&tf. Ferrar, Comparative 
Grammar of Gfeek, Latin, and Sanskrit, vol. i. p. 31. 

99 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

observer has looked at these seven bright stars, 
wondering why they were ever called the Bear, 
is removed by a reference to the early annals of 
human speech/' Among the Algonquins the 
sun-god Michabo was represented as a hare, his 
name being compounded of michi, a great," and 
wafros, "a hare ; " yet wabos also meant "white/* 
so that the god was doubtless originally called 
simply " the Great White One/' The same 
naiVe process has made bears of the Arkadians, 
whose name, like that of the Lykians, merely 
signified that they were " children of light ; " 
an4 the metamorphosis of Kallisto, mother of 
Arkas, into a bear^and of Lykaon into a wolf, 
rests apparently upon no other foundation than 
an erroneous, etyiaolpgy. Originally Lykaon 
was neither man nor wolf; he was but another 
form of Phoibos Lykegenes, the light-born 
sun, and, as Mr. Cox has shown, his legend is 
but a variation of that of Tantalos, who in time 
of drought offers to Zeus the flesh of his own 
offspring, the withered fruits, and is punished 
for his impiety* 

It seems to me, however, that this explana- 
tion, though valid as far as it goes, is inadequate 
to explain all the features of the werewolf su- 
perstition, or to account for its presence in all 
Aryan countries and among many peoples who 
are not of Aryan origin. There can be no 



100 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

doubt that the myth-makers transformed Ly- 
kaon into a wolf because of his unlucky name ; 
because what really meant "bright man" 
seemed to them to mean " wolf-man ; " but it 
has by no means been proved that a similar 
equivocation occurred in the case of all the 
primitive Aryan werewolves, nor has it been 
shown to be probable that among each people 
the being with the uncanny name got thus acci- 
dentally confounded with the particular beast 
most dreaded by that people. Etymology alone 
does not explain the fact that while Gaul has 
been the favourite haunt of the man-wolf, 
Scandinavia has been preferred by the man- 
bear, and Hindustan by the man-tiger. To ac- 
count for such a widespread phenomenon we 
must seek a more general cause. 

Nothing is more strikingly characteristic of 
primitive thinking than the close community 
of nature which it assumes between man and 
brute. The doctrine of metempsychosis^ which 
is found in some shape or other all over the 
world, implies a fundamental identity between 
the two ; the Hindu is taught to respect the 
flocka. browsing in the meadow, and will on no 
account -lift his hand against a cow, for who 
knows but it may be his own grandmother ? 
The-*Mceat researches of M'K M'Lennan and 
Mr. Herbert Spencer have Served to connect 

101 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

this feeling with the primeval worship of ances- 
tors and with the savage customs of totemism. 1 
The worship of ancestors seems to have been 
everywhere the oldest systematized form of 
fetichistic religion. The reverence paid to the 
chieftain of the tribe while living was contin- 
ued and exaggerated after his death- The un- 
civilized man is everywhere incapable of grasp- 
ing the idea of death as it is apprehended by 
civilized people. He cannot understand that a 
man should pass away so as to be no longer 
capable of communicating with his fellows. The 
image of his dead chief or comrade remains in 
his mind, and the savage's philosophic realism 
far surpasses that of the most extravagant me- 
diaeval schoolmen ; to him the persistence of 
the idea implies the persistence of the reality. 
The dead man, accordingly, is not really dead ; 
he has thrown off his body like a husk, yet still 
retains his old appearance, and often shows 
himself to his old friends, especially after night- 
fall. He is no doubt possessed of more exten- 
sive powers than before his transformation, 2 and 

1 M'Lennan, ** The Worship of Animals and Plants," 
Fortnightly Review, N. s. vol. vi. pp. 407427, 562582, 
vol. vii. pp. 194216 ; Spencer, The Origin of minimal Wor- 
ship, id. vol. vii. pp. 535-550, reprinted in Ms Recent 
Discussions in Science, etc., pp. 3156. 

2 Thus is explained the singular conduct of the Hindu, 
who slays himself before his enemy's door, in order to acquire 
greater power of injuring him. * A certain Brahman, on 

IO2 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

may very likely have a share in regulating the 
weather, granting or withholding rain. There- 
fore, argues the uncivilized mind, he is to be 
cajoled and propitiated more sedulously now 
than before his strange transformation. 

This kind of worship still maintains a lan- 
guid existence as the state religion of China, and 
it still exists as a portion of Brahmanisrn ; but 
in the Vedic religion it is to be seen in all its 
vigour and in all its naive simplicity. Accord- 
ing to the ancient Aryan, the Pitris y or cc Fa- 
thers " (Lat. patres) y live in the sky along with 
Yama, the great original Pitri of mankind. 
This first man came down from heaven in the 
lightning, and back to heaven both himself and 
all his offspring must have gone. There they 
distribute light unto men below, and they shine 
themselves as stars ; and hence the Christian- 

whose lands a Kshatriya raja had built a house, ripped him- 
self up in revenge, and became a demon of the Mnd called 
Brahmadasyu, who has been ever since the terror of the whole 
country, and is the most common village-deity in Kharakpur. 
Toward the close of the last century there were two Brahmans, 
out of whose house a man had wrongfully, as they thought, 
taken forty rupees ; whereupon one of the Brahmans pro- 
ceeded to cut off his own mother's head, with the professed 
view, entertained by both mother and son, that her spirit, 
excited by the beating of a large drum during forty days, 
might haunt, torment, and pursue to death the taker of their 
money and those concerned with him." Tylor, Primitive 
Culture, vol. ii. p, 103. 

103 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ized German peasant, fifty centuries later, tells 
his children that the stars are angels' eyes, and 
the English cottager impresses it on the youth- 
ful mind that it is wicked to point at the stars, 
though why he cannot tell. But the Pitris are 
not stars only, nor do they content themselves 
with idly looking down on the affairs of men, 
after the fashion of the laissez-faire divinities 
of Lucretius. They are, on the contrary, very 
busy with the weather ; they send rain, thun- 
der, and lightning ; and they especially delight 
in rushing over the housetops in a great gale 
of wind, led on by theif chief, the mysterious 
huntsman, Hermes or Odin. 

It has been elsewhere shown that the howl- 
ing dog, or wish-hound of Hermes, whose ap- 
pearance under the windows of a sick person 
is such an alarming portent, is merely the tem- 
pest personified. Throughout all Aryan my- 
thology the souls of the dead are supposed to 
ride on the night-wind, with their howling dogs, 
gathering into their throng the souls of those 
just dying as they pass by their houses. 1 Some- 
times the whole complex conception is wrapped 
up in the notion of a single dog, the messen- 
ger of the god of shades, who comes to sum- 
mon the departing soul. Sometimes, instead of 

1 Hence, in many parts of Europe, it is still customary to 
open the windows when a person dies, in order that the soul 
may not be hindered in joining the mystic cavalcade. 
IO4 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

a dog, we have a great ravening wolf who comes 
to devour its victim and extinguish the sunlight 
of life, as that old wolf of the tribe of Fenrir 
devoured little Red Riding-Hood with her robe 
of scarlet twilight. 1 Thus we arrive at a true 
werewolf myth. The storm-wind, or howling 
Rakshasa of Hindu folk-lore, is " a great mis- 
shapen giant with red beard and red hair, with 
pointed protruding teeth, ready to lacerate and 
devour human flesh ; his body is covered with 
coarse, bristling hair, his huge mouth is open, 
he looks from side to side as he walks, lusting 
after the flesh and blood of men, to satisfy his 
raging hunger and quench his consuming thirst. 

1 The story of little Red Riding-Hood is " mutilated in 
the English version, but known more perfectly by old wives 
in Germany, who can tell that the lovely little maid in her 
shining red satin cloak was swallowed with her grandmother 
by the wolf, till they both came out safe and sound when the 
hunter cut open the sleeping beast." Tylor, Primitive 
Culture, L 307, where also see the kindred Russian story of 
Vasilissa the Beautiful. Compare the case of Tom Thumb, 
who "was swallowed by a cow and came out unhurt; ** 
the story of Saktideva swallowed by the fish and cut out 
again, in Somadeva Bhatta, ii. 118184; and the story 
of Jonah swallowed by the whale, in the Old Testament. 
All these are different versions of the same myth, and refer to 
the alternate swallowing up and casting forth of Day by Night* 
which is commonly personified as a wolf, and now and then 
as a great fish. Compare Grimm's story of the Wolf and 
Seven Kids, Tylor, lot. at., and see Early History of Man- 
kind, p. 337 ; Hardy, Manual of Buddhism, p. 501* 

105 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Toward nightfall his strength increases mani- 
fold ; he can change his shape at will ; he haunts 
the woods, and roams howling through the 
jungle." 1 

Now if the storm-wind is a host of Pitris, or 
one great Pitri who appears as a fearful giant, 
and is also a pack of wolves or wish-hounds, 
or a single savage dog or wolf, the inference is 
obvious to the mythopoeic mind that men may 
become wolves, at least after death. And to 
the uncivilized thinker this inference is strength- 
ened, as Mr. Spencer has shown, by evidence 
registered on his own tribal totem or heraldic 
emblem. The bears and lions and leopards of 
heraldry are the degenerate descendants of the 
totem of savagery which designated the tribe by 
a beast symbol. To the untutored mind there 
Is everything in a name ; and the descendant 
of Brown Bear or Yellow Tiger or Silver Hy- 
sena cannot be pronounced unfaithful to his own 
style of philosophizing, if he regards his ances- 
tors, who career about his hut in the darkness 
of night, as belonging to whatever order of 
beasts his totem associations may suggest. 

Thus we not only see a ray of light thrown 
on the subject of metempsychosis, but we get 
a glimpse of the curious process by which the 
intensely realistic mind of antiquity arrived at 

1 Baring-Gould, Book of Werewolves, p. 178 ; Muir, 
Sanskrit Texts, ii. 435. 

1 06 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

the notion that men could be transformed into 
beasts. For the belief that the soul can tem- 
porarily quit the body during lifetime has been 
universally entertained ; and from the concep- 
tion of wolf-like ghosts it was but a short step 
to the conception of corporeal werewolves. In 
the Middle Ages the phenomena of trance and 
catalepsy were cited in proof of the theory that 
the soul can leave the body and afterward return 
to it. Hence it was very difficult for a person 
accused of witchcraft to prove an alibi; for to 
any amount of evidence showing that the body 
was innocently reposing at home and in bed, the 
rejoinder was obvious that the soul may never- 
theless have been in attendance at the witches* 
sabbath or busied in maiming a neighbour's 
cattle. According to one mediaeval notion, the 
soul of the werewolf quit its human body, which 
remained in a trance until its return. 1 

The mythological basis of the werewolf su- 
perstition is now, I believe, sufficiently indicated. 
The belief, however, did not reach its complete 
development, or acquire its most horrible fea- 
tures, until the pagan habits of thought which 
had originated it were modified by contact with 
Christian theology. To the ancient there was 
nothing necessarily diabolical in the transforma- 
tion of a man into a beast. But Christianity, 

1 In those days even an after-dinner nap seems to have 
fceen thought uncanny. See Dasent, Burnt Njal, i. xxi. 

107 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

which retained such a host of pagan concep- 
tions tinder such strange disguises, which de- 
graded the " All-father " Odin into the ogre of 
the castle to which Jack climbed on his bean- 
stalk, and which blended the beneficent light- 
ning-god Thor and the mischievous Hermes 
and the faun-like Pan into the grotesque Teu- 
tonic Devil, did not fail to impart a new and 
fearful character to the belief in werewolves. 
Lycanthropy became regarded as a species of 
witchcraft ; the werewolf was supposed to have 
obtained his peculiar powers through the favour 
or connivance of the Devil ; and hundreds of 
persons were burned alive or broken on the 
wheel for having availed themselves of the priv- 
ilege of beast metamorphosis. The superstition, 
thus widely extended and greatly intensified, was 
confirmed by many singular phenomena which 
cannot be omitted from any thorough discussion 
of the nature and causes of lycanthropy. 

The first of these phenomena is the Berserker 
insanity, characteristic of Scandinavia, but not 
unknown in other countries. In times wheu kill- 
ing one's enemies often formed a pak of the ne- 
cessary business of life, persons werelfrequently 
found who killed for the mere love of the 
thing ; with whom slaughter was an end desir- 
able in itself, not merely a means to a desirable 
end. What the miser is In an age which worships 
mammon, such was the Berserker in an age 
108 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

when the current idea of heaven was that of a 
place where people could hack each other to 
pieces through all eternity, and when the man 
who refused a challenge was punished with con- 
fiscation of his estates. With these Northmen, 
in the ninth century, the chief business and 
amusement in life was to set sail for some 
pleasant country, like Spain or France, and 
make all the coasts and navigable rivers hide- 
ous with rapine and massacre. When at home, 
in the intervals between their freebooting expe- 
ditions, they were liable to become possessed by 
a strange homicidal madness, during which they 
would array themselves in the skins of wolves 
or bears, and sally forth by night to crack the 
backbones, smash the skulls, and sometimes to 
drink with fiendish glee the blood of unwary 
travellers or loiterers. These fits of madness 
were usually followed by periods of utter ex- 
haustion and nervous depression. 1 

Such, according to the unanimous testimony 
of historians, was the celebrated cc Berserker 
rage," not peculiar to the Northland, although 
there most conspicuously manifested. Taking 

1 See Dasent, Burnt Nfa/ 9 vol. i. p. xxii. ; Grettis Saga, 
by Magnusson and Morris, chap, xix.; Figa G /urn's Saga, 
by Sir Edmund Head, p. 13, note, where the Berserkers 
are said to have maddened themselves with drugs. Dasent 
compares them with the Malays, who work themselves into 
a frenzy by means of arrack, or hasheesh, and run amuck, 
109 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

now a step In advance, we find that in com- 
paratively civilized countries there have been 
many cases of monstrous homicidal insanity. 
The two most celebrated cases, among those 
collected by Mr. Baring-Gould, are those of 
the Marechal de Retz, in 1440, and of Eliza- 
beth, a Hungarian countess, in the seventeenth 
century. The Countess Elizabeth enticed young 
girls into her palace on divers pretexts, and then 
coolly murdered them, for the purpose of bath- 
ing in their blood. The spectacle of human 
suffering became at last such a delight to her 
that she would apply with her own hands the 
most excruciating tortures, relishing the shrieks 
of her victims as the epicure relishes each sip 
of his old Chateau Margaux. In this way she 
is said to have murdered six hundred and fifty 
persons before her evil career was brought to 
an end ; though, whafi one recollects the fa- 
mous men in buckram pnd the notorious trio 
of crows, one is inclined to strike off a cipher, 
and regard sixty-fpe as a sufficiently imposing 
and far less improbable number. But the case 
of the Marechal de Retz is still more frightful. 
A marshal of Et-ance, a scholarly man, a patriot, 
and a man of holy life, he became suddenly 
possessed by ; an uncontrollable desire to murder 
children. During seven years he continued to 
inveigle little boys and girls into his castle, at 
the rate of about two each week, (?) and then 
no 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN^MAIDENS 

put them to death In various ways, that he 
might witness their agonies and bathe in their 
blood ; experiencing after each occasion the 
most dreadful remorse, but led on by an irre- 
sistible craving to repeat the crime. When this 
unparalleled iniquity was finally brought to 
light, the castle was found to contain bins full 
of children's bones. The horrible details of the 
trial are to be found in the histories of France 
by Michelet and Martin. 

Going a step further, we find cases in which 
the propensity to murder has been accompanied 
by cannibalism. In 1598 a tailor of Chalons 
was sentenced by the parliament of Paris to be 
burned alive for lycanthropy. <c This wretched 
man had decoyed children into his shop, or at- 
tacked them in the gloaming when they strayed 
in the woods, had torn them .with his teeth and 
killed them, after which he seeMs calmly to have 
dressed their flesh as ordinary meat, and to 
have eaten it with a great relish. The number 
of little innocents whom he destroyed is un- 
known. A whole caskful of bones was discov- 
ered in his house." 1 About 1850 a beggar in 
the village of Polomyia, in Galicia, was proved 
to have killed and eaten fourteen children. A 
house had one day caught fire and burnt to the 
ground, roasting one of the inmates, who Was 
unable to escape. The beggar passed by soon 
1 Baring-Gould, Werewolves, p, 81. 
Ill 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

after, and, as he was suffering from excessive 
hunger, could not resist the temptation of mak- 
ing a meal off the charred body. From that 
moment he was tormented by a craving for 
human flesh. He met a little orphan girl, about 
nine years old, and giving her a pinchbeck ring 
told her to seek for others like it under a tree 
in the neighbouring wood. She was slain, car- 
ried to the beggar's hovel, and eaten. In the 
course of three years thirteen other children 
mysteriously disappeared, but no one knew 
whom to suspect. At last an innkeeper missed 
a pair of ducks, and having no good opinion of 
this beggar's honesty, went unexpectedly to his 
cabin, burst suddenly in at the door, and to his 
horror found him in the act of hiding under 
his cloak a severed head ; a bowl of fresh blood 
stood under the oven, and pieces of a thigh 
were cooking over the fire. 1 

This occurred only about twenty years ago, 
and the criminal, though ruled by an insane ap- 
petite, is not known to have been subject to any 
mental delusion. But there have been a great 
many similar cases, in which the homicidal or 
cannibal craving has been accompanied by gen- 
uine hallucination. Forms of insanity in which 
the afflicted persons imagine themselves to be 
brute animals are not perhaps very common, 
but they are not unknown. I once knew a poor 
1 Baring-Gould, op. at. chap. xiv. 
112 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

demented old man who believed himself to be 
a horse, and would stand by the hour together 
before a manger, nibbling hay, or deluding him- 
self with the pretence of so doing. Many of 
the cannibals whose cases are related by Mr* 
Baring-Gould, in his chapter of horrors, actually 
believed themselves to have been transformed 
into wolves or other wild animals. Jean Gre- 
nier was a boy of thirteen, partially idiotic, and 
of strongly marked canine physiognomy ; his 
jaws were large and projected forward, and his 
canine teeth were unnaturally long, so as to 
protrude beyond the lower lip* He believed 
himself to be a werewolf. One evening, meet- 
ing half a dozen young girls, he scared them 
out of their wits by telling them that as soon as 
the sun had set he would turn into a wolf and 
eat them for supper. A few days later, one 
little girl, having gone out at nightfall to look 
after the sheep, was attacked by some creature 
which in her- terror she mistook fora wolf, but 
which afterward proved to be none other than 
Jean Grenier. She beat him off with her sheep- 
staff, and fled home. As several children had 
mysteriously disappeared from the neighbour- 
hood, Grenier was at once suspected. Being 
brought before the parliament of Bordeaux, he 
stated that two years ago he had met the Devil 
one night in the woods and had signed a com- 
pact with him and received from him a wolfskin. 
"3 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Since then he had roamed about as a wolf after 
dark, resuming his human shape by daylight, 
He had killed and eaten several children whom 
he had found alone in the fields, and on one 
occasion he had entered a house while the fam- 
ily were out and taken the baby from its cra- 
dle. A careful investigation proved the truth 
of these statements, so far as the cannibalism 
was concerned. There is no doubt that the miss- 
ing children were eaten by Jean Grenier, and 
there is no doubt that in his own mind the half- 
witted boy was firmly convinced that he was 
a wol Here the lycanthropy was complete, 

In the year 1598, "in a wild and unfre- 
quented spot near Caude, some countrymen 
came one day upon the corpse of a boy of fif- 
teen, horribly mutilated and bespattered with 
blood. As the men approached, two wolves, 
which had been rending the body, bounded 
away into the thicket. The men gave chase im- 
mediately, following their bloody tracks till they 
lost them ; when, suddenly crouching among 
the bushes, his teeth chattering with fear, they 
found a man half naked, with long hair and 
beard, and with his hands dyed in blood. His 
nails were long as claws, and were clotted with 
fresh gore and shreds of human flesh." 1 

This man, Jacques Roulet, was a poor, half- 
witted creature under the dominion of a can- 
1 Baring-Gould, op. cit. p. 82, 
114 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

nibal appetite. He was employed in tearing to 
pieces the corpse of the boy when these country- 
men came up. Whether there were any wolves 
in the case, except what the excited imaginations 
of the men may have conjured up, I will not 
presume to determine; but it is certain that 
Roulet supposed himself to be a wolf, and killed 
and ate several persons under the influence of 
the delusion. He was sentenced to death, but 
the parliament of Paris reversed the sentence, 
and charitably shut him up in a madhouse* 

The annals of the Middle Ages furnish many 
cases similar to these of Grenier and Roulet. 
Their share in maintaining the werewolf super- 
stition is undeniable ; but modern science finds 
in them nothing that cannot be readily ex- 
plained. That stupendous process of breeding, 
which we call civilization, has been for long 
ages strengthening those kindly social feelings 
by the possession of which we are chiefly dis- 
tinguished from the brutes, leaving our primi- 
tive bestial impulses to die for want of exercise, 
or checking in every possible way their further 
expansion by legislative enactments. But this 
process, which is transforming us from savages 
into civilized men, is a very slow one ; and now 
and then there occur cases of what physiologists 
call atavism, or reversion to an ancestral type 
of character. Now and then persons are born, 
in civilized countries, whose intellectual powers 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

are on a level with those of the most degraded 
Australian savage, and these we call idiots. And 
now and then persons are born possessed of the 
bestial appetites and cravings of primitive man, 
his fiendish cruelty and his liking for human 
flesh. Modern physiology knows how to clas- 
sify and explain these abnormal cases, but to 
the unscientific mediaeval mind they were ex- 
plicable only on the hypothesis of a diabolical 
metamorphosis. And there is nothing strange 
in the fact that, in an age when the prevailing 
habits of thought rendered the transformation 
of men into beasts an easily admissible notion, 
these monsters of cruelty and depraved appetite 
should have been regarded as capable of tak- 
ing on bestial forms. Nor is it strange that the 
hallucination under which these unfortunate 
wretches laboured should have taken such a 
shape as to account to their feeble intelligence 
for the existence of the appetites which they 
were conscious of not sharing with their neigh- 
bours and contemporaries. If a myth is a piece 
of unscientific philosophizing, it must some- 
times be applied to the explanation of obscure 
psychological as well as of physical phenomena. 
Where the modern calmly taps his forehead and 
says, cc Arrested development," the terrified an- 
cient made the sign of the cross and cried, 
"Werewolf/ 1 

116 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

We shall be assisted in this explanation by 
turning aside for a moment to examine the 
wild superstitions about "changelings," which 
contributed, along with so many others, to make 
the lives of our ancestors anxious and miserable. 
These superstitions were for the most part at- 
tempts to explain the phenomena of insanity, 
epilepsy, and other obscure nervous diseases, 
A man who has hitherto enjoyed perfect health, 
and whose actions have been consistent and 
rational, suddenly loses all self-control and 
seems actuated by a will foreign to himself. 
Modern science possesses the key to this phe- 
nomenon ; but in former times it was explicable 
only on the hypothesis that a demon had en- 
tered the body of the lunatic, or else that the 
fairies had stolen the real man and substituted 
for him a diabolical phantom exactly like him 
in stature and features. Hence the numerous 
legends of changelings, some of which are very 
curious. In Irish folk-lore we find the story of 
one Rickard, surnamed the Rake, from his 
worthless character. A good-natured, idle fel- 
low, he spent all his evenings in dancing, an 
accomplishment in which no one in the village 
could rival him. One night, in the midst of a 
lively reel, he fell down in a fit. " He *s struck 
with a fairy dart," exclaimed all the friends, and 
they carried him home and nursed him ; but 

07 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

his face grew so thin and his manner so morose 
that by and by all began to suspect that the 
true Rickard was gone and a changeling put in 
his place. Rickard, with all his accomplish- 
ments, was no musician ; and so, in order to put 
the matter to a crucial test, a bagpipe was left 
in the room by the side of his bed. The trick 
succeeded. One hot summer's day, when all 
were supposed to be in the field making hay, 
some members of the family secreted in a clothes- 
press saw the bedroom door open a little way, 
and a lean, foxy face, with a pair of deep-sunken 
eyes, peer anxiously about the premises. Hav- 
ing satisfied itself that the coast was clear, the 
face withdrew, the door was closed, and pre- 
sently such ravishing strains of music were heard 
as never proceeded from a bagpipe before or 
since that day. Soon was heard the rustle of in- 
numerable fairies, come to dance to the change- 
ling's music. Then the cc fairy-man " of the vil- 
lage, who was keeping watch with the family, 
heated a pair of tongs red-hot, and with deafen- 
ing shouts all burst at once into the sick cham- 
ber. The music had ceased and the room was 
empty, but in at the window glared a fiendish 
face, with such fearful looks of hatred, that for 
a moment all stood motionless with terror. But 
when the fairy-man, recovering himself, ad- 
vanced with the hot tongs to pinch its nose, it 
vanished with an unearthly yell, aad there on 
118 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

the bed was Rickard, safe and sound, and cured 
of his epilepsy. 1 

Comparing this legend with numerous others 
relating to changelings, and stripping off the 
fantastic garb of fairy-lore with which popular 
imagination has invested them, it seems impos- 
sible to doubt that they have arisen from myths 
devised for the purpose of explaining the ob- 
scure phenomena of mental disease. If this be 
so, they afford an excellent collateral illustra- 
tion of the belief in werewolves. The same 
mental habits which led men to regard the 
insane or epileptic person as a changeling, and 
which allowed them to explain catalepsy as the 
temporary departure of a witch's soul from its 
body, would enable them to attribute a wolf's 
nature to the maniac or idiot with cannibal ap- 
petites. And when the myth-forming process 
had got thus far, it would not stop short of 
assigning to the unfortunate wretch a tangible 
lupine body; for all ancient mythology teemed 
with precedents for such a transformation. 

It remains for us to sum up, to tie into a 
bunch the keys which have helped us to pene- 
trate into the secret causes of the werewolf 
superstition. In a previous paper we saw what 
a host of myths, fairy-tales, and superstitious 
observances have sprung from attempts to inter- 
pret one simple natural phenomenon, the 
1 Kennedy, Fictions of the Irish Celts > p. 90, 

119 



MYTHS AND MYTH^MAKERS 

descent of fire from the clouds. Here, on the 
other hand, we see what a heterogeneous multi- 
tude of mythical elements may combine to build 
up in course of time a single enormous supersti- 
tion, and we see how curiously fact and fancy 
have cooperated in keeping the superstition from 
falling. In the first place the worship of dead 
ancestors with wolf totems originated the notion 
of the transformation of men into divine or 
superhuman wolves ; and this notion was con- 
firmed by the ambiguous explanation of the 
storm-wind as the rushing of a troop of dead 
men's souls or as the howling of wolf-like 
monsters. Mediaeval Christianity retained these 
conceptions, merely changing the superhuman 
wolves into evil demons j, and finally the occur- 
rence of cases of Berserker madness and canni- 
balism, accompanied by lycanthropic hallucina- 
tions., being interpreted as due to such demo- 
niacal metamorphosis, gave rise to the werewolf 
superstition of the Middle Ages. The etymo- 
logical proceedings, to wfliich Mr. Cox would 
incontinently ascribe tfcfc origin of the entire 
superstition, seemed t6 me to have played a 
very subordinate par%i the matter. To suppose 
that Jean Grenier imagined himself to be a wolf, 
because the Greek word f<?r wolf sounded like 
the word for light, and thus gave rise to the 
story of a light deity who became a wolf, seems 
to me quite inadmissible. Yet as far as such 
1 20 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

verbal equivocations may have prevailed, they 
doubtless helped to sustain the delusion. 

Thus we need no longer regard our werewolf 
as an inexplicable creature of undetermined 
pedigree. But any account of him would be 
quite imperfect which should omit all consider- 
ation of the methods by which his change of 
form was accomplished. By the ancient Ro- 
mans the werewolf was commonly called a "skin- 
changer " or " turn-coat " (versipellis)) and sim- 
ilar epithets were applied to him in the Middle 
Ages. The mediaeval theory was that, while the 
werewolf kept his human form, his hair grew 
inwards ; when he wished to become a wolf, 
he simply turned himself inside out. In many 
trials on record,. the prisoners were closely in- 
terrogated as to how this inversion might be 
accomplished ; but I am not aware that any one 
of them ever gave a satisfactory answer. At the 
moment of change their memories seem to have 
become temporarily befogged. Now and then 
a poor wretch had his arms and legs cut off, or 
was partially flayed, in order that the ingrowing 
hair might be detected. 1 Another theory was, 

1 tf En 1541, a Padoue, dit Wier, un homme qui se 
croyait change en loup courait la campagne, attaquant et met- 
tant a mart ceux qu'il rencontrait, Apres bien des difficulty's, 
on parvint s'emparer de ku. II dit en confidence a ceux 
qui Parr&erent : Je suis vraiment un loup, et si ma peau ne 
parait pas etre celle d'un loup, c'est parce qu'eUe est retour- 
121 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

that the possessed person had merely to put on 
a wolf's skin, in order to assume instantly the 
lupine form and character ; and in this may per- 
haps be seen a vague reminiscence of the alleged 
fact that Berserkers were in the habit of haunt- 
ing the woods by night., clothed in the hides 
of wolves or bears. 1 Such a wolfskin was kept 
by the boy Grenier. Roulet, on the other hand, 
confessed to using a magic salve or ointment. 
A fourth method of becoming a werewolf was 
to obtain a girdle, usually made of human skin. 
Several cases are related in Thorpe's " North- 
ern Mythology." One hot day in harvest-time 

nee et que les poils sont en dedans. Pour s* assurer du fait, 
on coupa le malheureux aux difFerentes parties du corps, on 
lui emporta les bras et les jambes." Taine, De I* Intelli- 
gence, torn. ii. p. 203. Seethe account of Slavonic were- 
wolves in Ralston, Songs of the Russian People, pp. 404- 
418. 

1 Mr. Cox, whose scepticism on obscure points in history 
rather surpasses that of Sir G. C. Lewis, dismisses with a 
sneer the subject of the Berserker madness, observing that 
* the unanimous testimony of the Norse historians is worth as 
much and as Httle as the convictions of Glanvil and Hale on 
the reality of witchcraft." I have not the special knowledge 
requisite for pronouncing an opinion on this point, but Mr. 
Cox's ordinary methods of disposing of such questions are not 
such as to make one feel obliged to accept his bare assertion, 
unaccompanied by critical arguments* The madness of the 
bearsarks may, no doubt, be the same thing as the frenzy 
of Herakles ; but something more than mere dogmatism is 
needed to prove it. 

122 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

some reapers lay down to sleep in the shade ; 
when one of them, who could not sleep, saw 
the man next him arise quietly and gird him 
with a strap, whereupon he instantly vanished, 
and a wolf jumped up from among the sleepers 
and ran off across the fields. Another man, who 
possessed such a girdle, once went away from 
home without remembering to lock it up. His 
little son climbed up to the cupboard and got 
it, and as he proceeded to buckle it around his 
waist he became instantly transformed into a 
strange-looking beast. Just then his father 
came in, and seizing the girdle restored the 
child to his natural shape. The boy said that 
no sooner had he buckled it on than he was 
tormented with a raging hunger. 

Sometimes the werewolf transformation led 
to unlucky accidents. At Caseburg, as a man 
and his wife were making hay, the woman threw 
down her pitchfork and went away, telling her 
husband that if a wild beast should come to 
him during her absence he must throw his hat 
at it. Presently a she-wolf rushed toward him. 
The man threw his hat at it, but a boy came up 
from another part of the field and stabbed the 
animal with his pitchfork, whereupon it van- 
ished, and the woman's dead body lay at his feet. 

A parallel legend shows that this woman 
wished to have the hat thrown at her, in order 
that she might be henceforth free from her lia^ 
123 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

bility to become a werewolf. A man was one 
night returning with his wife from a merry- 
making when he felt the change coming on. 
Giving his wife the reins, he jumped from the 
wagon, telling her to strike with her apron at 
any animal which might come to her. In a few 
moments a wolf ran up to the side of the ve- 
hicle, and, as the woman struck out with her 
apron, it bit off a piece and ran away. Pre- 
sently the man returned with the piece of apron 
in his mouth, and consoled his terrified wife 
with the information that the enchantment had 
left him forever. 

A terrible case at a village in Auvergne has 
found its way into the annals of witchcraft. " A 
gentleman while hunting was suddenly attacked 
by a savage wolf of monstrous size. Impene- 
trable by his shot, the beast made a spring upon 
the helpless huntsman, who in the struggle 
luckily, or unluckily for the unfortunate lady, 
contrived to cut off one of its fore-paws. This 
trophy he placed in his pocket, and made the 
best of his way homewards in safety. On the 
road he met a friend, to whom he exhibited a 
bleeding paw, or rather (as it now appeared) a 
woman's hand, upon which was a wedding-ring. 
His wife's ring was at once recognized by the 
other. His suspicions aroused, he immediately 
went in search of his wife, who was found sit- 
ting by the fire in the kitchen, her arm hidden 
124 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

beneath her apron, when the husband, seizing 
her by the arm, found his terrible suspicions 
verified. The bleeding stump was there, evi- 
dently just fresh from the wound. She was 
given into custody, and in the event was burned 
at Riom, in presence of thousands of spec- 
tators/' l 

Sometimes a werewolf was cured merely by 
recognizing him while in his brute shape* A 
Swedish legend tells of a cottager who, on en- 
tering the forest one day without recollecting 
to say his Pater Noster, got into the power of 
a Troll, who changed him Into a wolf. For 
many years his wife mourned him as dead. But 
one Christmas eve the old Troll, disguised as 
a beggar-woman, came to the house for alms ; 
and being taken in an4 kindly treated, told the 
woman that her husband/ fqaight very likely ap- 
pear to her in wolf shape. Going at night to 
the pantry to lay #side a joint of meat for to- 
morrow's dinner, she saw a wolf standing with 
its paws on the window-sill, looking wistfully 

1 Williams, Superstitions of Witchcraft^ p. 179. See a 
parallel case of a cat-woman, in Thorpe's Northern Mytho- 
logy, ii. 26. <c Certain witches at Thurso for a long time 
tormented an honest fellow under the usual form of cats, till 
one night he put them to flight with his broadsword, and cut 
off the leg of one less nimble than the rest ; taking it up, to 
his amazement he found it to be a woman's leg, and next 
morning he discovered the old hag its owner with but one leg 
left." Tylor, Primitive Culture, i. 283. 
125 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

in at her, Ah, dearest/' said she, " if I knew 
that thou wert really my husband, I would give 
thee a bone." Whereupon the wolfskin fell 
off, and her husband stood before her in the 
same old clothes which he had on the day that 
the Troll got hold of him. 

In Denmark it was believed that if a woman 
were to creep through a colt's placental mem- 
brane stretched between four sticks, she would 
for the rest of her life bring forth children with- 
out pain or illness ; but all the boys would in 
such cases be werewolves, and all the girls 
Maras, or nightmares* In this grotesque super- 
stition appears that curious kinship between 
the werewolf and the wife or maiden of super- 
natural race, which serves admirably to illus- 
trate the nature of both conceptions, and the 
elucidation of which shall occupy us through- 
out the remainder of this paper. 

It is, perhaps, needless to state that in the 
personality of the nightmare, or Mara, there 
was nothing equine. The Mara was a female 
demon, 1 who would come at night and torment 
men or women by crouching on their chests or 
stomachs and stopping their respiration. The 
scene is well enough represented in Fuseli's 
picture, though the frenzied-looking horse which 

1 "The mare in nightmare means spirit, elf, or nymph; 
compare Anglo-Saxon wu dumber e (wood-mare) ==: echo." 
Tylor, Primitive Culture, vol. ii. p. 173. 
126 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

there accompanies the demon has no place in 
the original superstition. A Netherlandish story 
illustrates the character of the Mara. Two 
young men were in love with the same damseL 
One of them, being tormented every night by 
a Mara, sought ad vice from his rival, and it was 
a treacherous counsel that he got. "Hold a 
sharp knife with a point towards your breast, 
and you '11 never see the Mara again," said this 
false friend. The lad thanked him, but when 
he lay down to rest he thought it as well to be 
on the safe side, and so held the knife han- 
dle downward. So when the Mara came, in- 
stead of forcing the blade into his breast, she 
cut herself badly, and fled howling ; and let us 
hope, though the legend here leaves us in the 
dark, that this poor youth, who is said to have 
been the comelier of the two, revenged himself 
on his malicious rival by marrying the young 
lady. 

But the Mara sometimes appeared in less 
revolting shape, and became the mistress or 
even the wife of some mortal man to whom she 
happened to take a fancy. In such cases she 
would vanish on being recognized. There is a 
well-told monkish tale of a pious knight who, 
journeying one day through the forest, found 
a beautiful lady stripped naked and tied to a 
tree, her back all covered with deep gashes, 
streaming with blood, from a flogging which 
127 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

some bandits had given her. Of course he took 
her home to his castle and married her, and for 
a while they lived very happily together, and 
the fame of the lady's beauty was so great that 
kings and emperors held tournaments in honour 
of her. But this pious knight used to go to 
mass every Sunday, and greatly was he scandal- 
ized when he found that his wife would never 
stay to assist in the Credo, but would always get 
up and walk out of church just as the choir struck 
up. All her husband's coaxing was of no use ; 
threats and entreaties were alike powerless even to 
elicit an explanation of this strange conduct. At 
last the good man determined to use force ; and 
so one Sunday, as the lady got up to go out, 
according to custom, he seized her by the arm 
and sternly commanded her to remain. Her 
whole frame was suddenly convulsed, and her 
dark eyes gleamed with weird, unearthly bril- 
liancy. The services paused for a moment, and 
all eyes were turned toward the knight and his 
lady. " In God's name, tell me what thou art," 
shouted the knight ; and instantly, says the 
chronicler, " the bodily form of the lady melted 
away, and was seen no more ; whilst, with a 
cry of anguish and of terror, an evil spirit of 
monstrous form rose from the ground, clave 
the chapel roof asunder, and disappeared in the 
air." 

In a Danish legend, the Mara betrays her 
128 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

affinity to the Nixies, or Swan-maidens. A 
peasant discovered that his sweetheart was in 
the habit of coming to him by night as a Mara. 
He kept strict watch until he discovered her 
creeping into the room through a small knot- 
hole in the door. Next day he made a peg, and 
after she had come to him drove in the peg so 
that she was unable to escape. They were mar- 
ried and lived together many years ; but one 
night it happened that the man, joking with his 
wife about the way in which he had secured 
her, drew the peg from the knot-hole, that she 
might see how she had entered his room. As 
she peeped through, she became suddenly quite 
small, passed out, and was never seen again. 

The well-known pathological phenomena of 
nightmare are sufficient to account for the me- 
diaeval theory of a fiend who sits upon one's 
bosom and hinders respiration ; but as we com- 
pare these various legends relating to the Mara, 
we see that a more recondite explanation is 
needed to account for all her peculiarities. In- 
digestion may interfere with our breathing, but 
it does not make beautiful women crawl through 
keyholes, nor does it bring wives from the 
spirit world. The Mara belongs to an ancient 
family, and in passing from the regions of 
monkish superstition to those of pure mytho- 
logy we find that, like her kinsman the were- 
wolf, she had once seen better days. Christian- 
129 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ity made a demon of the Mara, and adopted the 
theory that Satan employed these seductive 
creatures as agents for ruining human souls. 
Such is the character of the knight's wife, in the 
monkish legend just cited. But in the Danish 
tale the Mara appears as one of that large fam- 
ily of supernatural wives who are permitted to 
live with mortal men under certain conditions, 
but who are compelled to flee away when these 
conditions are broken, as is always sure to be 
the case. The eldest and one of the loveliest 
of this family is the Hindu nymph Urvasi, 
whose love adventures with Pururavas are nar- 
rated in the Puranas, and form the subject of 
the well-known and exquisite Sanskrit drama 
by Kalidasa. Urvasi is allowed to liye with 
Pururavas so long as she does not see him 
undressed. But one night her kinsmen, the 
Gandharvas, or cloud-demons, vexed at her long 
absence from heaven, resolved to get her away 
from her mortal companion. They stole a pet 
lamb which had been tied at the foot of her 
couch, whereat she bitterly upbraided her hus- 
band. In rage and mortification, Pururavas 
sprang up without throwing on his tunic, and 
grasping his sword sought the robber. Then 
the wicked Gandharvas sent a flash of lightning, 
and Urvasi, seeing her naked husband, instantly 
vanished. 

The different versions of this legend, which 
130 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

have been elaborately analyzed by comparative 
mythologists, leave no doubt that Urvasi is 
one of the dawn-nymphs or bright fleecy clouds 
of early morning, which vanish as the splendour 
of the sun is unveiled* We saw, in the preced- 
ing paper, that the ancient Aryans regarded the 
sky as a sea or great lake, and that the clouds 
were explained variously as Phaiakian ships 
with birdlike beaks sailing over this lake, or 
as bright birds of divers shapes and hues. The 
light fleecy cirrhi were regarded as mermaids, 
or as swans, or as maidens with swan's plu- 
mage. In Sanskrit they are called jipsaras y or 
" those who move in the water," and the Elves 
and Maras of Teutonic mythology have the 
same significance. Urvasi appears in one le- 
gend as a bird ; and a South German prescrip- 
tion for getting rid of the Mara asserts that if 
she be wrapped up in the bedclothes and firmly 
held, a white dove will forthwith fly from the 
room, leaving the bedclothes empty. 1 

In the story of Melusina the cloud-maiden 
appears as a kind of mermaid, but in other 
respects the legend resembles that of Urvasi. 
Raymond, Count de la Foret, of Poitou, having 
by an accident killed his patron and benefactor 
during a hunting excursion, fled in terror and 

1 See Kulin, Herabkunft des Fevers, p, 91 ; Weber, 
Indische Studien, w. 197; Wolf, Beitrage %ur deutschen 
Mythologie, Ii. 233-281 ; Miiller, Chips, ii. 114128. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

despair into the deep recesses of the forest. All 
the afternoon and evening he wandered through 
the thick dark woods, until at midnight he 
came upon a strange scene. All at once ec the 
boughs of the trees became less interlaced, and 
the trunks fewer; next moment his horse, 
crashing through the shrubs, brought him out 
on a pleasant glade, white with rime, and illu- 
mined by the new moon ; in the midst bubbled 
up a limpid fountain, and flowed away over a 
pebbly floor with a soothing murmur. Near 
the fountain-head sat three maidens in glimmer- 
ing white dresses, with long waving golden hair, 
and faces of inexpressible beauty/' 1 One of 
them advanced to meet Raymond, and accord- 
ing to all mythological precedent, they were 
betrothed before daybreak. In due time the 
fountain-nymph 2 became Countess de la Foret, 
but her husband was given to understand that 
all her Saturdays would be passed in strictest 
seclusion, upon which he must never dare to 
intrude, under penalty of losing her forever. 
For many years all went well, save that the 
fair Melusina's children were, without excep- 
tion, misshapen or disfigured. But after a while 
this strange weekly seclusion got bruited about 

1 Baring- Gould, Curious Myths, ii. 207. 

3 The word nymph itself means fe cloud-maiden," as Is 
illustrated by the kinship between the Greek vip^y and the 
Latin nubes. 

132 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

all over the neighbourhood, and people shook 
their heads and looked grave about it. So many 
gossiping tales came to the Count's ears, that 
he began to grow anxious and suspicious, and 
at last he determined to know the worst. He 
went one Saturday to Melusina's private apart- 
ments, and going through one empty room after 
another, at last came to a locked door which 
opened into a bath ; looking through a key- 
hole, there he saw the Countess transformed 
from the waist downwards into a fish, disport- 
ing herself like a mermaid in the water. Of 
course he could not keep the secret, but when 
some time afterward they quarrelled, must needs 
address her as "a vile serpent, contaminator 
of his honourable race." So she disappeared 
through the window, but ever afterward hovered 
about her husband's castle of Lusignan, like a 
Banshee, whenever one of its lords was about 
to die. 

The well-known story of Undine is similar 
to that of Melusina, save that the naiad's desire 
to obtain a human soul is a conception foreign 
to the spirit of the myth, and marks the de- 
gradation which Christianity had inflicted upon 
the denizens of fairyland. In one of Dasent's 
tales the water-maiden is replaced by a kind of 
werewolf. A white bear marries a young girl, 
but assumes the human shape at night. She is 
never to look upon him in his human shape, 
133 



MYTHS AND MYTH^MAKERS 

but how could a young bride be expected to 
obey such an injunction as that ? She lights a 
candle while he is sleeping, and discovers the 
handsomest prince in the world ; unluckily she 
drops tallow on his shirt, and that tells the 
story. But she is more fortunate than poor 
Raymond, for after a tiresome journey to the 
" land east of the sun and west of the moon," 
and an arduous washing-match with a parcel of 
ugly Trolls, she washes out the spots, and ends 
her husband's enchantment 1 

In the majority of these legends, however, 
the Apsaras, or cloud-maiden, has a shirt of 
swan's feathers which plays the same part as the 
wolfskin cape or girdle of the werewolf. If you 
could get hold of a werewolf's sack and burn 
it, a permanent cure was effected. No danger of 
a relapse, unless the Devil furnished him with 
a new wolfskin. So the swan-maiden kept her 
human form, as long as she was deprived of 
her tunic of feathers. Indo-European folk-lore 
teems with stories of swan-maidens forcibly 
wooed and won by mortals who had stolen their 
clothes. A man travelling along the road passes 
by a lake where several lovely girls are bathing ; 
their dresses, made of feathers curiously and 
daintily woven, lie on the shore. He approaches 
the place cautiously and steals one of these 

1 This is substantially identical with the stories of Beauty 
and the Beast, Eros and Psyche, Gandharba Sena, etc. 

134 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

dresses. 1 When the girls have finished their 
bathing, they all come and get their dresses and 
swim away as swans ; but the one whose dress 
is stolen must needs stay on shore and marry 
the thief. It is needless to add that they live 
happily together for many years, or that finally 
the good man accidentally leaves the cupboard 
door unlocked, whereupon his wife gets back 
her swan-shirt and flies away from him, never to 
return. But it is not always a shirt of feathers. 
In one German story, a nobleman hunting deer 
finds a maiden bathing in a clear pool in the 
forest. He runs stealthily up to her and seizes 
her necklace, at which she loses the power to 
flee. They are married, and she bears seven sons 
at once, all of whom have gold chains about 
their necks, and are able to transform them- 
selves into swans whenever they like. A Flem- 
ish legend tells of three Nixies, or water-sprites, 
who came out of the Meuse one autumn even- 
ing, and helped the villagers celebrate the end 
of the vintage. Such graceful dancers had never 
been seen in Flanders, and they could sing as 
well as they could dance. As the night was 
warm, one of them took off her gloves and gave 
them to her partner to hold for her. When the 

1 The feather dress reappears in the Arabian story of Has- 
san of El-Basrah, who by stealing it secures possession of the 
Jinniya. See Lane's Arabian Nights, vol. iii. p- 380. 
Ralston, Songs of the Russian People > p. 179. 

135 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

clock struck twelve the other two started off 
in hot haste, and then there was a hue and cry 
for gloves. The lad would keep them as love- 
tokens, and so the poor Nixie had to go home 
without them ; but she must have died on the 
way, for next morning the waters of the Meuse 
were blood-red, and those damsels never re- 
turned. 

In the Faro Islands it is believed that seals 
cast off their skins every ninth night, assume 
human forms, and sing and dance like men and 
women until daybreak, when they resume their 
skins and their seal natures. Of course a man 
once found and hid one of these sealskins, and 
so got a mermaid for a wife ; and of course she 
recovered the skin and escaped. 1 On the coasts 
of Ireland it is supposed to be quite an ordinary 
thing for young sea-fairies to get human hus- 
bands in this way ; the brazen things even come 
to shore on purpose, and leave their red caps 
lying around for young men to pick up ; but it 
behooves the husband to keep a strict watch 
over the red cap if he would not see his chil- 
dren left motherless. 

This mermaid's cap has contributed its quota 
to the superstitions of witchcraft. An Irish story 
tells how Red James was aroused from sleep 
one night by noises in the kitchen. Going down 

1 Thorpe, Northern Mythology, iii. 173; Kennedy, Fic- 
tions of the Irish Celts, p. 123. 

LI 6 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

to the door, he saw a lot of old women drinking 
punch around the fireplace, and laughing and 
joking with his housekeeper. When the punch- 
bowl was empty, they all put on red caps, and 
singing 

** By yarrow and rue, 
And my red cap too, 

Hie me over to England," 

they flew up chimney. So Jimmy burst into 
the room, and seized the housekeeper's cap, and 
went along with them. They flew across the 
sea to a castle in England, passed through the 
keyholes from room to room and into the cel- 
lar, where they had a famous carouse. Unluck- 
ily, Jimmy, being unused to such good cheer, got 
drunk, and forgot to put on his cap when the 
others did. So next morning the lord's Sutler 
found him dead-drunk on the cellar floor, sur- 
rounded by empty casks. He was sentenced to 
be hung without any trial worth speaking of; 
but as he was carted to the gallows an old woman 
cried out, <c Ach, Jimmy alanna ! Would you 
be afther dyin' in a strange land without your 
red birredh?" The lord made no objections, 
and so the red cap was brought and put on him. 
Accordingly when Jimmy had got to the gal- 
lows and was marking his last speech for the 
edification of the spectators, he unexpectedly 
and somewhat irrelevantly exclaimed, " By yar- 
row and rue/ 1 etc., and was off like a rocket, 

137 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

shooting through the blue air en route for old 
Ireland. 1 

In another Irish legend an enchanted ass comes 
into the kitchen of a great house every night, 
and washes the dishes and scours the tins, so 
that the servants lead an easy life of it. After 
a while in their exuberant gratitude they offer 
him any present for which he may feel inclined 
to ask. He desires only " an ould coat, to keep 
the chill off of him these could nights ; " but as 
soon as he gets into the coat he resumes his 
human form and bids them good-by, and thence- 
forth they may wash their own dishes and scour 
their own tins, for all him. 

But we are diverging from the subject of 
swan-maidens, and are in danger of losing our- 
selves in that labyrinth of popular fancies which 
is more intricate than any that Daidalos ever 
planned. The significance of all these sealskins 
and feather dresses and mermaid caps and were- 
wolf girdles may best be sought in the etymo- 
logy of words like the German lelchnam^ in which 
the body is described as a garment of flesh for 
the soul. 2 In the naive philosophy of primitive 
thinkers, the soul, in passing from one visible 
shape to another, had only to put on the out- 
ward integument of the creature in which it 
wished to incarnate itself. With respect to the 

1 Kennedy, Fictions of the Irish Celts, p. 168, 

2 Baring-Gould, Book of Werewolves* p. 163. 

138 



WEREWOLVES AND SWAN-MAIDENS 

mode of metamorphosis, there is little difference 
between the werewolf and the swan-maiden ; 
and the similarity is no less striking between the 
genesis of the two conceptions. The original 
werewolf is the night-wind, regarded now as a 
manlike deity and now as a howling lupine fiend ; 
and the original swan-maiden is the light fleecy 
cloud, regarded either as a woman-like goddess 
or as a bird swimming in the sky sea. The one 
conception has been productive of little else but 
horrors ; the other has given rise to a great vari- 
ety of fanciful creations, from the treacherous 
mermaid and the fiendish nightmare to the 
gentle Undine, the charming Nausikaa, and the 
stately Muse of classic antiquity. 

We have seen that the original werewolf, 
howling in the wintry blast, is a kind of psycho- 
pomp, or leader of departed souls ; he is the wild 
ancestor of the death-dog, whose voice under 
the window of a sick-chamber is even now a 
sound of ill omen. The swan-maiden has also 
been supposed to summon the dying to her 
home in the Phaiakian land. The Valkyries, 
with their shirts of swan plumage, who hovered 
over Scandinavian battlefields to receive the 
souls of falling heroes, were identical with the 
Hindu Apsaras ; and the Houris of the Mussul- 
man belong to the same family. Even for the 
angels, women with large wings, who are seen 
in popular pictures bearing mortals on high to- 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ward heaven, we can hardly claim a different 
kinship. Melusina, when she leaves the castle 
of Lusignan, becomes a Banshee ;/and it has 
been a common superstition among sailors, that 
the appearance of a mermaid, with her comb 
and looking-glass, foretokens shipwreck, with 
the loss of all on boardy 

October, 1870. 



I4O 



IV 
LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

WHEN Maltland blasphemously as- 
serted that God was but " a Bogie 
of the nursery/' he unwittingly made 
a remark as suggestive in point of philology as it 
was crude and repulsive in its atheism. When 
examined with the lenses of linguistic science, 
the " Bogie " or " Bug-a-boo " or Bugbear" 
of nursery lore turns out to be identical, not only 
with the fairy " Puck," whom Shakespeare has 
immortalized, but also with the Slavonic cc Bog " 
and the cc Baga " of the Cuneiform Inscriptions, 
both of which are names for the Supreme Being. 
If we proceed further, and inquire after the an- 
cestral form of these epithets, so strangely 
incongruous in their significations, we shall 
find it in the Old Aryan " Bhaga," which reap- 
pears unchanged in the Sanskrit of the Vedas, 
and has left a memento of itself in the sur- 
name of the Phrygian Zeus " Bagaios." It 
seems originally to have denoted either the un- 
clouded sun or the sky of noonday illumined 
by the solar rays. In Sayana's commentary on 
the Rig-Veda, Bhaga is enumerated among the 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

seven (or eight) sons of Aditi, the boundless 
Orient; and he is elsewhere described as the 
lord of life, the giver of bread, and the bringer 
of happiness. 1 

Thus the same name which, to the Vedic 
poet, to the Persian of the time of Xerxes, and 
to the modern Russian, suggests the supreme 
majesty of deity, is in English associated with 
an ugly and ludicrous fiend, closely akin to that 
grotesque Northern Devil of whom Southey 
was unable to think without laughing. Such is 
the irony of fate toward a deposed deity. The 
German name for idol Abgott y that is, " ex- 
god " or " dethroned god " sums up in a sin- 
gle etymology the history of the havoc wrought 
by monotheism among the ancient symbols of 
deity. In the hospitable Pantheon of the Greeks 
and Romans a niche was always in readiness for 
every new divinity who could produce respect- 
able credentials ; but the triumph of mono- 
theism converted the stately mansion into a 
Pandemonium peopled with fiends. To the 
monotheist an cc ex-god " was simply a devilish 
deceiver of mankind whom the true God had 
succeeded In vanquishing ; and thus the word 
demon^ which to the ancient meant a divine or 
semi-divine being, came to be applied to fiends 

1 Muir's Sanskrit Texts, vol. iv. p. 12 ; Miiller, Rig- 
FedaSanhita, vol. i. pp. 230-251 ; Fide, Woerterbuch der 
Indogermanischen Grundsprache, p. 124, s, v. Bhaga. 

142 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

exclusively. Thus the Teutonic races, who 
preserved the name of their highest divinity, 
Odin, originally, Guodan, by which to de- 
signate the God of the Christian, 1 were unable to 
regard the Bog of ancient tradition as anything 
but an a ex-god " or vanquished demon. 

The most striking illustration of this process 
is to be found in the word devil itself. To a 
reader unfamiliar with the endless tricks which 
language delights in playing, it may seem shock- 
ing to be told that the Gypsies use the word 
devil as the name of God. 2 This, however, is 
not because these people have made the arch- 
fiend an object of worship, but because the 

1 In the North American Review, October, 1869, p. 
3 54, I have collected a number of facts which seem to me to 
prove beyond question that the name God is derived from 
Guodan> the original form of Odin, the supreme deity of our 
pagan forefathers. The case is exactly parallel to that of the 
French Dieu, which is descended from the Deus of the pagan 
Roman. 

2 See Pott, Die Zigeuner > ii. 311 ; Kuhn, Beitrage, L 
147. Yet in the worship of Jewel by the Gypsies is to be 
found the element of diabolism invariably present in barbaric 
worship. se Dewel, the great god in heaven (dew a, deus} 9 
is rather feared than loved by these weather-beaten outcasts, 
for he harms them on their wanderings with his thunder and 
lightning, his snow and rain, and his stars interfere with their 
dark doings. Therefore they curse him foully when misfor- 
tune falls on them ; and when a child dies, they say that 
Dewel has eaten it." Tylor, Primitive Culture* vol. ii. p. 
248. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Gypsy language, descending directly from the 
Sanskrit, has retained in its primitive exalted 
sense a word which the English language has 
received only in its debased and perverted sense. 
The Teutonic words devil, teufel> diuval, djofull y 
djevfuh may all be traced back to the Zend dev y l 
a name in which is implicitly contained the 
record of the oldest monotheistic revolution 
known to history. The influence of the so-called 
Zoroastrian reform upon the long-subsequent 
development of Christianity will receive further 
notice in the course of this paper ; for the pre- 
sent it is enough to know that it furnished for 
all Christendom the name by which it desig- 
nates the author of evil. To the Parsee follower 
of Zarathustra the name of the Devil has very 
nearly the same signification as to the Christian ; 
yet, as Grimm has shown, it is nothing else 
than a corruption of deva> the Sanskrit name for 
God. When Zarathustra overthrew the prime- 
val Aryan nature-worship in Bactria, this name 
met the same evil fate which in early Christian 
times overtook the word demon, and from a 
symbol of reverence became henceforth a sym- 
bol of detestation. 2 But throughout the rest of 

1 See Grimm, Deutsche Mythology, 939, 

fl The Buddhistic as well as the Zarathustrian reformation 
degraded the Vedic gods into demons. <* In Buddhism we 
find these ancient devas, Indra and the rest, carried about it 
shows, as servants of Buddha, as goblins, or fabulous heroes* * * 

144 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

the Aryan world it achieved a nobler career, 
producing the Greek theos y the Lithuanian 
diewas, the Latin deus y and hence the modern 
French Dieu, all meaning God. 

If we trace back this remarkable word to its 
primitive source in that once lost but now par- 
tially recovered mother-tongue from which all 
our Aryan languages are descended, we find a 
root div or dyu, meaning <c to shine/' From the 
first-mentioned form comes deva, with its nu- 
merous progeny of good and evil appellatives; 
from the latter is derived the name of Dyaus, 
with its brethren, Zeus and Jupiter. In San- 
skrit dyUy as a noun, means " sky " and " day ; " 
and there are many passages in the Rig-Veda 
where the character of the god Dyaus, as the 
personification of the sky or the brightness of 
the ethereal heavens, is unmistakably apparent* 
This key unlocks for us one of the secrets of 
Greek mythology. So long as there was for 
Zeus no better etymology than that which as- 
signed it to the root zen, "to live," 1 there was 
little hope of understanding the nature of Zeus. 

Max Miiller, Chips 9 i. 25. This is like the Christian change 
of Odin into an ogre, and of Thor into the Devil. 

1 Zeus Ax ZJjva St o> tfjv del Trcurt rots okriv 
mdpx^ Plato, Kratylos, p. 396, A., with Stallbaum's 
note. See, also, Proklos, Comm. ad Tim&um> ii. p. 226, 
Schneider; and compare Pseudo- Aristotle, De Mundo, p. 
401, a, 15, who adopts the etymology Si ov aytr. See, also, 
Diogenes Laertius, viL 147. 

145 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

But when we learn that Zeus is identical with 
Dyaus, the bright sky, we are enabled to under- 
stand Horace's expression, " sub Jove frigido," 
and the prayer of the Athenians, " Rain, rain, 
dear Zeus, on the land of the Athenians, and 
on the fields/* l Such expressions as these were 
retained by the Greeks and Romans long after 
they had forgotten that their supreme deity was 
once the sky. Yet even the Brahman, from 
whose mind the physical significance of the god's 
name never wholly disappeared, could speak of 
him as Father Dyaus, the great Pitri, or ances- 
tor of gods and men ; and in this reverential 
name Dyaus fitar may be seen the exact equiva- 
lent of the Roman's Jupiter ', or Jove the Father. 
The same root can be followed into Old Ger- 
man, where Zio is the god of day; and into 
Anglo-Saxon, where Tiwsdaeg, or the day of 
Zeus, is the ancestral form of Tuesday. 

Thus we again reach the same results which 
were obtained from the examination of the name 
Bhaga. These various names for the supreme 
Aryan god, which without the help afforded by 
the Vedas could never have been interpreted, 
are seen to have been originally applied to the 
sun-illumined firmament. Countless other ex- 



Sow, %crov, <5 <f>(\c Zev, Kara T^S apov- 
pas T<OV *A.Ovp/afov /cat row ^re&W. Marcus Aurelius, v. 7 ; 
5e 8* apa Zevs <rwX /ij * Horn* IRad, xii. 25 ; cf. Petronius 
Arbiter, Sat. xliv. 

146 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

amples, when similarly analyzed, show that the 
earliest Aryan conception of a Divine Power, 
nourishing man and sustaining the universe, 
was suggested by the light of the mighty Sun ; 
who, as modern science has shown, is the origi- 
nator of all life and motion upon the globe, 
and whom the ancients delighted to believe the 
source, not only of <c the golden light/' I but of 
everything that is bright, joy-giving, and pure* 
Nevertheless, in accepting this conclusion as 
well established by linguistic science, we must 
be on our guard against an error into which 
writers on mythology are very liable to falL 
Neither sky nor sun nor light of day, neither 
Zeus nor Apollo, neither Dyaus nor Indra, was 
ever worshipped by the ancient Aryan in any- 
thing like a monotheistic sense. To interpret 
Zeus or Jupiter as originally the supreme Aryan 
god, and to regard classic paganism as one of 
the degraded remnants of a primeval monothe- 
ism, is to sin against the canons of a sound 
inductive philosophy. Philology itself teaches 
us that this could not have been so. Father 
Dyaus was originally the bright sky and nothing 
more. Although his name became generalized, 
in the classic languages, into deus y or God, it is 
quite certain that in early days, before the Aryan 
separation, it had acquired no such exalted sig- 

* < II Sol, dell aurea luce eterno fonte." Tasso, Gerusa* 
e xv. 47 ; c Dante, Paradiso> x. 28. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

nificance. It was only in Greece and Rome 
or, we may say, among the still united Italo- 
Hellenic tribes that Jupiter-Zeus attained a 
preeminence over all other deities. The people 
of Iran quite rejected him, the Teutons preferred 
Thor and Odin, and in India he was super- 
seded, first by Indra, afterwards by Brahma and 
Vishnu. We need not, therefore, look for a 
single supreme divinity among the old Aryans ; 
nor may we expect to find any sense, active or 
dormant, of monotheism in the primitive intel- 
ligence of uncivilized men. 1 The whole fabric 
of comparative mythology, as at present consti- 
tuted, and as described above, in the first of 
these papers, rests upon the postulate that the 
earliest religion was pure fetichism. 

In the unsystematic nature-worship of the old 
Aryans the gods are presented to us only as 
vague powers, with their nature and attributes 
dimly defined, and their relations to each other 

1 The Aryans were, however, doubtless better off than the 
tribes of North America. In no Indian language could the 
early missionaries find a word to express the idea of God. 
Manitou and Oki meant anything endowed with supernatural 
powers, from a snake-skin or a greasy Indian conjurer up to 
Manabozho and Jouskeha. The priests were forced to use a 
circumlocution, < the great chief of men/ or * he who lives 
in the sky.' " Parkman, Jesuits in North America, p. Loix. 
The Algonquins used no oaths, for their language supplied 
none ; doubtless because their mythology had no beings suffi- 
ciently distinct to swear by." Ibid. p. 31. 
148 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

fluctuating and often contradictory. There is 
no theogony, no regular subordination of one 
deity to another. The same pair of divinities 
appear now as father and daughter, now as 
brother and sister, now as husband and wife ; 
and again they quite lose their personality, and 
are represented as mere natural phenomena. As 
Miiller observes, cc The poets of the Veda in- 
dulged freely in theogonic speculations without 
being frightened by any contradictions. They 
knew of Indra as the greatest of gods, they knew 
of Agni as the god of gods, they knew of Varuna 
as the ruler of all ; but they were by no means 
startled at the idea that their Indra had a mother, 
or that their Agni [Latin ignis] was born like 
a babe from the friction of two fire-sticks, or 
that Varuna and his brother Mitra were nursed 
in the lap of Aditi." * Thus we have seen Bhaga, 
the daylight, represented as the offspring of 
Aditi, the boundless Orient ; but he had several 
brothers, and among them were Mitra, the sun, 
Varuna, the overarching firmament, and Vivas- 
vat, the vivifying sun. Manifestly we have here 
but so many different names for what is at bot- 
tom one and the same conception. The com- 
mon element which, in Dyaus and Varuna, in. 
Bhaga and Indra, was made an object of wor- 
ship is the brightness, warmth, and life of day, 
&l contrasted with the darkness, cold, and seem- 
1 Miiller, Rig-fada Sanhita, i. 230, 
149 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ing death of the night-time. And this common 
element was personified in as many different 
ways as the unrestrained fancy of the ancient 
worshipper saw fit to devise. 1 

Thus we begin to see why a few simple ob- 
jects, like the sun, the sky, the dawn, and the 
night, should be represented in mythology by 
such a host of gods, goddesses, and heroes. For 
at one time the Sun is represented as the con- 
queror of hydras and dragons who hide away 
from men the golden treasures of light and 
warmth, and at another time he is represented 
as a weary voyager traversing the sky sea amid 
many perils, with the steadfast purpose of re- 
turning to his western home and his twilight 
bride; hence the different conceptions of Hera- 
kles, Bellerophon, and Odysseus. Now -he is 
represented as the son of the Dawn, and again, 
with equal propriety, as the son of the Night, 
and the fickle lover of the Dawn ; hence we 
have, on the one hand, stories of a virgin mother 
who dies in giving birth to a hero, and, on the 
other hand, stories of a beautiful maiden who is 
forsaken and perhaps cruelly slain by her treach- 
erous lover. Indeed, the Sun's adventures with 
so many dawn-maidens have given him quite a 
bad character, and the legends are numerous in 
which he appears as the prototype of Don Juan* 
Yet again his separation from the bride of his 
1 Compare the remarks of Breal, Hercuk et Cacus* p. 13. 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

youth is described as due to no fault of his own, 
but to a resistless decree of fate, which hurries 
him away, as Aineias was compelled to abandon 
Dido. Or, according to a third and equally 
plausible notion, he is a hero of ascetic virtues, 
and the dawn-maiden is a wicked enchantress, 
daughter of the sensual Aphrodite, who vainly 
endeavours to seduce him. In the story of 
Odysseus these various conceptions are blended 
together. When enticed by artful women/ he 
yields for a while to the temptation ; but by and 
by his longing to see Penelope takes him home- 
ward, albeit with a record which Penelope might 
not altogether have liked. Again, though the 
Sun, "always roaming *with a hungry heart/* 
has seen many cities and customs of strange 
men, he is nevertheless confined to a single 
path, a circumstance which seems to have 
occasioned much speculation in the primeval 
mind. Garcilaso^de la Vega relates of a certain 
Peruvian Inca, who seems to have been an 

* It should be borne in mind, however, that one of the 
women who tempt Odysseus is not a dawn-maiden, but a 
goddess of darkness ; Kalypso answers to Venus-Ursula in the 
myth of Tannhauser. Kirke, on the other hand, seems to be 
a dawn-maiden, like Medeia, whom she resembles. In her 
the wisdom of the dawn-goddess Athene, the loftiest of Greek 
divinities, becomes degraded into the art of an enchantress. 
She reappears, in the Arabian Nights, as the wicked Queen 
Labe, whose sorcery none of her lovers can baffle, save Beder, 
king of Persia. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

" infidel " with reference to the orthodox my- 
thology of his day, that he thought the Sun was 
not such a mighty god after all ; for if he were, 
he would wander about the heavens at random 
instead of going forever, like a horse in a tread- 
mill, along the same course. The American 
Indians explained this circumstance by myths 
which told how the Sun was once caught and 
tied with a chain which would only let him 
swing a little way to one side or the other. The 
ancient Aryan developed the nobler myth of the 
labours of Herakles, performed in obedience 
to the bidding of Eurystheus. Again, the Sun 
must needs destroy its parents, the Night and 
the Dawn; and accordingly his parents, fore- 
warned by prophecy, expose him in infancy, or 
order him to be put to death ; but his tragic 
destiny never fails to be accomplished to the 
letter. And again the Sun, who engages in 
quarrels not his own, is sometimes represented 
as retiring moodily from the sight of men, like 
Achilleus and Meleagros : he is short-lived and 
ill-fated, born to do much good and to be re- 
paid with ingratitude ; his life depends on the 
duration of a burning brand, and when that is 
extinguished he must die. 

The myth of the great Theban hero, Oidi- 
pous, well illustrates the multiplicity of con- 
ceptions which clustered about the daily career 
of the solar orb. His father, Laios, had been 
152 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

warned by the Delphic oracle that he was in 
danger of death from his own son. The newly 
born Oidipous was therefore exposed on the 
hillside ; but, like Romulus and Remus, and 
all infants similarly situated in legend, was duly 
rescued. He was taken to Corinth, where he 
grew up to manhood. Journeying once to 
Thebes, he got into a quarrel with an old man 
whom he met on the road, and slew him, who 
was none other than his father, Laios. Reach- 
ing Thebes, he found the city harassed by the 
Sphinx, who afflicted the land with drought 
until she should receive an answer to her rid- 
dles. Oidipous destroyed the monster by solv- 
ing her dark sayings, and as a reward received 
the kingdom, with his own mother, lokaste, as 
his bride. Then the Erinyes hastened the dis- 
covery of these dark deeds ; lokaste died in her 
bridal chamber ; and Oidipous, having blinded 
himself, fled to the grove of the Eumenides, 
near Athens, where, amid flashing lightning 
and peals of thunder, he died. 

Oidipous is the Sun. Like all the solar he- 
roes, from Herakles and Perseus to Sigurd and 
William Tell, he performs his marvellous deeds 
at the behest of others* His father, Laios, is 
none other than the Vedic Dasyu, the night- 
demon who is sure to be destroyed by his solar 
offspring. In the evening, Oidipous is united 
to the Dawn, the mother who had borne him 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

at daybreak ; and here the original story doubt- 
less ended. In the Vedic hymns we find Indra, 
the Sun, born of Dahana (Daphne), the Dawn, 
whom he afterwards, in the evening twilight, 
marries. To the Indian mind the story was 
here complete ; but the Greeks had forgotten 
and outgrown the primitive signification of the 
myth. To them Oidipous and lokaste were 
human, or at least anthropomorphic beings ; 
and a marriage between them was a fearful crime 
which called for bitter expiation. Thus the lat- 
ter part of the story arose in the effort to satisfy 
a moral feeling. As the name of Laios denotes 
the dark night, so, like lole, Oinone, and lamos, 
the word lokaste signifies the delicate violet 
tints of the morning and evening clouds. Oidi- 
pous was exposed, like Paris upon Ida (a Vedic 
word meaning <c the earth "), because the sun- 
light in the morning lies upon the hillside. 1 He 
is borne on to the destruction of his father and 
the incestuous marriage with his mother by an 
irresistible Moira, or Fate ; the .sun cannot but 
slay the darkness and hasten to the couch of 

1 The Persian Cyrus is an historical personage ; but the 
story of his perils in infancy belongs to solar mythology as 
much as the stories of the magic sleep of Charlemagne and 
Barbarossa, His grandfather, Astyages, is purely a mythical 
creation, his name being identical with that of the night- 
demon, Azidahaka, who appears in the Shah-Nameh as the 
biting serpent Zohak. See Cox, Mythology of the Aryan 
Nations, ii. 358. 

154 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

the violet twilight. 1 The Sphinx is the storm- 
demon who sits on the cloud-rock and impri- 
sons the rain ; she is the same as Medusa, Ahi, 
or Echidna, and Chimaira, and is akin to the 
throttling snakes of darkness which the jealous 
Here sent to destroy Herakles in his cradle. 
The idea was not derived from Egypt, but the 
Greeks, on finding Egyptian figures resembling 
their conception of the Sphinx, called them by 
the same name. The omniscient Sun compre- 
hends the sense of her dark mutterings, and 
destroys her, as Indra slays Vritra, bringing 
down rain upon the parched earth. The Eri- 
nyes, who bring to light the crimes of Oidipous, 
have been explained, in a previous paper, as the 
personification of daylight, which reveals the 
evil deeds done under the cover of night. The 
grove of the Erinyes, like the garden of the 
Hyperboreans, represents "the fairy network 
of clouds, which are the first to receive and the 
last to lose the light of the sun in the morning 
and in the evening ; hence, although Oidipous 
dies in a thunderstorm, yet the Eumenides are 
kind to him, and his last hour is one of deep 
peace and tranquillity." 2 To the last remains 
with him his daughter Antigone, "she who is 

1 In mediaeval legend this resistless Moira is transformed 
into the curse which prevents the Wandering Jew from rest- 
ing until the day of judgment. 

2 Cox, Manual of Mythology, p. 134, 

155 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

born opposite," the pale light which springs up 
opposite to the setting sun. 

These examples show that a story-root may 
be as prolific of heterogeneous offspring as a 
word-root. Just as we find the root spak, " to 
look/' begetting words so various as ^ceptic, 
bishop, speculate, conspicuous, species, and spice, we 
must expect to find a simple representation of 
the diurnal course of the sun, like those lyri- 
cally given in the Veda, branching off into stories 
as diversified as those of Oidipous, Herakles, 
Odysseus, and Siegfried. In fact, the types 
upon which stories are constructed are wonder- 
fully few. Some clever playwright I believe 
it was Scribe has said that there are only 
seven possible dramatic situations ; that is, all the 
plays in the world may be classed with some one 
of seven archetypal dramas. 1 If this be true, the 
astonishing complexity of mythology taken in 
the concrete, as compared with its extreme sim- 
plicity when analyzed, need not surprise us. 

The extreme limits of divergence between 
stories descended from a common root are prob- 
ably reached in the myths of light and darkness 

1 In his interesting appendix to Henderson's Folk-Lore of 
the Northern Counties of England, Mr. Baring-Gould has 
made an ingenious and praiseworthy attempt to reduce the 
entire existing mass of household legends to about fifty story- 
roots ; and his list, though both redundant and defective, is 
nevertheless, as an empirical classification, very instructive. 

156 



LIGHT AND^DARKNESS 

with which the present discussion is mainly con- 
cerned. The subject will be best elucidated by 
taking a single one of these myths and follow- 
ing its various fortunes through different regions 
of the Aryan world. The myth of Hercules 
and Cacus has been treated by M. Breal in an 
essay which is one of the most valuable contri- 
butions ever made to the study of comparative 
mythology ; and while following his footsteps 
our task will be an easy one. 

The battle between Hercules and Cacus, al- 
though one of the oldest of the traditions com- 
mon to the whole Indo-European race, appears 
in Italy as a purely local legend, and is narrated 
as such by Virgil, in the eighth book of the 
JEndd ; by Livy, at the beginning of his his- 
tory; and by Propertius and Ovid. Hercules, 
journeying through Italy after his victory over 
Geryon, stops to rest by the bank of the Tiber. 
While he is taking his repose, the three-headed 
monster Cacus, a son of Vulcan and a formid- 
able brigand, comes and steals his cattle, and 
drags them tail foremost to a secret cavern in 
the rocks. But the lowing of the cows arouses 
Hercules, and he runs toward the cavern where 
th^ robber, already frightened, has taken refuge. 
Armed with a huge flinty rock, he breaks open 
the entrance of the cavern, and confronts the 
demon within, who vomits forth flames at him 
and roars like the thunder in the storm-cloud. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

After a short combat, his hideous body falls at 
the feet of the invincible hero, who erects on the 
spot an altar to Jupiter Inventor, in commem- 
oration of the recovery of his cattle. Ancient 
Rome teemed with reminiscences of this event, 
which Livy regarded as first in the long series 
of the exploits of his countrymen. The place 
where Hercules pastured his oxen was known 
long after as the Forum Boarium ; near it the 
Porta Trigemina preserved the recollection of 
the monster's triple head ; and in the time of 
Diodorus Siculus sightseers were shown the 
cavern of Cacus on the slope of the Aventine. 
Every tenth day the earlier generations of Ro- 
mans celebrated the victory with solemn sacri- 
fices at the Ara Maxima ; and on days of tri- 
umph the fortunate general deposited there a 
tithe of his booty, to be distributed among the 
citizens. 

In this famous myth, however, the god Her- 
cules did not originally figure. The Latin Her- 
cules was an essentially peaceful and domestic 
deity, watching over households and inclosures, 
and nearly akin to Terminus and the Penates. 
He does not appear to have been a solar divinity 
at all. But the purely accidental resemblance 
of his name to that of the Greek deity Hera- 
kles, 1 and the manifest identity of the Cacus 

1 There is nothing in common between the names Hercules 
and Herakles. The latter is a compound, formed like Themis- 

158 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

myth with the story of the victory of Herakles 
over Geryon, led to the substitution of Hercu- 
les for the original hero of the legend, who was 
none other than Jupiter, called by his Sabine 
name Sancus. Now Johannes Lydus informs 
us that, in Sabine, Sancus signified " the sky/* 
a meaning which we have already seen to belong 
to the name Jupiter. The same substitution of 
the Greek hero for the Roman divinity led to 
the alteration of the name of the demon over- 
come by his thunderbolts. The corrupted title 
Cacus was supposed to be identical with the 
Greek word kakos, meaning "evil," and the 
corruption was suggested by the epithet of 
Herakles, Alexikakos^ or " the averter of ill." 
Originally, however, the name was Cactus, " he 
who blinds or darkens," and it corresponds 
literally to the name of the Greek demon Kai- 

tokles ; the former is a simple derivative from the root ofher- 
cere, '* to inclose." If Herakles had any equivalent in Latin, 
it would necessarily begin with S, and not with H 9 as septa 
corresponds to cTrra, sequor to fTrojttat, etc. It should be noted, 
however, that Mommsen, in the fourth edition of his His- 
tory, abandons this view, and observes : "Auch der grie- 
chische Herakles ist friih als Herclus, Hercoles, Hercules in 
Et^Iien einheimisch und dort in eigenthiimHcher Weise auf- 
gefasst worden, wie es scheint zunachst als Gott des gewagten 
G f ewinns und der ausserordentlichen Vermogensvermehrung." 
Romische Geschichte, i. 1 8 1 . One would gladly learn Momm- 
sen' s reasons for recurring to this apparently less defensible 
opinion. 

159 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

kias, whom an old proverb, preserved by Aulus 
Gellius, describes as a stealer of the clouds. 1 

Thus the significance of the myth becomes 
apparent. The three-headed Cacus is seen to 
be a near kinsman of Geryon's three-headed 
dog Orthros, and of the three-headed Kerberos, 
the hellhound who guards the dark regions 
below the horizon. He is the original werewolf 
or Rakshasa, the fiend of the storm who steals 
the bright cattle of Helios, and hides them in 
the black cavernous rock, from which they are 
afterward rescued by the schamir or lightning- 
stone of the solar hero. The physical character 
of the myth is apparent even in the description 
of Virgil, which reads wonderfully like a Vedic 
hymn in celebration of the exploits of Indra. 
But when we turn to the Veda itself, we find 
the correctness of the interpretation demon- 
strated again and again, with inexhaustible pro- 
digality of evidence. Here we encounter again 
the three-headed Orthros under the identical 
title of Vrltra^ " he who shrouds or envelops," 
called also (jushna, "he who parches," Pani y 
"the robber," and Ahi y "the strangler." In 
many hymns of the Rig- Veda the story is told 
over and over, like a musical theme arranged with 
variations. Indra, the god of light, is a herds- 

1 For the relations between Sancus and Herakles, see Prel- 
ler, Rbmische Mythologie, p. 635 ; Vollmer, Mythologit, 
p. 970. 

1 60 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

man who tends a herd of bright golden or violet- 
coloured cattle. Viitra, a snake-like monster 
with three heads, steals them and hides them in 
a cavern, but Indra slays him as Jupiter slew 
Caecius, and the cows are recovered. The lan- 
guage of the myth is so significant that the 
Hindu commentators of the Veda have them- 
selves given explanations of it similar to those 
proposed by modern philologists. To them the 
legend never became devoid of sense, as the 
myth of Geryon appeared to Greek scholars 
like Apollodoros. 1 

These celestial cattle, with their resplendent 
coats of purple and gold, are the clouds lit up 
by the solar rays ; but the demon who steals 
them is not always the fiend of the storm, act- 
ing in that capacity. They are stolen every 
night by Vritra the concealer and Caecius the 
darkener, and Indra is obliged to spend hours 
in looking for them, sending Sarama, the incon- 
stant twilight, to negotiate for their recovery. 
Between the storm-myth and the myth of night 
and morning the resemblance is sometimes so 
close as to confuse the interpretation of the 
two. Many legends which Max Miiller ex- 
plains as myths of the victory of day over night 
are explained by Dr. Kuhn as storm-myths ; 
and the disagreement between two such power- 

1 Burnouf, Bhagavata-Purana, iii. p. Ixxxvi ; Breal, op. 
cit. p. 98. 

161 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ful champions would be a standing reproach 
to what is rather prematurely called the science 
of comparative mythology, were it not easy to 
show that the difference is merely apparent and 
non-essential. It is the old story of the shield 
with two sides ; and a comparison of the ideas 
fundamental to these myths will show that th^re 
is no valid ground for disagreement in the in- 
terpretation of them. The myths of schamir and 
the divining rod, analyzed in a previous paper, 
explain the rending of the thundercloud and 
the procuring of water without especial refer- 
ence to any struggle between opposing divini- 
ties. But in the myth of Hercules and Cacus, 
the fundamental idea is the victory of the solar 
god over the robber who steals the light. Now 
whether the robber carries off the light in the 
evening when Indra has gone to sleep, or boldly 
rears his black form against the sky during the 
daytime, causing darkness to spread over the 
earth, would make little difference to the fram- 
ers of the myth. To a chicken a solar eclipse is 
the same thing as nightfall, and he goes to roost 
accordingly. Why, then, should the primitive 
thinker have made a distinction between the 
darkening of the sky caused by black clouds 
and that caused by the rotation of the earth ? 
He had no more conception of the scientific 
explanation of these phenomena than the chicken 
has of the scientific explanation of an eclipse. 
162 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

For him it was enough to know that the solar 
radiance was stolen, in the one case as in the 
other, and to suspect that the same demon was 
to blame for both robberies. 

The Veda itself sustains this view. It is cer- 
tain that the victory of Indra over Vritra is es- 
sentially the same as his victory over the Panis. 
Vritra, the storm-fiend, is himself called one of 
the Panis ; yet the latter are uniformly repre- 
sented as night-demons* They steal Indra's 
golden cattle and drive them by circuitous paths 
to a dark hiding-place near the eastern horizon. 
Indra sends the dawn-nymph, Sarama, to search 
for them, but as she comes within sight of the 
dark stable, the Panis try to coax her to stay 
with them : " Let us make thee our sister, do 
not go away again ; we will give thee part of 
the cows, O darling/' 1 According to the text 
of this hymn, she scorns their solicitations, but 
elsewhere the fickle dawn-nymph is said to co- 
quet with the powers of darkness. She does 
not care for their cows, but will take a drink of 
milk, if they will be so good as to get it for 
her. Then she goes back and tells Indra that 
she cannot find the cows. He kicks her with 
his foot, and she runs back to the Panis, fol- 
lowed by the god, who smites them all with his 
unerring arrows and recovers the stolen light. 
From such a simple beginning as this has been 
1 Max Muller, Science of Language, H. 484. 

163 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

deduced the Greek myth of the faithlessness of 
Helen. 1 

These night-demons, the Panis, though not 
apparently regarded with any strong feeling of 
moral condemnation, are nevertheless hated and 
dreaded as the authors of calamity. They not 
only steal the daylight, but they parch the earth 
and wither the fruits, and they slay vegetation 
during the winter months. As Ctecius, the 
"darkener," became ultimately changed into 
CacuS) the cc evil one," so the name of Vritra y 
the " concealer," the most famous of the Panis, 
was gradually generalized until it came to mean 
"enemy," like the English wordjft?;^ and be- 
gan to be applied indiscriminately to any kind 
of evil spirit. In one place he is called Adeva, 
the " enemy of the gods," an epithet exactly 
equivalent to the Persian dev. 

In the Zendavesta the myth of Hercules 
and Cacus has given rise to a vast system of 
theology. The fiendish Panis are concentrated 
in Ahriman or Anro-mainyas, whose name sig- 
nifies the a spirit of darkness," and who carries 
on a perpetual warfare against Ormuzd or 
I As Max Muller observes, " Apart from all mythologi- 
cal considerations, Sarama in Sanskrit is the same word as 
Helena in Greek.'* Op. at. p. 490. The names corre- 
spond phonetically letter for letter, as Surya corresponds to 
Helios, Saramfyas to Hermeias, and Aharyu to Achilkus. 
Muller has plausibly suggested that Paris similarly answers 
to the Panis. 

164 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

Ahuramazda, who is described by his ordinary 
surname, Spentomainyas, as the " spirit of 
light." The ancient polytheism here gives 
place to a refined dualism, not very different 
from what in many Christian sects has passed 
current as monotheism. Ahriman is the arch- 
fiend, who struggles with Ormuzd, not for the 
possession of a herd of perishable cattle, but 
for the dominion of the universe. Ormuzd 
creates the world pure and beautiful, but Ahri- 
man comes after him and creates everything 
that is evil in it. He not only keeps the earth 
covered with darkness during half of the day, 
and withholds the rain and destroys the crops, 
but he is the author of all evil thoughts and 
the instigator of all wicked actions. Like his 
progenitor Vritra and his offspring Satan, he is 
represented under the form of a serpent ; and 
the destruction which ultimately awaits these 
demons is also in reserve for him. Eventually 
there is to be a day of reckoning, when Ahriman 
will be bound in chains and rendered power- 
less, or when, according to another account, he 
will be converted to righteousness, as Burns 
hoped and Origen believed would be the case 
with Satan. 

This dualism of the ancient Persians has 
exerted a powerful influence upon the develop- 
ment of Christian theology. The very idea of 
an archfiend Satan, which Christianity received 

165 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

from Judaism, seems either to have been sug- 
gested by the Persian Ahriman, or at least to 
have derived its principal characteristics from 
that source. There is no evidence that the 
Jews, previous to the Babylonish captivity, 
possessed the conception of a Devil as the au- 
thor of all evil. In the earlier books of the 
Old Testament Jehovah is represented as dis- 
pensing with his own hand the good and the 
evil, like the Zeus of the Iliad. 1 The story of 
the serpent In Eden an Aryan story in every 
particular, which has crept into the Pentateuch 
is not once alluded to in the Old Testament ; 
and the notion of Satan as the author of evil 
appears only in the later books, composed after 
the Jews had come into close contact with Per- 
sian ideas. 2 In the Book of Job, as Reville 

1 tf l create evil," Isaiah xlv. 7 ; t Shall there be evil 
in the city, and the Lord hath not done it ? 9> Amos iiL 6 ; 
c Iliad, xxiv. 527, and contrast 2 Samuel xxiv* I with 
I Chronicles xxi. I . 

3 Nor is there any ground for believing that the serpent in 
the Eden myth is intended for Satan. The identification is 
entirely the work of modern dogmatic theology, and is due, 
naturally enough, to the habit, so common alike among the- 
ologians and laymen, of reasoning about the Bible as if it 
were a single book, and not a collection of writings of differ- 
ent ages and of very different degrees of historic authenticity. 
In a future work, entitled " Aryana Vaedjo," I hope to 
examine, at considerable length, this interesting myth of the 
garden of Eden. [It is to be suspected that chapters iiL~v. 

1 66 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

observes, Satan is " still a member of the celes- 
tial court, being one of the sons of the Elohim, 
but having as his special office the continual 
accusation of men, and having become so sus- 
picious by his practice as public accuser that he 
believes in the virtue of no one, and always 
presupposes interested motives for the purest 
manifestations of human piety/' In this way 
the character of this angel became injured, and 
he became more and more an object of dread 
and dislike to men, until the later Jews ascribed 
to him all the attributes of Ahriman, and in 
this singularly altered shape he passed into 
Christian theology. Between the Satan of the 
Book of Job and the mediaeval Devil the mSta- 
morphosis is as great as that which degraded 
the stern Erinys, who brings evil deeds to light, 
into the demon-like Fury who torments wrong- 
doers in Tartarus ; and, making allowance for 
difference of circumstances, the process of de- 
gradation has been very nearly the same in the 
two cases. 

The mediaeval conception of the Devil is a 
grotesque compound of elements derived from 
all the systems of pagan mythology which 
Christianity superseded. He is primarily a re- 
bellious angel, expelled from heaven along with 
his followers, like the giants who attempted to 

of Excursions of an Evolutionist are fragments of Aryana 
Vaedjo.] 

I6 7 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

scale Olympos, and like the impious Efreets of 
Arabian legend who revolted against the bene- 
ficent rule of Solomon. As the serpent prince 
of the outer darkness, he retains the old charac- 
teristics of Vritra, Ahi, Typhon, and Echidna. 
As the black dog which appears behind the 
stove in Dr. Faust's study, he is the classic hell- 
hound Kerberos, the Vedic arvara. From the 
sylvan deity Pan he gets his goat-like body, 
his horns and cloven hoofs. Like the wind-god 
Orpheus, to whose music the trees bent their 
heads to listen, he is an unrivalled player on the 
bagpipes. Like those other wind-gods the psy- 
chopomp Hermes and the wild huntsman Odin, 
he is the prince of the powers of the air : his 
flight through the midnight sky, attended by 
his troop of witches mounted on their brooms, 
which sometimes break the boughs and sweep 
the leaves from the trees, is the same as the fu- 
rious chase of the Erlking Odin or the Burckar 
Vittikab. He is Dionysos, who causes red wine 
to flow from the dry wood, alike on the deck 
of the Tyrrhenian pirate-ship and in Auerbach's 
cellar at Leipzig. He is Wayland, the smith, 
a skilful worker in metals and a wonderful ar- 
chitect, like the classic fire-god Hephaistos or 
Vulcan ; and, like Hephaistos, he is lame from 
the effects of his fall from heaven. From the 
lightning-god Thor he obtains his red beard, 
his pitchfork, and his power over thunderbolts; 
168 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

and, like that ancient deity, he is in the habit 
of beating his wife behind the door when the 
rain falls during sunshine. Finally, he takes 
a hint from. Poseidon and from the swan- 
maidens, and appears as a water imp or Nixy 
(whence probably his name of Old Nick), and 
as the Davy (dwa) whose fc locker " is situated 
at the bottom of the sea. 1 

According to the Scotch divines of the seven- 
teenth century, the Devil is a learned scholar 
and profound thinker. Having profited by six 
thousand years of intense study and meditation, 
he has all science, philosophy, and theology at 
his tongue's end ; and, as his skill has increased 
with age, he is far more than a match for mor- 
tals in cunning. 2 Such, however, is not the view 
taken by mediasval mythology, which usually re- 
presents his stupidity as equalling his malignity. 
The victory of Hercules over Cacus is repeated 
in a hundred mediaeval legends in which the 
Devil is overreached and made a laughing-stock. 
The germ of this notion may be found in the 

1 For further particulars see Cox, Mythology of the Aryan 
Nations, vol. ii. pp. 358, 366 ; to which I am indebted for 
several of the details here given. Compare Welcker, 
Griechische Gotterkhrs, i. 66 1, seq. 

2 Many amusing passages from Scotch theologians are 
cited in Buckle's History of Civilization, vol. ii. p. 368. 
The same belief is implied in the quaint monkish tale of 
Celestinus and the Miller's Horse." See Tales from the 
Gesta Romanorum, p. 134. 

169 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

blinding of Polyphemos by Odysseus, which is 
itself a victory of the sun-hero over the night- 
demon, and which curiously reappears in a 
Middle-Age story narrated by Mr. Cox. " The 
Devil asks a man who is moulding buttons 
what he may be doing ; and when the man an- 
swers that he is moulding eyes, asks him further 
whether he can give him a pair of new eyes. He 
is told to come again another day ; and when 
he makes his appearance accordingly, the man 
tells him that the operation cannot be performed 
rightly unless he is first tightly bound with his 
back fastened to a bench. While he is thus 
pinioned he asks the man's name. The reply is 
Issi ( c himself). When the lead is melted, the 
Devil opens his eyes wide to receive the deadly 
stream. As soon as he is blinded, he starts up 
in agony, bearing away the bench to which he 
had been bound ; and when some workpeople 
in the fields ask him who had thus treated him, 
his answer is, * Issi teggi * ( c Self did it '). With 
a laugh they bid him lie on the bed which he 
has made : c selbst gethan, selbst habe.' The 
Devil died of his new eyes, and was never seen 
again." 

In his attempts to obtain human souls the 
Devil is frequently foiled by the superior cun- 
ning of mortals. Once, he agreed to build a 
house for a peasant in exchange for the peas- 
ant's soul ; but if the house were not finished 
170 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

before cockcrow, the contract was to be null and 
void. Just as the Devil was putting on the last 
tile the man imitated a cockcrow and waked 
up all the roosters in the neighbourhood, so 
that the fiend had his labour for his pains* A 
merchant of Louvain once sold himself to the 
Devil, who heaped upon him all manner of 
riches for seven years, and then came to get 
him. The merchant " took the Devil in a 
friendly manner by the hand and, as it was just 
evening, said, c Wife, bring a light quickly for 
the gentleman.' c That is not at all necessary/ 
said the Devil ; f I am merely come to fetch 
you.' 'Yes, yes, that I know very well,' said 
the merchant, c only just grant me the time till 
this little candle-end is burnt out, as I have a 
few letters to sign and to put on my coat/ 
c Very well/ said the Devil, * but only till the 
candle is burnt out.' ( Good,' said the mer- 
chant, and going into the next room, ordered 
the maid-servant to place a large cask full of 
water close to a very deep pit that was dug in 
the garden. The men-servants also carried, each 
of them, a cask to the spot ; and when all was 
done, they were ordered each to take a shovel, 
and stand round the pit. The merchant then 
returned to the Devil, who seeing that not more 
than about an inch *of candle remained, said, 
laughing, c Now get yourself ready, it will soon 
be burnt out/ * That I see, and am content ; 
171 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

but I shall hold you to your word, and stay till 
it is burnt/ c Of course/ answered the Devil ; 
c I stick to my word.' ' It is dark in the next 
room/ continued the merchant, c but I must 
find the great book with clasps, so let me just 
take the light for one moment.' c Certainly/ 
said the Devil, ' but I '11 go with you/ He 
did so, and the merchant's trepidation was now 
on the increase. When in the next room he 
said on a sudden, c Ah, now I know, the key 
is in the garden door/ And with these words 
he ran out with the light into the garden, and 
before the Devil could overtake him, threw it 
into the pit, and the men and the maids poured 
water upon it, and then filled up the hole with 
earth. Now came the Devil into the garden 
and asked, 'Well, did you get the key? and 
how is it with "the candle ? where is it ? * c The 
candle ? ' said the merchant. f Yes, the candle/ 
c Ha, ha, ha ! it is not yet burnt out/ answered 
the merchant, laughing, f and will not be burnt 
out for the next fifty years ; it lies there a hun- 
dred fathoms deep in the earth/ When the 
Devil heard this he screamed awfully, and went 
off with a most intolerable stench." l 

One day a fowler, who was a terrible bungler 
and could n't hit a bird at a dozen paces, sold 
his soul to the Devil in order to become a Frei- 
schutz. The fiend was to come for him in seven 
1 Thorpe, Northern Mythology, vol. ii. p. 258, 
172 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

years, but must be always able to name the an- 
imal at which he was shooting, otherwise the 
compact was to be nullified. After that day the 
fowler never missed his aim, and never did a 
fowler command such wages. When the seven 
years were out the fowler told all these things 
to his wife, and the twain hit upon an expedient 
for cheating the Devil. The woman stripped 
herself, daubed her whole body with molasses, 
and rolled herself up in a feather-bed, cut open 
for this purpose. Then she hopped and skipped 
about the field where her husband stood parley- 
ing with Old Nick. " There 's a shot for you, 
fire away," said the Devil. " Of course I '11 fire, 
but do you first tell me what kind of a bird it 
is ; else our agreement is cancelled, Old Boy.'* 
There was no help for it; the Devil had to 
own himself nonplussed, and off he fled, with a 
whiff of brimstone which nearly suffocated the 
Freischutz and his good woman. 1 

In the legend of Gambrinus, the fiend is still 
more ingloriously defeated. Gambrinus was a 
fiddler, who, being jilted by his sweetheart, 

1 Thorpe, Northern Mythology, vol. ii. p. 259. In the 
Norse story of ff Not a Pin to choose between them,*' the 
old woman is in doubt as to her own identity, on waking tip 
after the butcher has dipped her in a tar-barrel and rolled her 
on a heap of feathers ; and when Tray barks at her, her per- 
plexity is as great as the Devil's when fooled by the Frei- 
gchiitz. See Dasent, Norse Tales, p. 199. 

173 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

went out into the woods to hang himself. As 
he was sitting on the bough, with the cord about 
his neck, preparatory to taking the fatal plunge, 
suddenly a tall man in a green coat appeared 
before him, and offered his services. He might 
become as wealthy as he liked, and make his 
sweetheart burst with vexation at her own folly, 
but in thirty years he must give up his soul to 
Beelzebub. The bargain was struck, for Gam- 
brinus thought thirty years a long time to enjoy 
one's self in, and perhaps the Devil might get 
him in any event ; as well be hung for a sheep 
as for a lamb. Aided by Satan, he invented 
chiming bells and lager beer, for both of which 
achievements his name is held in grateful re- 
membrance by the Teuton, No sooner had the 
Holy Roman Emperor quaffed a gallon or two 
of the new beverage than he made Gambrinus 
Duke of Brabant and Count of Flanders, and 
then it was the fiddler's turn to laugh at the 
discomfiture of his old sweetheart. Gambrinus 
kept clear of women, says the legend, and so 
lived in peace. For thirty years he sat beneath 
his belfry with the chimes, meditatively drink- 
ing beer with his nobles and burghers around 
him. Then Beelzebub sent Jocko, one of his 
imps, with orders to bring back Gambrinus be- 
fore midnight. But Jocko was, like Swiveller's 
Marchioness, ignorant of the taste of beer, never 
having drunk of it even in a sip, and the Flem- 
174 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

ish schoppen were too much for him. He fell 
into a drunken sleep, and did not wake up until 
noon next day, at which he was so mortified 
that he had not the face to go back to hell at 
alL So Gambrinus lived on tranquilly for a cen- 
tury or two, and drank so much beer that he 
turned into a beer-barrel. 1 

The character of gullibility attributed to the 
Devil in these legends is probably derived from 
the Trolls, or " night-folk," of Northern my- 
thology* In most respects the Trolls resemble 
the Teutonic elves and fairies, and the Jinn or 
Efreets of the Arabian Nights ; but their ped- 
igree is less honourable. The fairies, or " White 
Ladies," were not originally spirits of darkness, 
but were nearly akin to the swan-maidens, 
dawn-nymphs, and dryads, and though their 
wrath was to be dreaded, they were not malig- 
nant by nature. Christianity, having no place 
for such beings, degraded them into something 
like imps ; the most charitable theory being that 
they were angels who had remained neutral 
during Satan's rebellion, in punishment for 
which Michael expelled them from heaven, but 
has left their ultimate fate unannounced until 
the day of judgment. The Jinn appear to have 
been similarly degraded on the rise of Moham- 
medanism. But the Trolls were always imps 
of darkness. They are descended from the Jo- 

1 See Detilin, Contes un Buvenr de Ilure, pp. 329* 

175 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

tuns, or Frost-Giants of Northern paganism, 
and they correspond to the Panis, or night- 
demons of the Veda. In many Norse tales they 
are said to burst when they see the risen sun. 1 
They eat human flesh, are ignorant of the sim- 
plest arts, and live in the deepest recesses of the 
forest or in caverns on the hillside, where the 
sunlight never penetrates. Some of these char- 
acteristics may very likely have been suggested 
by reminiscences of the primeval Lapps, from 
whom the Aryan invaders wrested the domin- 
ion of Europe. 2 In some legends the Trolls are 
represented as an ancient race of beings now 
superseded by the human race. cc c What sort 
of an earthworm is this ? ' said one Giant to 
another, when they met a man as they walked. 
e These are the earthworms that will one day 
eat us up, brother/ answered the other; and 
soon both Giants left that part of Germany." 
<c c See what pretty playthings, mother ! ' cries 
the Giant's daughter, as she unties her apron, 
and shows her a plough, and horses, and a peas- 
ant. c Back with them this instant/ cries the 
mother in wrath, c and put them down as care- 
fully as you can, for these playthings can do our 

1 Dasent, Popular Tales from the Norse, No. III. and 
No. XLII. 

2 See Dasent' s Introduction, p. cxxxix ; Campbell, Tales 
sf the West Highlands) vol. iv. p. 344 ; and Williams, /#- 
Han Epic Poetry, p. 10. 

176 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

race great harm, and when these come we must 
budge/ " Very naturally the primitive Teuton, 
possessing already the conception of night-de- 
mons, would apply it to these men of the woods 
whom even to this day his uneducated descend- 
ants believe to be sorcerers, able to turn men 
into wolves. But whatever contributions his- 
torical fact may have added to his character, the 
Troll is originally a creation of mythology, like 
Polyphemos, whom he resembles in his uncouth 
person, his cannibal appetite, and his lack of 
wit. His ready gullibility is shown in the story 
of <c Boots who ate a Match with the Troll/* 
Boots, the brother of Cinderella, and the coun- 
terpart alike of Jack the Giant-Killer and of 
Odysseus, is the youngest of three brothers who 
go into a forest to cut wood. The Troll appears 
and threatens to kill any one who dares to med- 
dle with his timber. The elder brothers flee, 
but Boots puts on a bold face. He pulled a 
cheese out of his scrip and squeezed it till the 
whey began to spurt out, cc Hold your tongue, 
you dirty Troll," said he, cc or I '11 squeeze you 
as I squeeze this stone/' So the Troll grew 
timid and begged to be spared, 1 and Boots let 

1 e * A Leopard was returning home from hunting on one 
occasion, when he lighted on the kraal of a Ram. Now 
the Leopard had never seen a Ram before, and accordingly, 
approaching submissively, he said, * Good-day, friend ! what 
may your name be ? * The other, in his gruff voice, and 

177 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

him off on condition that he would hew all day 
with him. They worked till nightfall, and the 
Troll's giant strength accomplished wonders. 
Then Boots went home with the Troll, having 
arranged that he should get the water while his 
host made the fire. When they reached the hut 
there were two enormous iron pails, so heavy 
that none but a Troll could lift them, but Boots 
was not to be frightened. " Bah ! " said he. 
" Do you suppose I am going to get water in 
those paltry hand-basins ? Hold on till I go 
and get the spring itself! " " Oh, dear ! " said 
the Troll, <c I *d rather not; do you make the 
fire, and I *11 get the water." Then when the 
soup was made, Boots challenged his new friend 
to an eating match ; and tying his scrip in front 
of him, proceeded to pour soup into it by the 
ladlefuL By and by the giant threw down his 
spoon in despair, and owned himself conquered. 
cc No, no ! don't give it up yet," said Boots, 
"just cut a hole in your stomach like this, 
and you can eat forever." And suiting the ac- 
tion to the words, he ripped open his scrip. So 
the silly Troll cut himself open and died, and 
Boots carried off all his gold and silver. 

Once there was a Troll whose name was Wind- 
striking Ms breast with his fore foot, said, e I am a Ram; who 
are you?* *A Leopard,' answered the other, more dead 
than alive ; and then, taking leave of the Ram, he ran home 
as fast as he could. " Bleek, Hottentot Fables, p. 24. 

178 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

and-Weather, and Saint Olaf hired him to build 
a church. If the church were completed within 
a certain specified time, the Troll was to get pos- 
session of Saint Ola The saint then planned 
such a stupendous edifice that he thought the 
giant would be forever building it ; but the work 
went on briskly, and at the appointed day no- 
thing remained but to finish the point of the 
spire. In his consternation Olaf rushed about 
until he passed by the TrolFs den, when he 
heard the giantess telling her children that their 
father, Wind-and- Weather, was finishing his 
church, and would be home to-morrow with 
Saint Olaf. So the saint ran back to the church 
and bawled out, cc Hold on, Wind-and-Weather, 
your spire is crooked!" Then the giant tum- 
bled down from the roof and broke into a thou- 
sand pieces. As in the cases of the Mara and 
the werewolf, the enchantment was at an end as 
soon as the enchanter was called by name. 

These Trolls, like the Arabian Efreets, had 
an ugly habit of carrying off beautiful prin- 
cesses. This is strictly in keeping with their 
character as night-demons, or Panis. In the 
stories of Punchkin and the Heartless Giant, the 
night-demon carries off the dawn-maiden after 
having turned into stone h er solar brethren. But 
Boots, or Indra, in search of his kinsfolk, by 
and by arrives at the Troll's castle, and then the 
dawn-nymph, true to her fickle character, cajoles 
179 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the Giant and enables Boots to destroy him. 
In the famous myth which serves as the basis 
for the Volsunga Saga and the Nibelungenlied, 
the dragon Fafnir steals the Valkyrie Brynhild 
and keeps her shut up in a castle on the Glis- 
tening Heath, until some champion shall be 
found powerful enough to rescue her. The 
castle is as hard to enter as that of the Sleeping 
Beauty; but Sigurd, the Northern Achilleus, 
riding on his deathless horse, and wielding his 
resistless sword Gram, forces his way in, slays 
Fafnir, and recovers the Valkyrie. 

In the preceding paper the Valkyries were 
shown to belong to the class of cloud-maidens ; 
and between the tale of Sigurd and that of Her- 
cules and Cacus there is no difference, save that 
the bright sunlit clouds which are represented 
in the one as cows are in the other represented 
as maidens. In the myth of the Argonauts they 
reappear as the Golden Fleece, carried to the far 
east by Phrixos and Helle, who are themselves 
Niblungs, or " Children of the Mist " (Nephele), 
and there guarded by a dragon. In all these 
myths a treasure is stolen by a fiend of darkness, 
and recovered by a hero of light, who slays the 
demon. And remembering what Scribe said 
about the fewness of dramatic types I believe 
we are warranted in asserting that all the stories 
of lovely women held in bondage by monsters, 
and rescued by heroes who perform wonderful 
180 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

tasks, such as Don Quixote burned to achieve, 
are derived ultimately from solar myths, like the 
myth of Sigurd and Brynhild. I do not mean 
to say that the story-tellers who beguiled their 
time in stringing together the incidents which 
make up these legends were conscious of their 
solar character. They did not go to work, with 
malice prepense, to weave allegories and apo- 
logues. The Greeks who first told the story of 
Perseus and Andromeda, the Arabians who de- 
vised the tale of Codadad and his brethren, the 
Flemings who listened over their beer mugs to 
the adventures of Culotte-Verte, were not think- 
ing of sun-gods or dawn-maidens, or night- 
demons ; and no theory of mythology can 
be sound which implies such an extravagance. 
Most of these stories have lived on the lips of 
the common people ; and illiterate persons are 
not in the habit of allegorizing in the style of 
mediaeval monks or rabbinical commentators. 
But what has been amply demonstrated is, that 
the sun and the clouds, the light and the dark- 
ness, were once supposed to be actuated by wills 
analogous to the humSn will ; that they were 
personified and worshipped or propitiated by 
sacrifice ; and that their doings were described 
in language which applied so well to the deeds 
of human or quasi-human beings that in course 
of time its primitiye purport faded from recol- 
lection. No competent scholar now doubts that 
181 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the myths of the Veda and the Edda originated 
in this way, for philology itself shows that the 
names employed in them are the names of the 
great phenomena of nature. And when once a 
few striking stories had thus arisen, when 
once it had been told how Indra smote the 
Panis, and how Sigurd rescued Brynhild, and 
how Odysseus blinded the Kyklops, then cer- 
tain mythic or dramatic types had been called 
into existence ; and to these types, preserved 
in the popular imagination, future stories would 
inevitably conform. We need, therefore, have 
no hesitation in admitting a common origin for 
the vanquished Panis and the outwitted Troll 
or Devil ; we may securely compare the legends 
of St. George and Jack the Giant- Killer with the 
myth of Indra slaying Vritra ; we may see in 
the Invincible Sigurd the prototype of many a 
doughty knight-errant of romance ; and we may 
learn anew the lesson, taught with fresh empha- 
sis by modern scholarship, that in the deepest 
sense there is nothing new under the sun. 

I am the more explicit on this point, because 
it seems to me that the unguarded language of 
many students of mythology is liable to give 
rise to misapprehensions, and to discredit both 
the method which they employ and the results 
which they have obtained. If we were to give 
full weight to the statements which are some- 
times made, we should perforce believe that 
182 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

primitive men had nothing to do but to pon- 
der about the sun and the clouds, and to worry 
themselves over the disappearance of daylight. 
But there is nothing in the scientific interpreta- 
tion of myths which obliges us to go any such 
length. I do not suppose that any ancient Ar- 
yan, possessed of good digestive powers and 
endowed with sound common-sense, ever lay 
awake half the night wondering whether the sun 
would come back again. 1 The child and the 
savage believe of necessity that the future will 
resemble the past, and it is only philosophy 
which raises doubts on the subject. 2 The pre- 
dominance of solar legends in most systems of 
mythology is not due to the lack of <c that Ti- 
tanic assurance with which we say, the sun must 
rise ; " 3 nor again to the fact that the phenom- 
ena of day and night are the most striking phe- 
nomena in nature. Eclipses and earthquakes 
and floods are phenomena of the most terrible 

1 I agree, most heartily, with Mr. Mahafly's remarks, 
Prolegomena to Ancient History, p. 69. 

2 Sir George Grey once told some Australian natives about 
the countries within the arctic circle where during part of the 
year the sun never sets. ** Their astonishment now knew no 
bounds. * Ah ! that must be another sun, not the same as 
the one we see here/ said an old man ; and in spite of all 
my arguments to the contrary, the others adopted this opin- 
ion.*' Grey's Journals, i. 293, cited in Tylor, Early His- 
tory of Mankind, p. 301. 

8 Max Muller, Chips, ii. 96. 

183 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

and astounding kind, and they have all gener- 
ated myths ; yet their contributions to folk-lore 
are scanty compared with those furnished by the 
strife between the day-god and his enemies. 
The sun-myths have been so prolific because 
the dramatic types to which they have given rise 
are of surpassing human interest. The. dragon 
who swallows the sun is no doubt a fearful 
personage ; but the hero who toils for others, 
who slays hydra-headed monsters, and dries the 
tears of fair-haired damsels, and achieves success 
in spite of incredible obstacles, is a being with 
whom we can all sympathize, and of whom we 
never weary of hearing. 

With many of these legends which present 
the myth of light and darkness in its most at- 
tractive form, the reader is already acquainted, 
and it is needless to retail stories which have 
been told over and over again in books which 
every one is presumed to have read. I will 
content myself with a weird Irish legend, nar- 
rated by Mr. Patrick Kennedy, 1 in which we 
here and there catch glimpses of the primitive 
mythical symbols, as fragments of gold are seen 
gleaming through the crystal of quartz. 

Long before the Danes ever came to Ire- 
land, there died at Muskerry a Sculloge, or 
country farmer, who by dint of hard work and 
close economy had amassed enormous wealth. 
1 Fictions of the Irish Celts 9 pp. 255-270. 
184 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

His only son did not resemble him. When the 
young Sculloge looked about the house, the 
day after his fathers death, and saw the big 
chests full of gold and silver, and the cup- 
boards shining with piles of sovereigns, and the 
old stockings stuffed with large and small coin, 
he said to himself, " Bedad, how shall I ever be 
able to spend the likes o' that ! " And so he 
drank, and gambled, and wasted his time in 
hunting and horse-racing, until after a while 
he found the chests empty and the cupboards 
poverty-stricken, and the stockings lean and 
penniless. Then he mortgaged his farmhouse 
and gambled away all the money he got for it, 
and then he bethought him that a few hundred 
pounds might be raised on his mill. But when 
he went to look at it, he found "the dam 
broken, and scarcely a thimbleful of water in 
the mill-race, and the wheel rotten, and the 
thatch of the house all gone, and the upper 
millstone lying flat on the lower one, and a coat 
of dust and mould over everything/* So he 
made up his mind to borrow a horse and take 
one more hunt to-morrow and then reform his 
habits. 

As he was returning late in the evening from 
this farewell hunt, passing through a lonely 
glen he came upon an old man playing back- 
gammon, betting on his left hand against his 
right, and crying and cursing because the right 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 



"Come and bet with me/' said he 
to Sculloge. " Faith, I have but a sixpence in 
the world," was the reply ; " but, if you like, 
I '11 wager that on the right." " Done," said 
the old man, who was a Druid ; " if you win 
1 11 give you a hundred guineas/* So the game 
was played, and the old man, whose right hand 
was always the winner, paid over the guineas 
and told Sculloge to go to the Devil with 
them. 

Instead of following this bit of advice, how- 
ever, the young farmer went home and began 
to pay his debts, and next week he went to 
the glen and won another game, and made the 
Druid rebuild his mill. So Sculloge became 
prosperous again, and by and by he tried his 
luck a third time, and won a game played for 
a beautiful wife. The Druid sent her to his 
house the next morning before he was out of 
bed, and his servants came knocking at the 
door and crying, a Wake up ! wake up ! Master 
Sculloge, there *s a young lady here to see you/* 
cc Bedad, it's the vanithee 1 herself," said Scul- 
loge ; and getting up in a hurry, he spent three 
quarters of an hour in dressing himself. At last 
he went downstairs, and there on the sofa was 
the prettiest lady ever seen in Ireland ! Natu- 
rally, Sculloge's heart beat fast and his voice 

1 A corruption of Gaelic bhan a teaigh, ** lady of the 
house." 

186 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

trembled, as he begged the lady's pardon foi 
this Druidic style of wooing, and besought her 
not to feel obliged to stay with him unless she 
really liked him. But the young lady, who was 
a king's daughter from a far country, was won- 
drously charmed with the handsome farmer, and 
so well did they get along that the priest was 
sent for without further delay, and they were 
married before sundown. Sabina was the vani- 
thee's name ; and she warned her husband to 
have no more dealings with Lassa Buaicht, the 
old man of the glen. So for a while all went 
happily, and the Druidic bride was as good as 
she was beautiful. But by and by Sculloge J^ 
gan to think he was not earning ^^ev fast 
enough He could not bear ^^Tj^ wife > s 
white hands soiled with ^ and thought it 

W ^ : a $**8 if he could only afford to 
JLcpli Few more servants, and drive about with 
Sabina in an elegant carriage, and see her 
clothed in silk and adorned with jewels. 

cc I will play one more game and set the stakes 
high;" said Sculloge to himself one evening, as 
he sat pondering over these things; and gpy 
without consulting Sabina-, te^ttJfe"away to the 
glen, and played a game for ten thousand 
guineas. But the evil Druid was now ready to 
pounce on his prey, and he did not play as 
of old. Sculloge broke into a cold sweat with 
agony and terror as he saw the left hand win 1 
187 * 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

i hen the face of Lassa Buaicht grew dark and 
stern, and he laid on Sculloge the curse which 
is laid upon the solar hero in misfortune, that 
he should never sleep twice under the same 
roof, or ascend the couch of the dawn-nymph, 
his wife, until he should have procured and 
brought to him the sword of light. When 
Sculloge reached home, more dead than alive, 
he saw that his wife knew all. Bitterly they 
wept together, but she told him that with cour- 
age all might be set right. She gave him a 
Druidic horse, which bore him swiftly over land 
and sea, like the enchanted steed of the Arabian 
.Nights, until he reached the castle of his wife's 
father, wiko, as Sculloge now learned, was a good 
Druid, the brcTfher of the evil Lassa Buaicht. 
This good Druid to"I43im that the sword of 
light was kept by a third brother, the power- 
ful magician, Fiach O'Duda, who dwelt? A?*n 
enchanted castle, which many brave heroes had 
tried to enter, but the dark sorcerer had slain 
them all. Three high walls surrounded the 
castle, and many had scaled the first of these, 
but none had ever returned alive. But Scul- 
loge was not to be daunted, and, taking from 
his father-in-law a black steed, he set out for 
the fortress of Fiach O'Duda. Over the first 
high wall nimbly leaped the magic horse, and 
Sculloge called aloud on the Druid to come out 
and surrender his sword. Then came out a 
188 



LIGHT AND DARKNESS 

tall, dark man, with coal-black eyes and hair ana 
melancholy visage, and made a furious sweep 
at Sculloge with the flaming blade. But the 
Druidic beast sprang back over the wall in the 
twinkling of an eye and rescued his rider, leav- 
ing, however, his tail behind in the courtyard. 
Then Sculloge returned in triumph to his 
father-in-law's palace, and the night was spent 
in feasting and revelry. 

Next day Sculloge rode out on a white horse, 
and when he got to Fiach's castle, he saw the 
first wall lying in rubbish. He leaped the 
second, and the same scene occurred as the day 
before, save that the horse escaped unharmed. 

The third day Sculloge went out on f O Qt: 
with a harp like that of Orpheus, ]& }^ s hand 
and as he swept its strings t] ie g ras s bent to 
listen and the trees 'bowed their heads. The 
castle walh all lay in ruins, and Sculloge made 
his way unhindered to the upper room, where 
Fiach lay in Druidic slumber, lulled by the harp. 
He seized the sword of light, which was hung by 
the chimney sheathed in a dark scabbard, and 
making the best of his way back to the goad 
king's palace, mounted his -wife VlstenSTand 
scoured over land and sea until he found him- 
self in the gloomy glen where Lassa Buaicht 
was still crying and cursing and betting on his 
left hand against his right. 

cc Here, treacherous fiend, take your sword 
189 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

jf light ! " shouted Sculloge in tones of thun- 
der ; and as he drew it from its sheath the whole 
valley was lighted up as with the morning sun, 
and next moment the head of the wretched 
Druid was lying at his feet, and his sweet wife, 
who had come to meet him, was laughing and 
crying in his arms. 

November, 1870. 



190 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

THE theory of mythology set forth In 
the four preceding papers, and illus- 
trated by the examination of numerous 
myths relating to the lightning, the storm-wind, 
the clouds, and the sunlight, was originally 
framed with reference solely to the mythic 
and legendary lore of the Aryan world. The 
phonetic identity of the names of many West- 
ern gods and heroes with the names of those 
Vedic divinities which are obviously the person- 
ifications of natural phenomena, suggested the 
theory which philosophical considerations had 
already foreshadowed in the works of Hume 
arid Comte, and which the exhaustive analysis 
of Greek, Hindu, Keltic, and Teutonic legends 
has amply confirmed. Let us now, before pro- 
ceeding to the consideration of barbaric folk- 
lore, briefly recapitulate the results obtained by 
modern scholarship working strictly within the 
limits of the Aryan domain. 

In the first place, it has been proved once for 
all that the languages spoken by the Hindus, 
Persians, Greeks, Romans, Kelts, Slaves, and 
191 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

TCatons are all descended from a single ances- 
tral language, the old Aryan, In the same sense 
that French, Italian, and Spanish are descended 
from the Latin. And from this undisputed fact 
it is an inevitable inference that these various 
races contain, along with other elements, a race 
element in common, due to their Aryan pedi- 
gree. That the Indo-European races are wholly 
Aryan is very improbable, for in every case the 
countries overrun by them were occupied by in- 
ferior races, whose blood must have mingled in 
varying degrees with that of their conquerors ; 
but that every Indo-European people is in great 
part descended from a common Aryan stock is 
not open to question. 

In the second place, along with a common 
fund of moral and religious ideas and of legal 
and ceremonial observances, we find these kin- 
dred peoples possessed of a common fund of 
myths, superstitions, proverbs, popular poetry, 
and household legends. The Hindu mother 
amuses her child with fairy-tales which often 
correspond, even in minor incidents, with stories 
in Scottish or Scandinavian nurseries ; and she 
tells them in words which are phonetically akin 
to words in Swedish and Gaelic. No doubt 
many of these stories might have been devised 
in a dozen different places independently of each 
other ; and no doubt many of them have been 
transmitted laterally from one people to another ; 
192 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

but a careful examination shows that such can- 
not have been the case with the great riajority 
of legends and beliefs. The agreement between 
two such stories, for instance, as those of Faith- 
ful John- and Rama and Luxman is so close as 
to make it incredible that they should have been 
Independently fabricated, while the points of 
difference are so important as to make it ex- 
tremely improbable that the one was ever copied 
from the other. Besides which, the essential 
identity of such myths as those of Sigurd and 
Theseus, or of Helena and Sarama, carries us 
back historically to a time when the scattered 
Indo-European Bribes had not yet begun to 
hold commercial and intellectual intercourse 
with each other, and consequently could not 
have interchanged their epic materials or their 
household stories. We are therefore driven to 
the conclusion which, startling as it may 
seem, is after all the most natural and plausible 
one that can be stated that the Aryan nations, 
which have inherited from a common ancestral 
stock their languages and their customs, have 
inherited also from the same common original 
their fireside legends. They have preserved 
Cinderella and Punchkin just as they have pre- 
served the words for father and mot her y ten and 
twenty ; and the former case, though more im- 
posing to the imagination, is scientifically no 
less intelligible than the latter. 

193 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Thirdly, it has been shown that these vener- 
able tales may be grouped in a few pretty well 
defined classes ; and that the archetypal myth 
of each class the primitive story in conform- 
ity to which countless subsequent tales have 
been generated was originally a mere descrip- 
tion of physical phenomena, couched in the 
poetic diction of an age when everything was 
personified, because all natural phenomena were 
supposed to be due to the direct workings of a 
volition like that of which men were conscious 
within themselves. Thus we are led to the 
striking conclusion that mythology has had a 
common root, both with science and with reli- 
gious philosophy. The myth of Indra conquer- 
ing Vritra was one of the theorems of primitive 
Aryan science ; it was a provisional explanation 
of the thunderstorm, satisfactory enough until 
extended observation and reflection supplied a 
better one. It also contained the germs of a 
theology ; for the life-giving solar light fur- 
nished an important part of the primeval con- 
ception of deity. And finally, it became the 
fruitful parent of countless myths, whether em- 
bodied in the stately epics of Homer and the 
bards of the Nibelungenlied, or in the humbler 
legends of St. George and William Tell and the 
ubiquitous Boots. 

Such is the theory which was suggested half 
a century ago by the researches of Jacob Grimm., 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

and which, so far as concerns the mythology of 
the Aryan race, is now victorious along the 
whole line. It remains for us to test the uni- 
versality of the general principles upon which it 
is founded, by a brief analysis of sundry legends 
and superstitions of the barbaric world. Since 
the fetichistic habit of explaining the outward 
phenomena of nature after the analogy of the 
inward phenomena of conscious intelligence is 
not a habit peculiar to our Aryan ancestors, but 
is, as psychology sho^s, the inevitable result of 
the conditions under which uncivilized think- 
ing proceeds, we may expect to find the bar- 
baric mind personifying the powers of nature 
and making myths about their operations the 
whole world over. And we need not be sur- 
prised if we find in the resulting mythologic 
structures a strong resemblance to the familiar 
creations of the Aryan intelligence. In point 
of fact, we shall often be called upon to note 
such resemblance ; and it accordingly behooves 
us at the outset to inquire how far a similarity 
between mythical tales shall be taken as evi- 
dence of a common traditional origin, and how 
far it may be interpreted as due merely to the 
similar workings of the untrained intelligence 
in all ages and countries. 

Analogies drawn from the comparison of lan- 
guages will here be of service to us, if used dis- 
creetly ; otherwise they are likely to bewilder 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

far more than to enlighten us. A theorem which 
Max Muller has laid down for our guidance in 
this kind of investigation furnishes us with an 
excellent example of the tricks which a super- 
ficial analogy may play even with the trained 
scholar, when temporarily off his guard. Actu- 
ated by a praiseworthy desire to raise the study 
of myths to something like the high level of 
scientific accuracy already attained by the study 
of words, Max Muller endeavours to introduce 
one of the most useful canons of philology into 
a department of inquiry where its introduction 
could only work the most hopeless confusion. 
One of the earliest lessons to be learned by the 
scientific student of linguistics is the uselessness 
of comparing together directly the words con- 
tained in derivative languages. For example, 
you might set the English twelve side by side 
with the Latin duodecim, and then stare at the 
two words to all eternity without any hope of 
reaching a conclusion, good or bad, about either 
of them : least of all would you suspect that 
they are descended from the same radical. 
But if you take each word by itself and trace it 
back to its primitive shape, explaining every 
change of every letter as you go, you will at 
last reach the old Aryan dvadakan, which is the 
parent of both these strangely metamorphosed 
words. 1 Nor will it do, on the other hand, to 
1 For the analysis of 'twelve, see my essay on Sf The Gen- 
196 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

trust to verbal similarity without a historical in- 
quiry into the origin of such similarity. Even 
in the same language two words of quite differ- 
ent origin may get their corners rubbed off till 
they look as like one another as two pebbles. 
The French words souris, a "mouse/* and 
souris, a " smile," are spelled exactly alike ; but 
the one coines from Latin sorex and the other 
from Latin subridere* 

Now Max Miiller tells us that this principle, 
which is indispensable in the study of words, is 
equally indispensable in the study of myths. 1 
That is, you must not rashly pronounce the 
Norse story of the Heartless Giant identical 
with the Hindu story of Punchkin, although 
the two correspond in every essential incident. 
In both legends a magician turns several mem- 
bers of the same family into stone ; the young- 
est member of the family comes to the rescue, 
and on the way saves the lives of sundry grate- 
ful beasts ; arrived at the magician's castle, he 
finds a captive princess ready to accept his love 
and to play the part of Delilah to the en- 
chanter. In both stories the enchanter's life 
depends on the integrity of something which is 
elaborately hidden in a far-distant island, but 
which the fortunate youth, instructed by the 

esis of Language,*' North American Review, October, 1869, 
p. 320. 

1 Chips from a German Workshop* vol. . p. 246. 

197 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

artful princess and assisted by his menagerie of 
grateful beasts, succeeds in obtaining. In both 
stories the youth uses his advantage to free all 
his friends from their enchantment, and then 
proceeds to destroy the villain who wrought all 
this wickedness. Yet, in spite of this agreement, 
Max MCiller, if I understand him aright, would 
not have us infer the identity of the two stories 
until we have taken each one separately and 
ascertained its primitive mythical significance. 
Otherwise, for aught we can tell, the resem- 
blance may be purely accidental, like that of the 
French words for " mouse " and " smile." 

A little reflection, however, will Relieve us 
from this perplexity, and assure us that the 
alleged analogy between the comparison of words 
and the comparison of stories is utterly superfi- 
cial. The transformations of words which are 
often astounding enough depend upon a few 
well-established physiological principles of ut- 
terance ; and since philology has learned to rely 
upon these principles, it has become nearly as 
sure in its methods and results as one of the so- 
called a exact sciences/* Folly enough is doubt- 
less committed within its precincts by writers 
who venture there without the laborious prepa- 
ration which this science, more than almost any 
other, demands. But the proceedings of the 
trained philologist are no more arbitrary than 
those of the trained astronomer. And though 
198 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

the former may seem to be straining at a gnat 
and swallowing a camel when he coolly tells you 
that violin and fiddle are the same word, while 
English care and Latin cur a have nothing to do 
with each other, he is nevertheless no more in- 
dulging in guess-work than the astronomer who 
confesses his ignorance as to the habitability of 
Venus while asserting his knowledge of the ex- 
istence of hydrogen in the atmosphere of Sirius. 
"o cite one example out of a hundred, every 
philologist knows that s may become r, and that 
the broad ^-sound may dwindle into the closer 
0-sound ; but when you adduce some plausible 
etymology based on the assumption that r has 
changed into s y or o into a y apart from the de- 
monstrable influence of some adjacent letter, 
the philologist will shake his head. 

Now in the study of stories there are no such 
simple rules all cut and dried for us to go by. 
There is no uniform psychological principle 
which determines that the three-headed snake 
in one story shall become a three-headed man 
in the next. There is no Grimm's law in my- 
thology which decides that a Hindu magician 
shall always correspond to a Norwegian Troll 
or a Keltic Druid. The laws of association of 
ideas are not so simple in application as the laws 
of utterance. In short, the study of myths, 
though it can be made sufficiently scientific in 
its method^ and results, does not constitute a 
199 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

science by Itself, like philology. It stands on 
a footing similar to that occupied by physical 
geography, or what the Germans call " earth- 
knowledge." No one denies that all the changes 
going on over the earth's surface conform to 
physical laws ; but then no one pretends that 
there is any single proximate principle which 
governs all the phenomena of rainfall, of soil- 
crumbling, of magnetic variation, and of the 
distribution of plants and animals. All these 
things are explained by principles obtained from 
the various sciences of physics, chemistry, geo- 
logy, and physiology. And in just the same way 
the development and distribution of stories is 
explained by the help of divers resources con- 
tributed by philology, psychology, and history. 
There is therefore no real analogy between the 
cases cited by Max M uller. Two unrelated 
words may be ground into exactly the same 
shape, just as a pebble from the North Sea 
may be undistinguishable from another pebble 
on the beach of the Adriatic ; but two stories 
like those of Punchkin and the Heartless Giant 
are no more likely to arise independently of 
each other than two coral reefs on opposite 
sides of the globe are likely to develop into 
exactly similar islands, 

Shall we then say boldly that close similar- 
ity between legends is proof of kinship, and go 
our way without further misgivings ? Unfortu- 
200 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

nately we cannot dispose of the matter in quite 
so summary a fashion ; for it remains to decide 
what kind and degree of similarity shall be con- 
sidered satisfactory evidence of kinship. And 
it is just here that doctors may disagree. Here 
is the point at which our cc science " betrays its 
weakness as compared with the sister study of 
philology. Before we can decide with confi- 
dence in any case, a great mass of evidence 
must be brought into court. So long as we 
remained on Aryan ground, all went smoothly 
enough, because all the external evidence was 
in our favour. We knew at the outset that the 
Aryans inherit a common language and a com- 
mon civilization, and therefore we found no 
difficulty in accepting the conclusion that they 
have inherited, among other things, a common 
stock of legends. In the barbaric world it is 
quite otherwise. Philology does not pronounce 
in favour of a common origin for all barbaric 
culture, such as it is. The notion of a single 
primitive language, standing in the same rela- 
tion to all existing dialects as the relation of 
old Aryan to Latin and English, or that of old 
Semitic to Hebrew and Arabic, was a notion 
suited only to the infancy of linguistic science. 
As the case now stands, it is certain that all the 
languages actually existing cannot be referred 
to a common ancestor, and it is altogether prob- 
able that there never was any such common 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ancestor. I am not now referring to the ques- 
tion of the unity of the human race. That 
question lies entirely outside the sphere of phi- 
lology. The science of language has nothing 
to do with skulls or complexions > and no com- 
parison of words can tell us whether the black 
men are brethren of the white men, or whether 
yellow and red men have a common pedigree : 
these questions belong to comparative physio- 
logy. But the science of language can and does 
tell us that a certain amount of civilization is 
requisite for the production of a language suf- 
ficiently durable and widespread to give birth 
to numerous mutually resembling offspring. 
Barbaric languages are neither widespread nor 
durable. Among savages each little group of 
families has its own dialect, and coins its own ex- 
pressions at pleasure ; and in the course of two 
or three generations a dialect gets so strangely 
altered as virtually to lose its identity. Even 
numerals and personal pronouns, which the 
Aryan has preserved for fifty centuries, get lost 
every few years in Polynesia. Since the time 
of Captain Cook the Tahitian language has 
thrown away five out of its ten simple numer- 
als, and replaced them by brand-new ones ; and 
on the Amazon you may acquire a fluent com- 
mand of some Indian dialect, and then, coming 
back after twenty years, find yourself worse off 
than Rip Van Winkle, and your learning all 
202 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

antiquated and useless. How absurd, therefore, 
to suppose that primeval savages originated a 
language which has held its own like the old 
Aryan, and become the prolific mother of the 
three or four thousand dialects now in exist- 
ence ! Before a durable language can arise, 
there must be an aggregation of numerous 
tribes into a people, so that there may be need 
of communication on a large scale, and so that 
tradition may be strengthened. Wherever man- 
kind have associated in nations, permanent lan- 
guages have arisen, and their derivative dialects 
bear the conspicuous marks of kinship ; but 
where mankind have remained in their primi- 
tive savage isolation, their languages have re- 
mained sporadic and transitory, incapable of 
organic development, and showing no traces of 
a kinship which never existed. 

The bearing of these considerations upon the 
origin and diffusion of barbaric myths is obvi- 
ous. The development of a common stock of 
legends is, of course, impossible, save where 
there is a common language ; and thus philo- 
logy pronounces against the kinship of barbaric 
myths with each other and with similar myths 
of the Aryan and Semitic worlds. Similar stories 
told in Greece and Norway are likely to have a 
common pedigree, because the persons who have 
preserved them in recollection speak a common 
language and have inherited the same civiliza- 
203 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

tion. But similar stories told in Labrador and 
South Africa are not likely to be genealogically 
related, because it is altogether probable that the 
Esquimaux and the Zulu had acquired their 
present race characteristics before either of them 
possessed a language or a culture sufficient for 
the production of myths. According to the na- 
ture and extent of the similarity, it must be 
decided whether such stories have been carried 
about from one part of the world to another, 
or have been independently originated in many 
different places. 

Here the methods of philology suggest a rale 
which will often be found useful. In compar- 
ing the vocabularies of different languages, those 
words which directly imitate natural sounds 
such as whiz, crash, crackle are not admitted 
as evidence of kinship between the languages in 
which they occur. Resemblances between such 
words are obviously no proof of a common 
ancestry; and they are often met with in lan- 
guages which have demonstrably had no connec- 
tion with each other. So in mythology, where 
we find two stories of which the primitive char- 
acter is perfectly transparent, we need have no 
difficulty in supposing them to have originated 
independently. The myth of Jack and his 
Bean-Stalk is found all over the world ; but the 
idea of a country above the sky, to which per- 

204 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

sons might gain access by climbing, is one which 
could hardly fail to occur to, every barbarian* 
Among the American tribes, as well as among 
the Aryans, the rainbow and the Milky Way 
have contributed the idea of a Bridge of the 
Dead, over which souls must pass on the way 
to the other world. In South Africa, as well 
as in Germany, the habits of the fox and of 
his brother the jackal have given rise to fables 
in which brute force is overcome by cunning* 
In many parts of the world we find curiously 
similar stories devised to account for the 
stumpy tails of the bear and hyaena, the hair- 
less tail of the rat, and the blindness of the 
mole* And in all countries may be found the 
beliefs that men may be changed into beasts, or 
plants, or stones ; that the sun is in some way 
tethered or constrained to follow a certain 
course ; that the stonn-cloud is a ravenous 
dragon ; and that there are talismans which will 
reveal hidden treasures. All these conceptions 
are so obvious to the uncivilized intelligence 
that stories founded upon them need not be 
supposed to have a common origin, unless there 
turns out to be a striking similarity among their 
minor details. On the other hand, the numer- 
ous myths of an all-destroying deluge have 
doubtless arisen partly from reminiscences of 
actually occurring local inundations, and partly 

205 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

from the fact that the Scriptural account of a 
deluge has been carried all over the world by 
Catholic and Protestant missionaries. 1 

By way of illustrating these principles, let us 
now cite a few of the American myths so care- 
fully collected by Dr. Brinton in his admirable 
treatise. We shall not find in the mythology 
of the New World the wealth of wit and im- 
agination which has so long delighted us in the 
stories of Herakles, Perseus, Hermes, Sigurd, 
and Indra. The mythic lore of the American 
Indians is comparatively scanty and prosaic, as 
befits the product of a lower grade of culture 
and a more meagre intellect. Not only are 
the personages less characteristically portrayed, 
but there is a continual tendency to extrava- 
gance, the sure index of an inferior imagination. 
Nevertheless, after making due allowances for 
differences in the artistic method of treatment, 
there is between the mythologies of the Old and 
the New Worlds a fundamental resemblance* 
We come upon solar myths and myths of the 
storm curiously blended with culture myths, as 
in the cases of Hermes, Prometheus, and Kad- 
mos. The American parallels to these are to 
be found in the stories of Mlchabo, Viracocha, 
loskeha, and Quetzalcoatl " As elsewhere the 
world over, so in America, many tribes had 

1 For various legends of a deluge, see Baring-Gould, Le 
gends of the Patriarchs and Prophets, pp. 85106. 
2O6 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

to tell of ... an august character, who taught 
them what they knew, the tillage of the soil, 
the properties of plants, the art of picture-writ- 
ing, the secrets of magic ; who founded their 
institutions and established their religions ; who 
governed them long with glory abroad and peace 
at home ; and finally did not die, but, like Fred- 
eric Barbarossa, Charlemagne, King Arthur, and 
all great heroes, vanished mysteriously, and still 
lives somewhere, ready at the right moment to 
return to his beloved people and lead them to 
victory and happiness/' l Every one is familiar 
with the numerous legends of white-skinned, 
full-bearded heroes, like the mild QuetzalcoatI, 
whojq limes long previous to Columbus came 
from the far East to impart the rudiments of 
civilization and religion to the red men. By 
those who first heard these stories they were 
supposed, with naive Euhemerism, to refer to 
pre-Columbian visits of Europeans to this con- 
tinent, like that of the Northmen in the tenth 
century. But a scientific study of the subject 
has dissipated such notions. These legends are 
far too numerous, they are too similar to each 
other, they are too manifestly symbolical, to 
admit of any such interpretation. By comparing 
them carefully with each other, and with corre- 
lative myths of the Old World, their true char- 
acter soon becomes apparent. 

1 Brinton, Myths of the New World, p. 160. 
207 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

One of the most widely famous of these cul- 
ture heroes was Manabozho or Michabo, the 
Great Hare. With entire unanimity, says Dr. 
Brinton, the various branches of the Algonquin 
race, cc the Powhatans of Virginia, the Lenni 
Lenape of the Delaware, the warlike hordes of 
New England, the Ottawas of the far North, 
and the Western tribes, perhaps without excep- 
tion, spoke of c this chimerical beast/ as one of 
the old missionaries calls it, as their common 
ancestor. The totem, or clan, which bore his 
name was looked up to with peculiar respect." 
Not only was Michabo the ruler and guardian 
of these numerous tribes, he was the founder 
of their religious rites, the inventor of picture- 
writing, the ruler of the weather, the creator and 
preserver of earth and heaven. " From a grain 
of sand brought from the bottom of the prime- 
val ocean he fashioned the habitable land, and 
set it floating on the waters till it grew to such a 
size that a strong young wolf, running constantly, 
died of old age ere he reached its limits." He 
was also, like Nimrod, a mighty hunter. " One 
of his footsteps measured eight leagues, the 
Great Lakes were the beaver dams he built, 
and when the cataracts impeded his progress he 
tore them away with his hands." " Sometimes 
he was said to dwell in the skies with his bro- 
ther, the Snow, or, like many great spirits, to 

aoB 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

have built his wigwam in the far North on some 
floe of ice in the Arctic Ocean. . . . But in 
the oldest accounts of the missionaries he was 
alleged to reside toward the East ; and in the 
holy formulae of the meda craft, when the winds 
are invoked to the medicine lodge, the East is 
summoned in his name, the door opens in that 
direction, and there, at the edge of the earth 
where the sun rises, on the shore of the infinite 
ocean that surrounds the land, he has his house, 
and sends the luminaries forth on their daily 
journeys." 1 From such accounts as this we see 
that Michabo was no more a wise instructor 
and legislator than Minos or Kadmos. Like 
these heroes, he is a personification of the solar 
life-giving power, which daily comes forth from 
its home in the east, making the earth to re- 
joice. The etymology of his name confirms the 
otherwise clear indications of the legend itself. 
1* is compounded of michi > cc great," and wabos, 
which means alike " hare " and "white." a Dia- 
lectic forms in Algonquin for white are 
wape, wampiy etc* ; for morning, wapan, 
fanch) opah ; for east, wapa> wanbun, etc, ; for 
day, wompan, oppan ; for light, oppung" So that 
Michabo is the Great White One, the God of 
the Dawn and the East. And the etymological 
confusion, by virtue of which he acquired his 
* Bpntpa, #/. fit. p, 163. 

09 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

sobriquet of the Great Hare, affords a curious 
parallel to what has often happened in Aryan 
and Semitic mythology, as we saw when dis- 
cussing the subject of werewolves. 

Keeping In mind this solar character of Mi- 
chabo, let us note how full of meaning are the 
myths concerning him. In the first cycle of 
these legends, a he is grandson of the Moon, 
his father is the West Wind, and his mother, a 
maiden, dies in giving him birth at the moment 
of conception. For the Moon is the goddess 
of night ; the Dawn is her daughter, who brings 
forth the Morning, and perishes herself in the 
act ; and the West, the spirit of darkness, as 
the East is of light, precedes, and as it were 
begets the latter, as the evening does the morn- 
ing. Straightway, however, continues the legend, 
the son sought the unnatural father to revenge 
the death of his mother, and then commenced 
a long and desperate struggle. It began on 
the mountains. The West was forced to give 
ground. Manabozho drove him across rivers 
and over mountains and lakes, and at last he 
came to the brink of this world. 'Hold/ cried 
he, c my son, you know my power, and that it 
is impossible to kill me/ What is this but the 
diurnal combat of light and darkness, carried 
on from what time c the jocund morn stands 
tiptoe on the misty mountain-tops/ across the 
wide world to the sunset, the struggle that 
210 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

knows no end, for both the opponents are im- 
mortal?" 1 

Even the Veda nowhere affords a more trans- 
parent narrative than this. The Iroquois tradi- 
tion is very similar. In it appear twin brothers, 2 
born of a virgin mother, daughter of the Moon, 
who died In giving them life. Their names, 
loskeha and Tawiskara, signify in the Oneida 
dialect the White One and the Dark One. 
Under the influence of Christian ideas the con- 
test between the brothers has been made to as- 
sume a moral character, like the strife between 
Ormuzd and Ahriman. But no such intention 
appears in the original myth, and Dr. Brinton 
has shown that none of the American tribes had 
any conception of a Devil. When the quarrel 
came to blows, the dark brother was signally 
discomfited ; and the victorious loskeha, return- 
ing to his grandmother, " established his lodge 
in the far East, on the borders of the Great 
Ocean, whence the sun comes. In time he be- 
came the father of mankind, and special guar- 
dian of the Iroquois/* He caused the earth to 
bring forth, he stocked the woods with game* 
and taught his children the use of fire. " He it 
was who watched and watered their crops ; c and, 

1 Brinton, op, tit. p. 167. 

a Corresponding, in various degrees, to the Asvins, the 
Dioskouroi, and the brothers True and Untrue of Norse 
mythology. 

211 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

indeed, without his aid,* says the old mission- 
ary^ quite out of patience with their puerilities, 
* they think they could not boil a pot/ " There 
was more in it than poor Brebeuf thought, as 
we are forcibly reminded by recent discoveries 
in physical science. Even civilized men would 
find it difficult to boil a pot without the aid 
of solar energy. Call him what we will, 
loskeha, Michabo, or Phoibos, the benefi- 
cent Sun is the master and sustainer of us all ; 
and if we were to relapse into heathenism, like 
Erckmann-Chatrian's innkeeper, we could not 
do better than to select him as our chief object 
of worship. 

The same principles by which these simple 
cases are explained furnish also the key to the 
more complicated mythology of Mexico and 
Peru. Like the deities just discussed, Vira- 
cocha, the supreme god of the Quichuas, rises 
from the bosom of Lake Titicaca and journeys 
westward, slaying with his lightnings the crea- 
tures who oppose him, until he finally disap- 
pears in the Western Ocean. Like Aphrodite, 
he bears in his name the evidence of his origin, 
Viracocha signifying cc foam of the sea ; " and 
hence the " White One " (Faube\ the god of 
light rising white on the horizon, like the foam 
on the surface of the waves. The Aymaras 
spoke of their original ancestors as white ; and 
to this day, as Dr. Brinton informs us, the Peru-* 

212 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

vians call a white man Viraccha. The myth 
of QuetzalcoatI is of precisely the same charac- 
ter. All these solar heroes present in most of 
their qualities and achievements a striking like- 
ness to those of the Old World. They com- 
bine the attributes of Apollo, Herakles, and 
Hermes. Like Herakles, they journey from 
east to west, smiting the powers of darkness, 
storm, and winter with the thunderbolts of 
Zeus or the unerring arrows of Phoibos, and 
sinking in a blaze of glory on the western verge 
of the world, where the waves meet the fir- 
mament. Or like Hermes, in a second cycle 
of legends, they rise with the soft breezes of a 
summer morning, driving before them the bright 
celestial cattle whose udders are heavy with re- 
freshing rain, fanning the flames which devour 
the forests, blustering at the doors of wigwams, 
and escaping with weird laughter through vents 
and crevices. The white skins and flowing beards 
of these American heroes may be aptly com- 
pared to the fair faces and long golden locks of 
their Hellenic compeers. Yellow hair was in all 
probability as rare in Greece as a foil beard ia 
Peru or Mexico ; but in each case the descrip- 
tion suits the solar character of the hero. One 
important class of incidents, however, is appar- 
ently quite absent from the American legends. 
We frequently see the Dawn described as a vir- 
gin matker who dies in giving birth to tke Day ; 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

but nowhere do we remember seeing her pic- 
tured as a lovely or valiant or crafty maiden, 
ardently wooed, but speedily forsaken by her 
solar lover. Perhaps in no respect is the supe- 
rior richness and beauty of the Aryan myths 
more manifest than in this. Brynhild, Urvasi, 
Medeia, Ariadne, Oinone, and countless other 
kindred heroines, with their brilliant legends, 
could not be spared from the mythology of our 
ancestors without leaving it meagre indeed. 
These were the materials which Kalidasa, the 
Attic dramatists, and the bards of the Nibe- 
lungen found ready, awaiting their artistic treat- 
ment. But the mythology of the New World, 
with all its pretty and agreeable nai-vetty affords 
hardly enough, either of variety in situation or 
of complexity in motive, for a grand epic or a 
genuine tragedy. 

But little reflection is needed to assure us 
that the imagination of the barbarian, who either 
carries away his wife by brute force or buys 
her from her relatives as he would buy a cow, 
could never have originated legends in which 
maidens are lovingly solicited, or in which their 
favour is won by the performance of deeds of 
valour. These stories owe their existence to the 
romantic turn of mind which has always char- 
acterized the Aryan, whose civilization, even in 
the times before the dispersion of his race, was 
sufficiently advanced to allow of his entertain- 
214 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

ing such comparatively exalted conceptions of 
the relations between men and women* The 
absence of these myths from barbaric folk-lore 
is, therefore, just what might be expected ; but 
it is a fact which militates against any possible 
hypothesis of the common origin of Aryan and 
barbaric mythology. If there were any genetic 
relationship between Sigurd and loskeha, be- 
tween Herakles and Michabo, it would be hard 
to tell why Brynhild and lole should have dis- 
appeared entirely from one whole group of le- 
gends, while retained, in some form or other, 
throughout the whole of the other group. On 
the other hand, the resemblances above noticed 
between Aryan and American mythology fall 
very far short of the resemblances between the 
stories told in different parts of the Aryan do- 
main. No barbaric legend, of genuine barbaric 
growth, has yet been cited which resembles any 
Aryan legend as the story of Punchkin resembles 
the story of the Heartless Giant. The myths of 
Michabo and Viracocha are direct copies, so to 
speak, of natural phenomena, just as imitative 
words are direct copies of natural sounds. 
Neither the Redskin nor the Indo-European 
had any choice as to the main features of the 
career of his solar divinity. He must be born 
of the Night, or of the Dawn, must travel 
westward, must slay harassing demons. Elim- 
inating these points of likeness, the resemblance 
215 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

between the Aryan and barbaric legends is at 
once at an end. Such an Identity In point of 
details as that between the wooden horse which 
enters I lion, and the horse which bears Sigurd 
into the place where Brynhild is imprisoned, 
and the Druidic steed which leaps with Scul- 
loge over the walls of Fiach's enchanted castle, 
is, I believe, nowhere to be found after we leave 
Indo-European territory. 

Our conclusion, therefore, must be, that while 
the legends of the Aryan and the non- Aryan 
worlds contain common mythical elements, the 
legends themselves are not of common origin. 
The fact that certain mythical ideas are pos- 
sessed alike by different races shows that in 
each case a similar human intelligence has been 
at work explaining similar phenomena ; but in 
order to prove a family relationship between the 
culture of these different races we need some- 
thing more than this* We need to prove not 
only a community of mythical ideas, but also a 
community between the stories based upon these 
ideas. We must show not only that Michabo 
is like Herakles in those striking features which 
the contemplation of solar phenomena would 
necessarily suggest to the imagination of the 
primitive myth-maker, but also that the two 
characters are similarly conceived, and that the 
two careers agree in seemingly arbitrary points 
of detail, as is the case in the stories of Punchkin 
216 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

and the Heartless Giant. The mere fact that 
solar heroes, all over the world, travel in a cer- 
tain path and slay imps of darkness is of great 
value as throwing light upon primeval habits 
of thought, but it is of no value as evidence for 
or against an alleged community of civilization 
between different races* The same is true of 
the sacredness universally attached to certain 
numbers. Dr. Brinton's opinion that the sanc- 
tity of the number four in nearly all systems of 
mythology is due to a primitive worship of the 
cardinal points, becomes very probable when 
we recollect that the similar preeminence of 
seven is almost demonstrably connected with 
the adoration of the sun, moon, and five visible 
planets, which has left its record in the structure 
and nomenclature of the Aryan and Semitic 
week. 1 

In view of these considerations, the compari- 
son of barbaric myths with each other and with 
the legends of the Aryan world becomes doubly 
interesting, as illustrating the similarity in the 
workings of the untrained intelligence the world 
over. In our first paper we saw how the moon- 

1 See Humboldt's Kosmos, torn. Hi. pp. 469476. A 
fetichistic regard for the cardinal points has not always been 
absent from the minds of persons instructed in a higher theo- 
logy ; as witness a well-known passage in Irenaeus, and also 
the custom, well-nigh universal in Europe, of building Chris- 
tian churches in a line east and west. 
217 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

spots have been variously explained by Indo- 
Europeans, as a man with a thorn-bush or as 
two children bearing a bucket of water on a 
pole. In Ceylon it is said that as Sakyamuni 
was one day wandering half starved in the for- 
est, a pious hare met him, and offered itself to 
him to be slain and cooked for dinner; where- 
upon the holy Buddha set it on high in the 
moon, that future generations of men might see 
it and marvel at its piety. In the Samoan Is- 
lands these dark patches are supposed to be por- 
tions of a woman's figure. A certain woman 
was once hammering something with a mallet, 
when the moon arose, looking so much like a 
breadfruit that the woman asked it to come 
down and let her child eat off a piece of it ; 
but the moon, enraged at the insult, gobbled 
up woman, mallet, and child, and there, in the 
moon's belly, you may still behold them. Ac- 
cording to the Hottentots, the Moon once sent 
the Hare to inform men that as she died away 
and rose again, so should men die and again 
come to life. But the stupid Hare forgot the 
purport of the message, and, coming down to 
the earth, proclaimed it far and wide that though 
the Moon was invariably resuscitated whenever 
she died, mankind, on the other hand, should 
die and go to the Devil. When the silly brute 
returned to the lunar country and told what he 
had done, the Moon was so angry that she took 
218 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

up an axe and aimed a blow at his head to split 
it. But the axe missed and only cut his lip 
open ; and that was the origin of the ** hare- 
lip/* Maddened by the pain and the insult, 
the Hare flew at the Moon and almost scratched 
her eyes out ; and to this day she bears on her 
face the marks of the Hare's claws. 1 

Again, every reader of the classics knows how 
Selene cast Endymion Into a profound slumber 
because he refused her love, and how at sun- 
down she used to come and stand above him on 
the Latmian hill, and watch him as he lay asleep 
on the marble steps of a temple half hidden 
among drooping elm-trees, over which clam- 
bered vines heavy with dark blue grapes. This 
represents the rising moon looking down on 
the setting sun ; in Labrador a similar phenom- 
enon has suggested a somewhat different story. 
Among the Esquimaux the Sun is a maiden and 
the Moon is her brother, who is overcome by 
a wicked passion for her. Once, as this girl was 
at a dancing-party in a friend's hut, some one 
came up and took hold of her by the shoulders 
and shook her, which is (according to the le- 
gend) the Esquimaux manner of declaring one's 
love. She could not tell who it was in the dark, 
and so she dipped her hand in some soot and 

1 Bleek, Hottentot Fables and Tales, p. 72. Compare 
the Fiji story of Ra Vula, the Moon, and Ra Kalavo, the 
Rat, in Tylor, Primitive Culture* L 321. 
219 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

smeared one of his cheeks with it. When a 
light was struck in the hut, she saw, to her dis- 
may, that it was her brother, and, without wait- 
ing to learn any more, she took to her heels. 
He started in hot pursuit, and so they ran till 
they got to the end of the world, the jump- 
ing-off place, when they both jumped into 
the sky* There the Moon still chases his sis- 
ter, the Sun ; and every now and then he turns 
his sooty cheek toward the earth, when he be- 
comes so dark that you cannot see him. 1 

Another story, which I cite from Mr. Tylor, 
shows that Malays, as well as Indo-Europeans, 
have conceived of the clouds as swan-maidens. 
In the island of Celebes It is said that Cf seven 
heavenly nymphs came down from the sky to 
bathe, and they were seen by Kasimbaha, who 
thought first that they were white doves, but in 
the bath he saw that they were women. Then 
he stole one of the thin robes that gave the 
nymphs their power of flying, and so he caught 
Utahagi, the one whose robe he had stolen, and 
took her for his wife, and she bore him a son. 
Now she was called Utahagi from a single white 
hair she had, which was endowed with magic 
power, and this hair her husband pulled out. 
As soon as he had done it, there arose a great 
storm, and Utahagi went up to heaven. The 
child cried for its mother, and Kasimbaha was 
1 iTylor, Early History of Mankind, p. 327. 
22O 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

in great grief, and cast about how he should fol- 
low Utahagi up into the sky." Here we pass to 
the myth of Jack and the Bean-Stalk. " A rat 
gnawed the thorns off the rattans, and Kasim- 
baha clambered up by them with his son upon 
his back, till he came to heaven. There a little 
bird showed him the house of Utahagi, and after 
various adventures he took up his abode among 
the gods." 1 

In Siberia we find a legend of swan-maidens, 
which also reminds us of the story of the Heart- 
less Giant. A certain Samojed once went out to 
catch foxes, and found seven maidens swimming 
in a lake surrounded by gloomy pine-trees, while 
their feather dresses lay on the shore. He crept 
up and stole one of these dresses, and by and by 
the swan-maiden came to him shivering with 
cold and promising to become his wife if he 
would only give her back her garment of feath- 
ers. The ungallant fellow, however, did not 
care for a wife, but a little revenge was not tin- 
suited to his way of thinking. There were seven 
robbers who used to prowl about the neighbour- 
hood, and who, when they got home, finding 
their hearts in the way, used to hang them up 
on some pegs in the tent. One of these rob- 
bers had killed the Samojed's mother ; and so 
he promised to return the swan-maiden's dress 
after she should have procured for him these 
1 Tylor, op. tit. p. 346. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

seven hearts. So she stole the hearts, and the 
Samojed smashed six of them, and then woke 
up the seventh robber, and told him to restore 
his mother to life, on pain of instant death. 
Then the robber produced a purse containing 
the old woman's soul, and going to the grave- 
yard shook it over her bones, and she revived at 
once. Then the Samojed smashed the seventh 
heart, and the robber died; and so the swan- 
maiden got back her plumage and flew away 
rejoicing. 1 

Swan-maidens are also, according to Mr. 
Baring-Gould, found among the Minussinian 
Tartars. But there they appear as foul demons, 
like the Greek Harpies, who delight in drink- 
ing the blood of men slain in battle. There are 
forty of them, who darken the whole firmament 
in their flight ; but sometimes they all coalesce 
into one great black storm-fiend, who rages for 
blood, like a werewolf. 

In South Africa we find the werewolf him- 
self. 2 A certain Hottentot was once travelling 
with a Bushwoman and her child, when they 

1 Baring-Gould, Curious Myths, IL 299-302. 

2 Speaking of beliefs in the Malay Archipelago, Mr. Wal- 
lace says : ec It is universally believed in Lombock that some 
men have the power to turn themselves into crocodiles, which 
they do for the sake of devouring their enemies, and many 
strange tales are told of such transformations*" Wallacej 
Malay Archipelago, vol. i. p. 251. 

222 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

perceived at a distance a troop of wild horses. 
The man, being hungry, asked the woman to 
turn herself into a lioness and catch one of these 
horses, that they might eat of it ; whereupon 
the woman set down her child, and taking off a 
sort of petticoat made of human skin became 
instantly transformed into a lioness, which rushed 
across the plain, struck down a wild horse and 
lapped its blood. The man climbed a tree in 
terror, and conjured his companion to resume 
her natural shape. Then the lioness came back, 
and putting on the skirt made of human skin 
reappeared as a woman, and took up her child, 
and the two friends resumed their journey after 
making a meal of the horse's flesh. 1 

The werewolf also appears in North Amer- 
ica, duly furnished with his wolfskin sack ; but 
neither in America nor in Africa is he the gen- 
uine European werewolf, inspired by a diabolic 
frenzy, and ravening for human flesh. The bar- 
baric myths testify to the belief that men can 
be changed into beasts or have in some cases 
descended from beast ancestors, but the applica- 
tion of this belief to the explanation of abnormal 
cannibal cravings seems to have been confined 
to Europe. The werewolf of the Middle Ages 
was not merely a transformed man, he was 
an insane cannibal, whose monstrous appetite, 
due to the machinations of the Devil, showed 
1 Bleek, Hottentot Fables and Tales, p. 58. 
223 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Its power over his physical organism by chan- 
ging the shape of it. The barbaric werewolf Is 
the product of a lower and simpler kind of 
thinking. There is no diabolism about him; 
for barbaric races, while believing in the exist- 
ence of hurtful and malicious fiends, have not 
a sufficiently vivid sense of moral abnormity to 
form the conception of diabolism. And the can- 
nibal craving, which to the mediaeval European 
was a phenomenon so strange as to demand 
a mythological explanation, would not impress 
the barbarian as either very exceptional or very 
blameworthy. 

In the folk-lore of the Zulus, one of the most 
quick-witted and intelligent of African races, the 
cannibal possesses many features in common 
with the Scandinavian Troll, who also has a 
liking for human flesh. As we saw in the pre- 
ceding paper, the Troll has very likely derived 
some of his characteristics from reminiscences 
of the barbarous races who preceded the Aryans 
in Central and Northern Europe. In like man- 
ner the long-haired cannibal of Zulu nursery 
literature, who is always represented as belong- 
ing to a distinct race, has been supposed to 
be explained by the existence of inferior races 
conquered and displaced by the Zulus. Never- 
theless, as Dr. Callaway observes, neither the 
long-haired mountain cannibals of Western 
Africa, nor the Fulahs, nor the tribes of Eghe- 
224 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

dal described by Earth, a can be considered as 
answering to the description of long-haired as 
given in the Zulu legends of cannibals ; neither 
could they possibly have formed their histor- 
ical basis. . . . It is perfectly clear that the can- 
nibals of the Zulu legends are not common 
men ; they are magnified into giants and magi- 
cians ; they are remarkably swift and enduring ; 
fierce and terrible warriors." Very probably 
they may have a mythical origin in modes of 
thought akin to those which begot the Panis 
of the Veda and the Northern Trolls. The 
parallelism is perhaps the most remarkable one 
which can be found in comparing barbaric with 
Aryan folk-lore. Like the Panis and Trolls, 
the cannibals are represented as the foes of the 
solar hero Uthlakanyana, who is almost as great 
a traveller as Odysseus, and whose presence of 
mind amid trying circumstances is not to be 
surpassed by that of the incomparable Boots. 
Uthlakanyana is as precocious as Herakles or 
Hermes. He speaks before he is born, and no 
sooner has he entered the world than he be- 
gins to outwit other people and get possession 
of their property. He works bitter ruin for 
the cannibals, who, with all their strength and 
fleetness, are no better endowed with quick wit 
than the Trolls, whom Boots invariably victim- 
izes. On one of his journeys, Uthlakanyana 
fell in with a cannibal. Their greetings were 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS , 

cordial enough, and they ate a bit of leopard 
together, and began to build a house, and killed 
a couple of cows, but the cannibal's cow was lean, 
while Uthlakanyana's was fat. Then the crafty 
traveller, fearing that his companion might in- 
sist upon having the fat cow, turned and said, 
a< Let the house be thatched now; then we can 
eat our meat. You see the sky, that we shall 
get wet/ The cannibal said, c You are right, 
child of my sister ; you are a man indeed in 
saying, Let us thatch the house, for we shall get 
wet.' Uthlakanyana said, < Do you do it then ; 
I will go inside, and push the thatching needle 
for you, in the house/ The cannibal went up, 
His hair was very, very long. Uthlafcanyana 
went inside and pushed the needle for him. 
He thatched in the hair of the cannibal, tying it 
very tightly ; he knotted it into the thatch con- 
stantly, taking it by separate locks and fasten- 
ing it firmly, that it might be tightly fastened 
to the house/' Then the rogue went outside 
and began to eat of the cow which was roasted. 
cc The cannibal said, c What are you about, child 
of my sister ? Let us just finish the house ; after- 
wards we can do that ; we will do it together/ 
Uthlakanyana replied, ( Come down then. I 
cannot go into the house any more. The 
thatching is finished/ The cannibal assented. 
When he thought he was going to quit the 
house, he was unable to quit it. He cried out 
226 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

saying, Child of my sister, how have you man- 
aged your thatching ? ' Uthlakanyana said, * See 
to it yourself. I have thatched well, for I shall 
not have any dispute* Now I am about to eat 
in peace ; I no longer dispute with anybody, 
for I am now alone with my cow/ " So the can- 
nibal cried and raved and appealed in vain to 
Uthlakanyana's sense of justice, until by and 
by " the sky came with hailstones and lightning. 
Uthlakanyana took all the meat into the house ; 
he stayed in the house and lit a fire. It hailed 
and rained. The cannibal cried on the top of 
the house ; he was struck with the hailstones, 
and died there on the house. It cleared. Uthla- 
kanyana went out and said, c Uncle, just come 
down, and come to me. It has become clear. 
It no longer rains, and there is no more hail, 
neither is there any more lightning. Why are 
you silent? ' So Uthlakanyana ate his cow alone, 
until he had finished it. He then went on his 
way." l 

In another Zulu legend, a girl is stolen by 
cannibals, and shut up in the rock Itshe-likan- 
tunjambili, which, like the rock of the Forty 
Thieves, opens and shuts at the command of 
those who understand its secret. She gets pos- 
session of the secret and escapes, and when the 
monsters pursue her she throws on the ground 
a calabash foil of sesame, which they stop to eat. 
1 CaHaway, Zulu Nursery Tafes, pp. 27-30. 
227 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

At last, getting tired of running, she climbs a 
tree, and there she finds her brother, who, 
warned by a dream, has come out to look for 
her. They ascend the tree together until they 
come to a beautiful country well stocked with 
fat oxen. They kill an ox, and while its flesh 
is roasting they amuse themselves by making a 
stout thong of its hide. By and by one of the 
cannibals, smelling the cooking meat, comes to 
the foot of the tree, and looking up discovers 
the boy and girl in the sky country! They 
invite him up there to share In their feast, and 
throw him an end of the thong by which to 
climb up. When the cannibal is dangling mid- 
way between earth and heaven, they let go the 
rope, and down he falls with a terrible crash. 1 

In this story the enchanted rock opened by 
a talismanic formula brings us again into con* 
tact with Indo-European folk-lore. And that 
the conception has in both cases been suggested 
by the same natural phenomenon is rendered 
probable by another Zulu tale, in which the 
cannibal's cave is opened by a swallow which 
flies in the air. Here we have the elements of 
a genuine lightning-myth. We see that among 
these African barbarians, as well as among our 
own forefathers, the clouds have been conceived 

1 Call away, op. tit. pp. 142-152 ; cf. a similar story in 
which the lion is fooled by the jackal. Bleek, op. tit. p. 7. 
I omit the sequel of the tale. 

228 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

as birds carrying the lightning which can cleave 
the rocks. In America we find the same notion 
prevalent. The Dakotahs explain the thunder 
as " the sound of the cloud-bird flapping his 
wings," and the Caribs describe the lightning 
as a poisoned dart which the bird blows through 
a hollow reed, after the Carib style of shooting. 1 
On the other hand, the Kamtchatkans know 
nothing of a cloud-bird, but explain the light- 
ning as something analogous to the flames of a 
volcano. The Kamtchatkans say that when the 
mountain goblins have got their stoves well 
heated up, they throw overboard, with true bar- 
baric shiftlessness, all the brands not needed for 
immediate use, which makes a volcanic erup- 
tion. So when it Is summer on earth, it is win- 
ter in heaven ; and the gods, after heating up 
their stoves, throw away their spare kindling- 
wood, which makes the lightning? 

When treating of Indo-European solar 
myths, we saw the unvarying, unresting course 
of the sun variously explained as due to the 
subjection of Herakles to Eurystheus, to the 
anger of Poseidon at Odysseus, or to the curse 
laid upon the Wandering Jew. The barbaric 
mind has worked at the same problem ; but the 
explanations which it has given are more child- 
like and more grotesque. A Polynesian myth 

1 Brinton, op. cit. p. 104. 
* Tylor, op, tit. p. 320. 
229 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

tells how the Sun used to race through the sky 
so fast that men could not get enough daylight 
to hunt game for their subsistence. By and by 
an inventive genius, named Maui, conceived the 
idea of catching the Sun in a noose and mak- 
ing him go more deliberately. He plaited ropes 
and made a strong net, and, arming himself with 
the jawbone of his ancestress, Muri-ranga- 
whenua, called together all his brethren, and 
they journeyed to the place where the Sun 
rises, and there spread the net. When the Sun 
came up, he stuck his head and fore paws into 
the net, and while the brothers tightened the 
ropes so that they cut him and made him scream 
for mercy, Maui beat him' with the jawbone 
until he became so weak that ever since he has 
only been able to crawl through the sky. Ac- 
cording to another Polynesian myth, there was 
once a grumbling Radical, who never could be 
satisfied with the way in which things are man- 
aged on this earth. This bold Radical set out 
to build a stone house which should last for- 
ever ; but the days were so short and the stones 
so heavy that he despaired of ever accomplish- 
ing his project. One night, as he lay awake 
thinking the matter over, it occurred to him 
that if he could catch the Sun in a net, he could 
have as much daylight as was needful in order 
to finish his house. So he borrowed a noose 
from the god Itu, and, it being autumn, when 
230 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

the Sun gets sleepy and stupid, he easily caught 
the luminary. The Sun cried till his tears made 
a great freshet which nearly drowned the island ; 
but it was of no use ; there he is tethered to 
this day. 

Similar stories are met with In North Amer- 
ica. A Dog-Rib Indian once chased a squirrel 
up a tree until he reached the sky* There he 
set a snare for the squirrel and climbed down 
again. Next day the Sun was caught in the 
snare, and night came on at once. That is to 
say, the sun was eclipsed. cc Something wrong" 
up there/' thought the Indian, " I must have 
caught the Sun ; " and so he sent up ever so 
many animals to release the captive. They were 
all burned to ashes, but at last the mole, going 
up and burrowing out through the ground of 
the sky, (!) succeeded in gnawing asunder the 
cords of the snare. Just as it thrust its head 
out through the opening made in the sky- 
ground, it received a flash of light which put 
its eyes out, and that is why the mole is blind. 
The Sun got away, but has ever since travelled 
more deliberately. 1 

These sun-myths, many more of which are 
to be found collected in Mr. Tylor's excellent 
treatise on " The Early History of Mankind/* 
well illustrate both the similarity and the di- 
versity of the results obtained by the primitive 
* Tylor, op. at. pp. 338-343. 
231 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

mind. In different times and countries, when 
engaged upon similar problems. No one would 
think of referring these stories to a common 
traditional origin with the myths of Herakles 
and Odysseus; yet both classes of tales were 
devised to explain the same phenomenon* Both 
to the Aryan and to the Polynesian the stead- 
fast but deliberate journey of the sun through 
the firmament was a strange circumstance which 
called for explanation ; but while the meagre 
intelligence of the barbarian could only attain 
to the quaint conception of a man throwing a 
noose over the sun's head, the rich imagination 
of the Indo-European created the noble picture 
of Herakles doomed to serve the son of Sthene- 
los, in accordance with the resistless decree of 
fate. 

Another world-wide myth, which shows how 
similar are the mental habits of uncivilized men, 
is the myth of the tortoise. The Hindu notion 
of a great tortoise that lies beneath the earth 
and keeps it from falling is familiar to every 
reader. According to one account, this tortoise, 
swimming in the primeval ocean, bears the earth 
on his back ; but by and by, when the gods 
get ready to destroy mankind, the tortoise will 
grow weary and sink under his load, and then 
the earth will be overwhelmed by a deluge. 
Another legend tells us that when the gods and 
demons took Mount Mandara for a churning 
232 



MYTHS OF THE BARBARIC WORLD 

stick and churned the ocean to make ambrosia, 
the god Vishnu took on the form of a tortoise 
and lay at the bottom of the sea, as a pivot for 
the whirling mountain to rest upon. But these 
versions of the myth are not primitive. In the 
original conception the world is itself a gigantic 
tortoise swimming in a boundless ocean ; the 
flat surface of the earth is the lower plate which, 
covers the reptile's belly; the rounded shell 
which covers his back is the sky ; and the hu- 
man race lives and moves and has its being 
inside of the tortoise. Now, as Mr. Tylor has 
pointed out, many tribes of Redskins hold sub- 
stantially the same theory of the universe. They 
regard the tortoise as the symbol of the world, 
and address it as the mother of manlfind. Once, 
before the earth was made, the king of heaven 
quarrelled with his wife, and gave her such a 
terrible kick that she fell down into the sea. 
Fortunately a tortoise received her on his back, 
and proceeded to raise up the earth, upon which 
the heavenly woman became the mother of 
mankind., These first men had white faces, and 
they used to dig in the ground to catch badgers. 
One day a zealous burrower thrust his knife too 
far and stabbed the tortoise, which immediately 
sank into the sea and drowned all the human 
race save one man. 1 In Finnish mythology the 
world is not a tortoise, but it is an egg, of which 
1 Tylor, op. nY p. 336. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the white part is the ocean, the yolk is the 
earth, and the arched shell is the sky. In India 
this is the mundane egg of Brahma; and it 
reappears among the Yombas as a pair of cal- 
abashes pat together like oyster shells, one 
making a dome over the other. In Zululand 
the earth is a huge beast called Usilosimapundu, 
whose face is a rock, and whose mouth is very 
large and broad and red : " in some countries 
which were on his body it was winter, and in 
others it was early harvest." Many broad riv- 
ers flow over his back, and he is covered with 
forests and hills, as is indicated in his name, 
which means " the rugose or knotty-backed 
beast." In this group of conceptions may be 
seen the origin of Smdbad's great fish, which 
lay still so long that sand and clay gradually 
accumulated upon its back, and at .last it be- 
came covered with trees. And lastly, passing 
from barbaric folk-lore and from the Arabian 
Nights to the highest level of Indo-European 
intelligence, do we not find both Plato and 
Kepler amusing themselves with speculations 
in which the earth figures as a stupendous 
animal ? 

November, 1870. 



234 



VI 

JUVENTUS MUNDI 1 

TWELVE years ago, when, in conclud- 
ing his cc Studies on Homer and the 
Homeric Age," Mr. Gladstone ap- 
plied to himself the warning addressed by Aga- 
memnon to the priest of Apollo, cc Let not 
Nemesis catch me by the swift ships, 

77 VVV $Tf]@VVOVT\ ^ VOTCpOV ttV&S tOVTO/* 

he would seem to have intended it as a last 
farewell to classical studies. Yet, whatever his 
intentions may have been, they have yielded to 
the sweet desire of revisiting familiar ground, 
a desire as strong in the breast of the classical 
scholar as was the yearning which led Odysseus 
to reject the proffered gift of immortality, so 
that he might but once more behold the 
wreathed smoke curling about the roofs of his 
native Ithaka. In this new treatise, on the 
cc Youth of the World," Mr. Gladstone dis- 
cusses the same questions which were treated 
in his earlier work ; and the main conclusions 

1 ^uventus Mundi* The Gods and Men of the Heroic 
Age. By the Rt. Hon. William Ewart Gladstone. Bos- 
ton : little, Brown & Co. 1869. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

reached in the cc Studies on Homer " are here 
so little modified with reference to the recent 
progress of archaeological inquiries that the book 
can hardly be said to have had any other reason 
for appearing, save the desire of loitering by the 
ships of the Argives, and of returning thither 
as often as possible. 

The title selected by Mr. Gladstone for his 
new work is either a very appropriate one or a 
strange misnomer, according to the point of 
view from which it is regarded. Such being the 
case, we might readily acquiesce in its use, and 
pass it by without comment, trusting that the 
author understood himself when he adopted it, 
were it not that by incidental references, and 
especially by his allusions to the legendary lit- 
erature of the Jews, Mr. Gladstone shows that 
he means more by the title than it can fairly 
be made to express. An author who seeks to 
determine prehistoric events by references to 
Kadnios, and Danaos, and Abraham, is at once 
liable to the suspicion of holding very inade- 
quate views as to the character of the epoch which 
may properly be termed the " youth of the 
world/' Often in reading Mr. Gladstone we are 
reminded of Renan's strange suggestion that an 
exploration of the Hindu Kush territory, whence 
probably came the primitive Aryans, might 
throw some new light on the origin of lan- 
guage. Nothing could well be more futile. . The 
$36 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

primitive Aryan language has already been 
partly reconstructed for us ; its grammatical 
forms and syntactic devices are becoming famil- 
iar to scholars ; one great philologist has even 
composed a tale in it ; yet in studying this long- 
buried dialect we are not much nearer the first 
beginnings of human speech than in studying 
the Greek of Homer, the Sanskrit of the Vedas, 
or the Umbrian of the Iguvine Inscriptions. 
The Aryan mother-tongue had passed into the 
last of the three stages of linguistic growth long 
before the break-up of the tribal communities 
In Aryana-vaedjo, and at that early date pre- 
sented a less primitive structure than is to be 
seen in the Chinese or the Mongolian of our 
own times. So the state of society depicted in 
the Homeric poems, and well illustrated by 
Mr. Gladstone, is many degrees less primitive 
than that which is revealed to us by the ar- 
chaeological researches either of Pictet and Win- 
dischmann, or oYTylor, Lubbock, andM'Len- 
nan. We shall gather evidences of this as we 
proceed. Meanwhile let us remember that at 
least eleven thousand years before the Homeric 
age men lived in communities, and manufac- 
tured pottery on the banks of the Nile; and let 
us not leave wholly out of sight that more dis- 
tant period, perhaps a million years ago, when 
sparse tribes of savage men, contemporaneous 
with the mammoths of Siberia and the cave- 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

tigers of Britain, straggled against the intense 
cold of the glacial winters. 

Nevertheless, though the Homeric age ap- 
pears to be a late one when considered with 
reference to the whole career of the human race, 
there is a point of view from which it may be 
justly regarded as the cc youth of the world" 
However long man may have existed upon the 
earth, he becomes thoroughly and distinctly 
human in the eyes of the historian only at the 
epoch at which he began to create for himself 
a literature. As far back as we can trace the 
progress of the human race continuously by 
means of the written word, so far do we feel a 
true historical interest in its fortunes, and pur- 
sue our studies with a sympathy which the mere 
lapse of time is powerless to impair. But the 
primeval man, whose history never has been and 
never will be written, whose career on the earth, 
dateless and chartless, can be dimly revealed to us 
only by palaeontology, excites in us a very differ- 
ent feeling. Though with the keenest interest we 
ransack every nook and corner of the earth's sur- 
face for information about him, we are all the 
while aware that what we are studying is human 
zoology and not history. Our Neanderthal 
man is a specimen, not a character. We can- 
not ask him the Homeric question, what is his 
name, who were his parents, and how did he 
get where we found him. His language has died 
238 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

with him, and he can render no account of him- 
self. We can only regard him specifically as 
Homo Anthro$o$y a creature of bigger brain than 
his congener Homo Pithekos, and of vastly 
greater promise. But this, we say, is physical 
science, and not history. 

For the historian, therefore, who studies man 
In his various social relations, the youth of the 
world is the period at which literature begins. 
We regard the history of the western world as 
beginning about the tenth century before the 
Christian era, because at that date we find litera- 
ture, in Greece and Palestine, beginning to throw 
direct light upon the social and intellectual con- 
dition of a portion of mankind. That great 
empires, rich in historical interest and in mate- 
rials for sociological generalizations, had existed 
for centuries before that date, in Egypt and 
Assyria, we do not doubt, since they appear at 
the dawn of history with all the marks of great 
antiquity ; but the only steady historical light 
thrown upon them shines from the pages of 
Greek and Hebrew authors, and these know 
them only in their latest period. For informa- 
tion concerning their early careers we must look> 
not to history, but to linguistic archaeology, a 
science which can help us to general results, but 
cannot enable us to fix dates, save in the crudest 
manner* 

We mention the tenth century before Christ 

239 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

as the earliest period at which we can begin to 
study human society in general and Greek so- 
ciety in particular, through the medium of litera- 
ture. But, strictly speaking, the epoch in question 
is one which cannot be fixed with accuracy. The 
earliest ascertainable date in Greek history is 
that of the Olympiad of Koroibos, B. c. 776. 
There is no doubt that the Homeric poems 
were written before this date, and that Homer 
is therefore strictly prehistoric. Had this fact 
been duly realized by those scholars who have 
not attempted to deny it, a vast amount of profit- 
less discussion might have been avoided. Sooner 
or later, as Grote says, " the lesson must be 
learnt, hard and painful though it be, that no 
imaginable reach of critical acumen will of itself 
enable us to discriminate fancy from reality, in 
the absence of a tolerable stock of evidence." 
We do not know who Homer was ; we do not 
know where or when he lived ; and in all prob- 
ability we shall never know. The data for set- 
tling the question are not now accessible, and it 
is not likely that they will ever be discovered. 
Even in early antiquity the question was wrapped 
in an obscurity as deep as that which shrouds it 
to-day. The case between the seven or eight 
cities which claimed to be the birthplace of the 
poet, and which Welcker has so ably discussed, 
cannot be decided. The feebleness of the evi- 
dence brought into court may be judged from 
240 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

the fact that the claims of Chios and the story 
of the poet's blindness rest alike upon a doubtful 
allusion in the Hymn to Apollo, which Thu- 
kydides (iii. 104) accepted as authentic. The 
majority of modern critics have consoled them- 
selves with the vague conclusion that, as between 
the two great divisions of the early Greek world, 
Homer at least belonged to the Asiatic. But 
Mr, Gladstone has shown good reasons for 
doubting this opinion. He has pointed out sev- 
eral instances in which the poems seem to be- 
tray a closer topographical acquaintance with 
European than with Asiatic Greece, and con- 
cludes that Athens and Argos have at least as 
good a claim to Honier as Chios or Smyrna. 

It is far more desirable that we should form 
an approximate opinion as to the date of the 
Homeric poems than that we should seek tp 
determine the exact locality in which they ori- 
ginated. Yet the one question is hardly less 
obscure than the other. Different writers of 
antiquity assigned eight different epochs to 
Homer, of which the earliest is separated from 
the most recent by an interval of four hundred 
and sixty years, a period as long as that which 
separates the Black Prince from the Duke of 
Wellington, or the age of Perikles from the 
Christian era. While Theopompos quite pre- 
posterously brings him down as late as the 
twenty-third Olympiad, Krates removes him to 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the twelfth century B. c. The date ordinarily 
accepted by modern critics is the one assigned 
by Herodotos, 880 B. c. Yet Mr. Gladstone 
shows reasons, which appear to me convincing, 
for doubting or rejecting this date* 

I refer to the much-abused legend of the 
Children of Herakles, which seems capable of 
yielding an item of trustworthy testimony, pro- 
vided it be circumspectly dealt with. I differ 
from Mr. Gladstone in not regarding the legend 
as historical in its present shape. In my appre- 
hension, Hyllos and Oxylos, as historical per- 
sonages, have no value whatever ; and I faith- 
fully follow Mr. Grote, in refusing to accept any 
date earlier than the Olympiad of Koroibos. 
The tale of the " Return of the Herakleids " is 
undoubtedly as unworthy of credit as the legend 
of Hengst and Horsa ; yet, like the latter, it 
doubtless embodies a historical occurrence. One 
cannot approve, as scholarlike or philosophical, 
the scepticism of Mr. Cox, who can see in 
the whole narrative nothing but a solar myth. 
There certainly was a time when the Dorian 
tribes described in the legend as the allies of 
the Children of Herakles conquered Pelo- 
ponnesos ; and that time was certainly subse- 
quent to the composition of the Homeric poems* 
It is incredible that the Iliad and the Odyssey 
should ignore the existence of Dorians in Pelo- 
ponnesos, if there were Dorians not only dwell- 
242 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

ing but ruling there at the time when the poems 
were written. The poems are very accurate and 
rigorously consistent in their use of ethnical 
appellatives ; and their author, in speaking of 
Achaians and Argives, is as evidently alluding 
to peoples directly known to him as is Shake- 
speare when he mentions Danes and Scotchmen. 
Now Homer knows Achaians, Argives, and 
Pelasgians dwelling in Peloponnesos ; and he 
knows Dorians also, but only as a people inhab- 
iting Crete. (Odyss. xix. 175.) With Homer, 
moreover, the Hellenes are not the Greeks in 
general, but only a people dwelling in the north, 
in Thessaly. When these poems were written, 
Greece was not known as Hellas, but as Achaia, 
the whole country taking its name from the 
Achaians, the dominant race in Peloponnesos. 
Now at the beginning of the truly historical 
period, in the eighth century B. c., all this is 
changed. The Greeks as a people are called 
Hellenes ; the Dorians rule in Peloponnesos, 
while their lands are tilled by Argive Helots ; 
and the Achaians appear only as an insignificant 
people occupying the southern shore of the 
Corinthian Gulf. How this change took place 
we cannot tell. The explanation of it can never 
be obtained from history, though some light 
may perhaps be thrown upon it by linguistic 
archaeology. But at all events it was a great 
change, and could not have taken place in a 
243 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

moment. It is fair to suppose that the Helleno- 
Dorian conquest must have begun at least a 
century before the first Olympiad ; for other- 
wise the geographical limits of the various Greek 
races would not have been so completely estab- 
lished as we find them to have been at that 
date. The Greeks, indeed, supposed it to have 
begun at least three centuries earlier, but it is 
impossible to collect evidence which will either 
refute or establish that opinion. For our pur- 
poses it is enough to know that the conquest 
could not have taken place later than 900 B. c. ; 
and if this be the case, the minimum date for the 
composition of the Homeric poems must be the 
tenth century before Christ ; which is, in fact, 
the date assigned by Aristotle, Thus far, and no 
farther, I believe it possible to go with safety. 
Whether the poems were composed in the tenth, 
eleventh, or twelfth century cannot be deter- 
mined. We are justified only in placing them 
far enough back to allow the Helleno-Dorian 
conquest to intervene between their composi- 
tion and the beginning of recorded history. The 
tenth century B. c. is the latest date which will 
account for all the phenomena involved in the 
case, and with this result we must be satisfied. 
Even on this showing, the Iliad and Odyssey 
appear as the oldest existing specimens of Aryan 
literature, save perhaps the hymns of the Rig- 
Veda and the sacred books of the A vesta. 
244 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

The apparent difficulty of preserving such 
long poems for three or four centuries without 
the aid of writing may seem at first sight to jus- 
tify the hypothesis of Wolf, that they are mere 
collections of ancient ballads, like those which 
make up the Mahabharata, preserved in the 
memories of a dozen or twenty bards, and first 
arranged under the orders of Peisistratos. But 
on a careful examination this hypothesis is seen 
to raise more difficulties than it solves. What 
was there in the position of Peisistratos, or of 
Athens itself in the sixth century B. c., so au- 
thoritative as to compel all Greeks to recognize 
the recension then and there made of their re- 
vered poet ? Besides which the celebrated ordi- 
nance of Solon respecting the rhapsodes at the 
Panathenaia obliges us to infer the existence of 
written manuscripts of Homer previous to 550 
B. c. As Mr. Grote well observes, the inter- 
ference of Peisistratos a presupposes a certain 
foreknown and ancient aggregate, the main line- 
aments of which were familiar to the Grecian 
public, although many of the rhapsodes in their 
practice may have deviated from it both by 
omission and interpolation. In correcting the 
Athenian recitations conformably with such un- 
derstood general type, Peisistratos might hope 
both to procure respect for Athens and to con- 
stitute a fashion for the rest of Greece. But 
this step of * collecting the torn body of sacred 
245 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Homer * is something genetically different from 
the composition of a new Iliad out of preexist- 
ing songs : the former is as easy, suitable, and 
promising as the latter is violent and gratui- 



tous." 1 



As for WolPs objection, that the Iliad and 
Odyssey are too long to have been preserved 
by memory, it may be met by a simple denial 
It is a strange objection indeed, coming from a 
man of Wolfs retentive memory. I do not see 
how the acquisition of the two poems can be 
regarded as such a very arduous task ; and if 
literature were as scanty now as in Greek an- 
tiquity, there are doubtless many scholars who 
would long since have had them at their tongues* 
end. Sir G. C. Lewis, with but little conscious 
effort, managed to carry in his head a very con- 
siderable portion of Greek and Latin classic lit- 
erature ; and Niebuhr (who once restored from 
recollection a book of accounts which had been 
accidentally destroyed) was in the habit of refer- 
ring to book and chapter of an ancient author 
without consulting his notes. Nay, there is Pro- 
fessor Sophocles, of Harvard University, who, 
if you suddenly stop and interrogate him in the 
street, will tell you just how many times any 
given Greek word occurs in Thukydides, or in 
jEschylos, or in Plato, and will obligingly re- 
hearse for you the context. If all extant copies 
1 Hist. Greece, vol. ii. p. 208. 
246 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

of the Homeric poems were to be gathered to- 
gether and burnt up to-day, like Don Quixote's 
library, or like those Arabic manuscripts of 
which Cardinal Ximenes made a bonfire in the 
streets of Granada, the poems could very likely 
be reproduced and orally transmitted for sev- 
eral generations ; and much easier must it have 
been for the Greeks to preserve these books, 
which their imagination invested with a quasi- 
sanctity, and which constituted the greater part 
of the literary furniture of their minds. In 
Xenophon's time there were educated gentle- 
men at Athens who could repeat both Iliad and 
Odyssey verbatim, (Xenoph. Sympos., in. 5.) 
Besides this, we know that at Chios there was a 
company of bards, known as Homerids, whose 
business it was to recite these poems from 
memory ; and from the edicts of Solon and the 
Sikyonian Kleisthenes (Herod., v. 67), we may 
infer that the case was the same in other parts 
of Greece. Passages from the Iliad used to be 
sung at the Pythian festivals, to the accompani- 
ment of the harp (Athenseus, xiv. 638), and in 
at least two of the Ionic islands of the .ZEgaean 
there were regular competitive exhibitions by 
trained young men, at which prizes were given 
to the best reciter. The difficulty of preserving 
the poems, under such circumstances, becomes 
very insignificant ; and the Wolfian argument 
quite vanishes when we reflect that it would 
247 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

have been no easier to preserve a dozen or 
twenty short poems than two long ones. Nay, 
the coherent, orderly arrangement of the Iliad 
and Odyssey would make them even easier to 
remember than a group of short rhapsodies not 
consecutively arranged. 

When we come to interrogate the poems 
themselves, we find in them quite convincing 
evidence that they were originally composed for 
the ear alone, and without reference to manu- 
script assistance. They abound in catchwords 
and in verbal repetitions. The " Catalogue of 
Ships/* as Mr. Gladstone has acutely observed, 
is arranged in well-defined sections, in such a 
way that the end of each section suggests the 
beginning of the next one. It resembles the 
versus memorials found in old-fashioned gram- 
mars. But the most convincing proof of all Is 
to be found in the changes which Greek pro- 
nunciation went through between the ages of 
Homer and Peisistratos. " At the time when 
these poems were composed, the digamma (or 
w) ,was an effective consonant, and figured as 
such in the structure of the verse ; at the time 
when they were committed to writing, it had 
ceased to be pronounced, and therefore never 
found a place in any of the manuscripts, in- 
somuch that the Alexandrian critics, though 
they knew of its existence in the much later 
poems of Alkaios and Sappho, never recognized 
248 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

It In Homer. The hiatus, and the various per- 
plexities of metre, occasioned by the loss of the 
digamma, were corrected by different grammat- 
ical stratagems. But the whole history of this 
lost letter is very curious, and is rendered intel- 
ligible only by the supposition that the Iliad 
and Odyssey belonged for a wide space of time 
to the memory, the voice, and the ear exclu- 
sively/' 1 

Many of these facts are of course fully recog- 
nized by the Wolfians ; but the inference drawn 
from them, that the Homeric poems began to 
exist in a piecemeal condition, is, as we have 
seen, unnecessary. These poems may indeed be 
compared, In a certain sense, with the early sa- 
cred and epic literature of the Jews, Indians, 
and Teutons. But if we assign a plurality of 
composers to the Psalms and Pentateuch, the 
Mahabharata, the Vedas, and the Edda, we do 
so because of internal evidence furnished by 
the books themselves, and not because these 
books could not have been preserved by oral 
tradition. Is there, then, in the Homeric poems 
any such internal evidence of dual or plural 
origin as is furnished by the interlaced Elohis- 
tic and Jehovistic documents of the Pentateuch? 
A careful investigation will show that there is 
not. Any scholar who has given some attention 
to the subject can readily distinguish the Elo- 
1 Grote, Hfst. Greece, voL il p. 198. 
249 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

histic from the Jehovistic portions of the Penta- 
teuch ; and, save in the case of a few sporadic 
verses, most Biblical critics coincide in the sepa- 
ration which they make between the two. But 
the attempts which have been made to break 
up the Iliad and Odyssey have resulted in no 
such harmonious agreement. There are as many 
systems as there are critics, and naturally enough. 
For the Iliad and the Odyssey are as much alike 
as two peas, and the resemblance which holds 
between the two holds also between the differ- 
ent parts of each poem. From the appearance of 
the injured Chryses in the Grecian camp down 
to the intervention of Athene on the field of 
contest at Ithaka, we find in each book and in 
each paragraph the same style, the same pecu- 
liarities of expression, the same habits of thought, 
the same quite unique manifestations of the 
faculty of observation. Now if the style were 
commonplace, the observation slovenly, or the 
thought trivial, as is wont to be the case in 
ballad literature, this argument from similarity 
might not carry with it much conviction. But 
when we reflect that throughout the whole course 
of human history no other works, save the best 
tragedies of Shakespeare, have ever been writ- 
ten which for combined keenness of observa- 
tion, elevation of thought, and sublimity of style 
can compare with the Homeric poems, we must 
admit that the argument has very great weight 
250 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

indeed. Let us take, for example, the sixth and 
twenty-fourth books of the Iliad. According 
to the theory of Lachmann, the most eminent 
champion of the Wolfian hypothesis, these are 
by different authors. Human speech has per- 
haps never been brought so near to the limit of 
its capacity of expressing deep emotion as in the 
scene between Priam and Achilleus in the twenty- 
fourth book ; while the interview between Hek- 
tor and Andromache in the sixth similarly well- 
nigh exhausts the power of language. Now, the 
literary critic has a right to ask whether it is 
probable that two such passages, agreeing per- 
fectly in turn of expression, and alike exhibiting 
the same unapproachable degree of excellence, 
could have been produced by two different 
authors. And the physiologist with some 
inward misgivings suggested by Mr. Galton's 
theory that the Greeks surpassed us In genius 
even as we surpass the negroes has a right to 
ask whether it is in the natural course of things 
for two such wonderful poets, strangely agreeing 
in their minutest psychological characteristics, to 
be produced at the same time. And the diffi- 
culty thus raised becomes overwhelming when 
we reflect that it is the coexistence of not two 
only, but at least twenty such geniuses which 
the Wolfian hypothesis requires us to account 
for. That theory worked very well as long as 
scholars thoughtlessly assumed that the Iliad 
251 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

and Odyssey were analogous to ballad poetry. 
Bat, except in the simplicity of the primitive 
diction, there is no such analogy. The power 
and beauty of the Iliad are never so hopelessly 
lost as when it is rendered into the style of a 
modern ballad. One might as well attempt to 
preserve the grandeur of the triumphant close 
of Milton's Lycidas by turning it into the light 
Anacreontics of the ode to c< Eros stung by a 
Bee." The peculiarity of the Homeric poetry, 
which defies translation, is its union of the sim-- 
plicity characteristic of an early age with a sus- 
tained elevation of style, which can be explained 
only as due to individual genius. 

The same conclusion is forced upon us when 
we examine the artistic structure of these poems. 
With regard to the Odyssey in particular, Mr. 
Grote has elaborately shown that its structure is 
so thoroughly integral that no considerable por- 
tion could be subtracted without converting the 
poem into a more or less admirable fragment, 
The Iliad stands in a somewhat different posi j 
tion. There are unmistakable peculiarities in 
its structure, which have led even Mr. Grote, 
who utterly rejects the Wolfian hypothesis, to 
regard it as made up of two poems ; although 
he inclines to the belief that the later poem was 
grafted upon the earlier by its own author, by 
way of further elucidation and expansion ; just 
as Goethe, in his old age, added a new part to 
252 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

" Faust/' According to Mr. Grote, the Iliad, as 
originally conceived, was properly an Achilleis ; 
its design being, as indicated in the opening 
lines of the poem, to depict the wrath of Achil- 
leus and the unutterable \voes which it entailed 
upon the Greeks. The plot of this primitive 
Achilleis is entirely contained in Books L, 
VIIL, and XL -XXII. ; and, in Mr. Grote's 
opinion, the remaining books injure the sym- 
metry of this plot by unnecessarily prolonging 
the duration of the Wrath, while the embassy 
to Achilleus, in the ninth book, unduly antici- 
pates the conduct of Agamemnon in the nine- 
teenth, and is therefore, as a piece of bungling 
work, to be referred to the hands of an inferior 
interpolator. Mr. Grote thinks it probable that 
these books, with the exception of the ninth, 
were subsequently added by the poet, with a 
view to enlarging the original Achilleis into a 
real Iliad, describing the war of the Greeks 
against Troy. With reference to this hypothe- 
sis, I gladly admit that Mr. Grote is, of all 
men now living, the one best entitled to a re- 
verential hearing on almost any point connected 
with Greek antiquity. Nevertheless it seems to 
me that his theory rests solely upon imagined 
difficulties which have no real existence. I doubt 
if any scholar, reading the Iliad ever so much, 
would ever be struck by these alleged inconsist- 
encies of structure, unless they were suggested 
353 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

by some a priori theory* And I fear that the 
Wolfian theory, In spite of Mr. Grote's em- 
phatic rejection of it, is responsible for some of 
these over-refined criticisms. Even as it stands, 
the Iliad is not an account of the war against 
Troy, It begins in the tenth year of the siege, 
and it does not continue to the capture of the 
city. It is simply occupied with an episode in 
the war, with the wrath of Achilleus and its 
consequences, according to the plan marked out 
in the opening lines. The supposed additions, 
therefore, though they may have given to the 
poem a somewhat wider scope, have not at any 
rate changed its primitive character of an Achil- 
leis. To my mind they seem even called for 
by the original conception of the consequences 
of the wrath* To have inserted the battle at 
the ships, in which Sarpedon breaks down the 
wall of the Greeks, immediately after the occur- 
rences of the first book, would have been too 
abrupt altogether. Zeus, after his reluctant 
promise to Thetis, must not be expected so 
suddenly to exhibit such fell determination. 
And after the long series of books describing 
the valorous deeds of Aias, Diomedes, Aga- 
memnon, Odysseus, and Menelaos, the power- 
ful intervention of Achilleus appears in far 
grander proportions than would otherwise be 
possible. As for the embassy to Achilleus, in 
the ninth book, I am unable to see how the 
254 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

final reconciliation with Agamemnon would be 
complete without it. As Mr. Gladstone well 
observes, what Achilleus wants is not restitu- 
tion, but apology ; and Agamemnon offers no 
apology until the nineteenth book. In his an- 
swer to the ambassadors, Achilleus scornfully 
rejects the proposals which Imply that the 
mere return of Briseis will satisfy his righteous 
resentment, unless it be accompanied with that 
public humiliation to which circumstances have 
not yet compelled the leader of the Greeks to 
subject himself. Achilleus is not to be bought 
or cajoled. Even the extreme distress of the 
Greeks In the thirteenth book does not prevail 
upon him ; nor is there anything in the poem 
to show that he ever would have laid aside his 
wrath, had not the death of Patroklos supplied 
him with a new and wholly unforeseen motive. 
It seems to me that his entrance into the bat- 
tle after the death of his friend would lose half 
its poetic effect, were It not preceded by some 
such scene as that in the ninth book, in which 
he Is represented as deaf to all ordinary induce- 
ments. As for the two concluding books, which 
Mr. Grote is inclined to regard as a subsequent 
addition, not necessitated by the plan of the 
poem, I am at a loss to see how the poem can be 
considered complete without them. To leave 
the bodies of Patroklos and Hektor unburied 
would be in the highest degree shocking to 
255 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Greek religious feelings. Remembering the 
sentence incurred, in far less superstitious times, 
by the generals at Arginusai, it is impossible to 
believe that any conclusion which left Patroklos's 
manes unpropitiated, and the mutilated corpse 
of Hektor unransomed, could have satisfied 
either the poet or his hearers. For further par- 
ticulars I must refer the reader to the excellent 
criticisms of Mr. Gladstone, and also to the 
article on ff Greek History and Legend " in the 
second volume of Mr. Mill's " Dissertations 
and Discussions." A careful study 'of the argu- 
ments of these writers, and, above all, a thor- 
ough and independent examination of the Iliad 
Itself, will, I believe, convince the student that 
this great poem is from beginning to end the 
consistent production of a single author. 

The arguments of those who would attribute 
the Iliad and Odyssey, taken as wholes, to two 
different authors, rest chiefly upon some appar- 
ent discrepancies in the mythology of the two 
poems ; but many of these difficulties have been 
completely solved by the recent progress of the 
science of comparative mythology. Thus, for 
example, the fact that, in the Iliad, Hephaistos 
Is called the husband of Charis, while in the 
Odyssey he is called the husband of Aphrodite, 
has been cited even by Mr. Grote as evidence 
that the two poems are not by the same author. 
It seems to me that one such discrepancy, in 
256 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

the midst of complete general agreement, would 
be much better explained as Cervantes explained 
his own inconsistency with reference to the steal- 
ing of Sancho's mule, in the twenty-second 
chapter of " Don Quixote/' But there is no 
discrepancy. Aphrodite, though originally the 
moon-goddess, like the German Horsel, had 
before Homer's time acquired many of the at- 
tributes of the dawn-goddess Athene, while her 
lunar characteristics had been to a great extent 
transferred to Artemis and Persephone. In her 
renovated character, as goddess of the dawn, 
Aphrodite became identified with Charis, who 
appears in the Rig-Veda as dawn-goddess. In 
the post-Homeric mythology, the two were 
again separated, and Charis, becoming divided 
in personality, appears as the Charites, or 
Graces, who were supposed to be constant at- 
tendants of Aphrodite. But in the Homeric 
poems the two are still identical, and either 
Charis or Aphrodite may be called the wife of 
the fire-god, without inconsistency. 

Thus to sum up, I believe that Mr. Glad- 
stone is quite right in maintaining that both the 
Iliad and Odyssey are, from beginning to end, 
with the exception of a few insignificant inter- 
polations, the work of a single author, whom 
we have no ground for calling by any other 
name than that of Homer. I believe, more- 
over, that this author lived before the begin- 
257 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

ntng of authentic history, and that we can de- 
termine neither his age nor his country with 
precision. We can only decide that he was a 
Greek who lived at some time previous to the 
year 900 B. c. 

Here, however, I must begin to part com- 
pany with Mr. Gladstone, and shall henceforth 
unfortunately have frequent occasion to differ 
from him on points of fundamental importance. 
For Mr. Gladstone not only regards the Ho- 
meric age as strictly within the limits of authentic 
history, but he even goes much further than 
this. He would not only fix the date of Homer 
positively in the twelfth century B. c., but he 
regards the Trojan war as a purely historical 
event, of which Homer is the authentic histo- 
rian and the probable eye-witness. Nay, he 
even takes the word of the poet as proof con- 
clusive of the historical character of events hap- 
pening several generations before the Troika, 
according to the legendary chronology. He 
not only regards Agamemnon, Achilleus, and 
Paris as actual personages, but he ascribes the 
same reality to characters like Danaos, Kadmos, 
and Perseus, and talks of the Pelopid and 
Aiolid dynasties, and the empire of Minos, 
with as much confidence as if he were dealing 
with Karlings or Capetians, or with the epoch 
of the Crusades. 

It is disheartening, at the present day, and 
258 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

after so much has been finally settled by writers 
like Grote, Mommsen, and Sir G. C. Lewis, to 
come upon such views in the work of a man of 
scholarship and intelligence. One begins to 
wonder how many more times it will be neces- 
sary to prove that dates and events are of no 
historical value, unless attested by nearly con- 
temporary evidence. Pausanias and Plutarch 
were able men no doubt, and Thukydides was 
a profound historian ; but what these writers 
thought of the Herakleid invasion, the age of 
Homer, and the war of Troy, can have no great 
weight with the critical historian, since even in 
the time of Thukydides these events were as 
completely obscured by lapse of time as they 
are now. There is no literary Greek history be- 
fore the age of Hekataios and Herodotos, three 
centuries subsequent to the first recorded Olym- 
piad. A portion of this period is satisfactorily 
covered by inscriptions, but even these fail us 
before we get within a century of this earliest 
ascertainable date. Even the career of the law- 
giver Lykourgos, which seems to belong to the 
commencement of the eighth century B. c., pre- 
sents us, from lack of anything like contem- 
porary records, with many insoluble problems. 
The Heleno-Dorian conquest, as we have seen, 
must have occurred at some time or other ; but 
it evidently did not occur within two centuries 
of the earliest known inscription, and it is there- 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

fore folly to imagine that we can determine its 
date or ascertain the circumstances which at- 
tended it. Anterior to this event there is but 
one fact in Greek antiquity directly known to 
us, the existence of the Homeric poems* 
The belief that there was a Trojan war rests 
exclusively upon the contents of those poems : 
there is no other independent testimony to it 
whatever. But the Homeric poems are of no 
value as testimony to the truth of the state- 
ments contained in them, unless it can be proved 
that their author was either contemporary with 
the Troika, or else derived his information from 
contemporary witnesses. This can never be 
proved. To assume, as Mr. Gladstone does, 
that Homer lived within fifty years after the 
Troika, is to make a purely gratuitous assump- 
tion. For aught the wisest historian can tell, 
the interval may have been five hundred years, 
or a thousand. Indeed the Iliad itself expressly 
declares that it is dealing with an ancient state 
of things which no longer exists. It is difficult 
to see what else can be meant by the statement 
that the heroes of the Troika belong to an order 
of men no longer seen upon the earth. (Iliad, 
v. 304.) Most assuredly Achilleus the son of 
Thetis, and Sarpedon the son of Zeus, and 
Helena the daughter of Zeus, are no ordinary 
mortals, such as might have been seen and con- 
versed with by the poet's grandfather. They be- 
260 



JUVENTUS MTJNDI 

long to an inferior order of gods, according to 
the peculiar anthropomorphism of the Greeks, 
in which deity and humanity are so closely min- 
gled that it is difficult to tell where the one 
begins and the other ends. Diomedes, single- 
handed, vanquishes not only the gentle Aphro- 
dite, but even the god of battles himself, the 
terrible Ares. Nestor quaffs lightly from a gob- 
let which, we are told, not two men among the 
poet's contemporaries could by their united ex- 
ertions raise and place upon a table. Aias and 
Hektor and Aineias hurl enormous masses of 
rock as easily as an ordinary man would throw 
a pebble. All this shows that the poet, in his 
naive way, conceiving of these heroes as per- 
sonages of a remote past, was endeavouring as 
far as possible to ascribe to them the attributes 
of superior beings. If all that were divine, 
marvellous, or superhuman were to be left out 
of the poems, the supposed historical residue 
would hardly be worth the trouble of saving. 
As Mr. Cox well observes, " It is of the very 
essence of the narrative that Paris, who has de- 
serted Oinone, the child of the stream Kebren, 
and before whom Here, Athene, and Aphro- 
dite had appeared as claimants for the golden 
apple, steals from Sparta the beautiful sister of 
the Dioskouroi ; that the chiefs are summoned 
together for no other purpose than to avenge 
her woes and wrongs ; that Achilleus, the son 
261 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

of the sea-nymph Thetis, the wieider of invin- 
able weapons and the lord of undying horses, 
goes to fight in a quarrel which is not his own ; 
that his wrath is roused because he is robbed of 
the maiden Briseis, and that henceforth he takes 
no part in the strife until his friend Patroklos 
has been slain ; that then he puts on the new 
armour which Thetis brings to him from the 
anvil of Hephaistos, and goes forth to win the 
victory. The details are throughout of the same 
nature. Achilleus sees and converses with 
Athene ; Aphrodite is wounded by Diomedes, 
and Sleep and Death bear away the lifeless Sar- 
pedon on their noiseless wings to the far-off 
land of light." In view of all this it is evident 
that Homer was not describing, like a salaried 
historiographer, the state of things which ex- 
isted in the time of his father or grandfather. 
To his mind the occurrences which he described 
were those of a remote, a wonderful, a semi- 
divine past 

This conclusion, which I have thus far sup- 
ported merely by reference to the Iliad itself, 
becomes irresistible as soon as we take into ac- 
count the results obtained during the past thirty 
years by the science of comparative mythology. 
As long as our view was restricted to Greece, 
it was perhaps excusable that Achilleus and 
Paris should be taken for exaggerated copies of 
actual persons. Since the day when Grimm laid 
262 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

the foundations of the science of mythology, all 
this has been changed. It is now held that 
Achilleus and Paris and Helena are to be found, 
not only in the Iliad, but also in the Rig- Veda, 
and therefore, as mythical conceptions, date, 
not from Homer, but from a period preceding 
the dispersion of the Aryan nations. The tale 
of the Wrath of Achilleus, far from originating 
with Homer, far from being recorded by the 
author of the Iliad as by an eye-witness, must 
have been known in its essential features in 
Aryana-vaedjo, at that remote epoch when the 
Indian, the Greek, and the Teuton were as yet 
one and the same. For the story has been re- 
tained " by the three races alike, in all its prin- 
cipal features ; though the Veda has left it in 
the sky where it originally belonged, while the 
Iliad and the Nibelungenlied have brought it 
down to earth, the one locating it in Asia 
Minor, and the other in Northwestern Europe. 1 

1 For the precise extent to which I would indorse the 
theory that the Iliad myth is an account of the victory of light 
over darkness, let me refer to what I have said above on p. 
1 8 1 . I do not suppose that the straggle between light and 
darkness was Homer's subject in the Iliad any more than 
It was Shakespeare's subject in Hamlet. Homer* s subject 
was the wrath of the Greek hero, as Shakespeare's subject 
was the vengeance of the Danish prince. Nevertheless, the 
story of Hamlet, when traced 'back to its Norse original, is un- 
mistakably the story of the quarrel between summer and win- 
ter ; and the moody prince is as much a solar hero as Odin 
263 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

In the Rig-Veda the Panis are the genii of 
night and winter, corresponding to the Nibe- 
lungs, or " Children of the Mist/' in the Teu- 
tonic legend, and to the children of Nephele 

himself. See Simrock, Die Quellen des Shakespeare, L 127 
133. Of course Shakespeare knew nothing of this, as 
Homer knew nothing of the origin of Ms Achilleus. The 
two stories, therefore, are not to be taken as sun myths in 
their present form. They are the offspring of other stories 
which were sun myths ; they are stories which conform to the 
sun-myth type after the manner above illustrated in the paper 
on light and Darkness. [Hence there is nothing unintelligi- 
ble in the inconsistency which seems to puzzle Max Miil- 
ler {Science of Language, 6th ed. voL ii. p. 516, note 20) 
of investing Paris with many of the characteristics of the 
children of light. Supposing, as we must, that the primitive 
sense of the Iliad myth had as entirely disappeared in the 
Homeric age as the primitive sense of the Hamlet myth had 
disappeared in the times of Elizabeth, the fit ground for won- 
der is that such inconsistencies are not more numerous.] The 
physical theory of myths will be properly presented and com- 
prehended, only when it is understood that we accept the 
physical derivation of such stories as the Iliad myth in much 
the same way that we are bound to accept the physical ety- 
mologies of such words as soul, consider 9 truth, convince^ 
deliberate, and the like. The late Dr. Gibbs of Yale Col- 
lege, in his Philological Studies, a little book which I 
used to read with delight when a boy, describes such ety- 
mologies as S faded metaphors." In similar wise, while re- 
fraining from characterizing the Iliad or the tragedy of Ham~ 
let any more than I would characterize Le Juif Errant by 
Sue, or La Maison Forestiere by Erckmann-Chatrian as 
nature myths, I would at the' same time consider these poems 
well described as embodying e feded nature-myths.*' 
264 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

(cloud) in the Greek myth of the Golden 
Fleece. The Panis steal the cattle of the Sun 
(Indra, Helios, Herakles), and carry them by 
an unknown route to a dark cave eastward. 
Sarama, the creeping Dawn, is sent by Indra to 
find and recover them. The Panis then tamper 
with Sarama, and try their best to induce her 
to betray her solar lord. For a while she is 
prevailed upon to dally with them ; yet she 
ultimately returns to give Indra the information 
needful in order that he might conquer the 
Panis, just as Helena, in the slightly altered 
version, ultimately returns to her western home, 
carrying with her the treasures (/cr^jaara, Iliad, 
ii. 285) of which Paris had robbed Menelaos. 
But, before the bright Indra and his solar he- 
roes can reconquer their treasures they must 
take captive the offspring of Brisaya, the violet 
light of morning. Thus Achilleus, answering 
to the solar champion Aharyu, takes captive 
the daughter of Brises. But as the sun must 
always be parted from the morning light, to 
return to it again just before setting, so Achil- 
leus loses Briseis, and regains her only just 
before his final struggle. In similar wise Hera- 
kles is parted from lole ( cc the violet one "), 
and Sigurd from Brynhild. In sullen wrath the 
hero retires from the conflict, and his Myrmi- 
dons are no longer seen on the battlefield, as 
the sun hides behind the dark cloud and his 
1265 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

rays no longer appear about him. Yet toward 
the evening, as Briseis returns, he appears in 
his might, clothed in the dazzling armour 
wrought for him by the fire-god Hephaistos, 
and with his invincible spear slays the great 
storm-cloud, which during his absence had well- 
nigh prevailed over the champions of the day- 
light. But his triumph is short-lived ; for hav- 
ing trampled on the clouds that had opposed 
him, while yet crimsoned with the fierce car- 
nage, the sharp arrow of the night-demon Paris 
slays him at the Western Gates. We have not 
space to go into further details. In Mr. Cox's 
a Mythology of the Aryan Nations/' and 
" Tales of Ancient Greece/' the reader will find 
the entire contents of the Iliad and Odyssey 
thus minutely illustrated by comparison with 
the Veda, the Edda, and the Lay of the Nibe- 
lungs. 

Ancient as the Homeric poems undoubtedly 
are, they are modern in comparison with the 
tale of Achilleus and Helena, as here unfolded. 
The date of the entrance of the Greeks into 
Europe will perhaps never be determined ; but 
I do not see how any competent scholar can 
well place it at less than eight hundred or a 
thousand years before the time of Homer. Be- 
tween the two epochs the Greek, Latin, Um- 
brian, and Keltic languages had time to acquire 
distinct individualities. Far earlier, therefore, 
266 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

than the Homeric cc juventus mundi " was that 
" youth of the world," in which the Aryan 
forefathers, knowing no abstract terms, and 
possessing no philosophy but fetichism, delib- 
erately spoke of the Sun, and the Dawn, and 
the Clouds, as persons or as animals. The 
Veda, though composed much later than this, 
perhaps as late as the Hiad, nevertheless 
preserves the record of the mental life of this 
period. The Vedic poet is still dimly aware 
that Sarama is the fickle twilight, and the Panis 
the night-demons who strive to coax her from 
her allegiance to the day-god. He keeps the 
scene of action in the sky. But the Homeric 
Greek had long since forgotten that Helena and 
Paris were anything more than semi-divine 
mortals, the daughter of Zeus and the son of 
the Zeus-descended Priam. The Hindu under- 
stood that Dyaus (" the bright one ") meant 
the sky, and Sarama ( cc the creeping one ") the 
dawn, and spoke significantly when he called 
the latter the daughter of the former. But the 
Greek could not know that Zens was derived 
from a root div, cf to shine," or that Helena 
belonged to a root sar, cc to creep." Phonetic 
change thus helped him to rise from fetichism 
to polytheism. His nature-gods became thor- 
oughly anthropomorphic ; and he probably no 
more remembered that Achilleus originally sig- 
nified the sun, than we remember that the word 
267 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

God 3 which we use to denote the most vast of 
conceptions, originally meant simply the Storm- 
wind. Indeed, when the fetichistic tendency 
led the Greek again to personify the powers of 
nature, he had recourse to new names formed 
from his own language. Thus, beside Apollo 
we have Helios ; Selene beside Artemis and 
Persephone ; Eos beside Athene ; Gaia beside 
Demeter. As a further consequence of this de- 
composition and new development of the old 
Aryan mythology, we find, as might be ex- 
pected, that the Homeric poems are not always 
consistent in their use of their mythic materials. 
Thus, Paris, the night-demon, is to Max 
M filler's perplexity invested with many of 
the attributes of the bright solar heroes. " Like 
Perseus, Oidipous, Romulus, and Cyrus, he is 
doomed to bring ruin on his parents ; like them 
he is exposed in his infancy on the hillside, 
and rescued by a shepherd." All the solar 
heroes begin life in this way. Whether, like 
Apollo, born of the dark night (Leto), or like 
Oidipous, of the violet dawn (lokaste), they 
are alike destined to bring destruction on their 
parents, as the night and the dawn are both 
destroyed by the sun* The exposure of the 
child in infancy represents the long rays of the 
morning sun resting on the hillside. Then Paris 
forsakes Oinone ("the wine-coloured one"), 
but meets her again at the gloaming when she 
268 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

lays herself by his side amid the crimson flames 
of the funeral pyre. Sarpedon also, a solar 
hero, is made to fight on the side of the Nibe- 
lungs or Trojans, attended by his friend 
Glaukos ("the brilliant one"). They com- 
mand the Lykians, or " children of light ; " and 
with them comes also Memnon, son of the 
Dawn, from the fiery land of the Aithiopes, the 
favourite haunt of Zeus and the gods of 
Olympos. 

The Iliad myth must therefore have been 
current many ages before the Greeks inhabited 
Greece, long before there was any Ilion to be 
conquered. Nevertheless, this does not forbid 
the supposition that the legend, as we have it, 
may have been formed by the crystallization of 
mythical conceptions about a nucleus of gen- 
uine tradition. In this view I am upheld by a 
most sagacious and accurate scholar, Mr. E. A. 
Freeman, who finds in Carlovingian romance 
an excellent illustration of the problem before 
us. 

The Charlemagne of romance is a mythical 
personage. He is supposed to have been a 
Frenchman, at a time when neither the French 
nation nor the French language can properly 
be said to have existed ; and he is represented 
as a doughty crusader, although crusading was 
not thought of until long after the Karolingian 
era. The legendary deeds of Charlemagne are 
269 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

not conformed to the ordinary rules of geo- 
graphy and chronology* He is a myth, and, 
what is more, he is a solar myth, an avatar ', 
or at least a representative, of Odin in his solar 
capacity. If in his case legend were not con- 
trolled and rectified by history, he would be for 
us as unreal as Agamemnon. 

History, however, tells us that there was an 
Emperor Karl, German in race, name, and lan- 
guage, who was one of the two or three greatest 
men of action that the world has ever seen, and 
who in the ninth century ruled over all Western 
Europe* To the historic Karl corresponds in 
many particulars the mythical Charlemagne. 
The legend has preserved the fact, which with- 
out the information supplied by history we might 
perhaps set down as a fiction, that there was a 
time when Germany, Gaul, Italy, and part of 
Spain formed a single empire. And, as Mr. 
Freeman has well observed, the mythical cru- 
sades of Charlemagne are good evidence that 
there were crusades, although the real Karl had 
nothing whatever to do with one. 

Now the case of Agamemnon may be much 
like that of Charlemagne, except that we no 
longer have history to help us in rectifying the 
legend. The Iliad preserves the tradition of a 
time when a large portion of the islands and 
mainland of Greece were at least partially sub- 
ject to a common suzerain ; and, as Mr. Freeman 
270 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

has again shrewdly suggested, the assignment 
of a place like Mykenai, instead of Athens or 
Sparta or Argos, as the seat of the suzerainty, 
is strong evidence of the trustworthiness of the 
tradition. It appears to show that the legend was 
constrained by some remembered fact, instead 
of being guided by general probability. Charle- 
magne's seat of government has been transferred 
in romance from Aachen to Paris ; had it really 
been at Paris, says Mr. Freeman, no one would 
have thought of transferring it to Aachen. 
Moreover, the story of Agamemnon, though 
uncontrolled by historic records, is here at least 
supported by archaeologic remains, which prove 
Mykenai to have been at some time or other a 
place of great consequence. Then, as to the 
Trojan war, we know that the Greeks several 
times crossed the ^Egaean and colonized a large 
part of the seacoast of Asia Minor. In order 
to do this it was necessary to oust from their 
homes many warlike communities of Lydians 
and Bithynians, and we may be sure that this was 
not done without prolonged fighting. There 
may very probably have been now and then a 
levy en masse in prehistoric Greece, as there was 
in mediaeval Europe ; and whether the great 
suzerain at Mykenai ever attended one or not, 
legend would be sure to send him on such an 
expedition, as it afterwards sent Charlemagne 
on a crusade. 

271 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

It is therefore quite possible that Agamemnon 
and M enelaos may represent dimly remembered 
sovereigns or heroes, with their characters and 
actions distorted to suit the exigencies of a nar- 
rative founded upon a solar myth. The char- 
acter of the Nibelungenlied here well illustrates 
that of the Iliad. Siegfried and Brunhild, Hagen 
and Gunther, seem to be mere personifications 
of physical phenomena ; but Etzel and Dietrich 
are none other than Attila and Theodoric sur- 
rounded with mythical attributes ; and even the 
conception of Brunhild has been supposed to 
contain elements derived from the traditional re- 
collection of the historical Brunehault. When, 
therefore, Achilleus is said, like a true son-god, 
to have died by a wound from a sharp instru- 
ment in the only vulnerable part of his body, 
we may reply that the legendary Charlemagne 
conducts himself in many respects like a solar 
deity. If Odysseus detained by Kalypso repre- 
sents the sun ensnared and held captive by the 
pale goddess of night, the legend of Frederic 
Barbarossa asleep In a Thuringian mountain 
embodies a portion of a kindred conception. 
We know that Charlemagne and Frederic have 
been substituted for Odin ; we may suspect that 
with the mythical impersonations of Achilleus 
and Odysseus some traditional figures may be 
blended. We should remember that in early 
times the solar myth was a sort of type after 
272 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

which all wonderful stories would be patterned* 
and that to such a type tradition also would be 
made to conform, 

In suggesting this view, we are not opening 
the door to Euhemerism. If there is any one 
conclusion concerning the Homeric poems which 
the labours of a whole generation of scholars 
may be said to have satisfactorily established, 
it is this, that no trustworthy history can be 
obtained from either the Iliad or the Odyssey 
merely by sifting out the mythical element 
Even if the poems contain the faint reminis- 
cence of an actual event, that event is inextri- 
cably wrapped up in mythical phraseology, so 
that by no cunning of the scholar can it be 
construed into history. In view of this it is 
quite useless for Mr. Gladstone to attempt to 
base historical conclusions upon the fact that 
Helena is always called " Argive Helen/' or to 
draw ethnological inferences from the circum- 
stances that Menelaos, Achilleus, and the rest 
of the Greek heroes, have yellow hair, while the 
Trojans are never so described. The Argos of 
the myth is not the city of Peloponnesos, though 
doubtless so construed even in Homer's time. 
It is " the bright land " where Zeus resides, and 
the epithet is applied to his wife Here and his 
daughter Helena, as well as to the dog of Odys- 
seus, who reappears with Sarameyas in the Veda. 
As for yellow hair, there is no evidence that 
273 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Greeks have ever commonly possessed it ; but 
no other colour would do for a solar hero, and 
It accordingly characterizes the entire company 
of them, wherever found, while for the Trojans, 
or children of night, it is not required. 

A wider acquaintance with the results which 
have been obtained during the past thirty years 
by the comparative study of languages and 
mythologies would have led Mr. Gladstone to 
reconsider many of his views concerning the 
Homeric poems, and might perhaps have led 
him to cut out half or two thirds of his book 
as hopelessly antiquated* The chapter on the 
divinities of Olympos would certainly have had 
to be rewritten, and the ridiculous theory of a 
primeval revelation abandoned. One can hardly 
preserve one's gravity when Mr. Gladstone de- 
rives Apollo from the Hebrew Messiah, and 
Athene from the Logos. To accredit Homer 
with an acquaintance with the doctrine of the 
Logos, which did not exist until the time of 
Philo, and did not receive its authorized Chris- 
tian form until the middle of the second century 
after Christ, is certainly a strange proceeding. 
We shall next perhaps be invited to believe that 
the authors of the Volsunga Saga obtained the 
conception of Sigurd from the "Thirty-Nine 
Articles.'* It is true that these deities, Athene 
and Apollo, are wiser, purer, and more digni- 
fied, on the whole 3 than any of the other divini- 
274 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

ties of the Homeric Olympos. They alone, as 
Mr. Gladstone truly observes, are never de- 
ceived or frustrated. For all Hellas, Apollo 
was the interpreter of futurity, and in the maid 
Athene we have perhaps the highest conception 
of deity to which the Greek mind had attained 
in the early times. In the Veda, Athene is 
nothing but the dawn ; but in the Greek my- 
thology, while the merely sensuous glories of 
daybreak are assigned to Eos, Athene becomes 
the impersonation of the illuminating and know- 
ledge-giving light of the sky. As the dawn, she 
is daughter of Zeus, the sky, and in mythic 
language springs from his forehead ; but, accord- 
ing to the Greek conception, this imagery signi- 
fies that she shares, more than any other deity, 
in the boundless wisdom of Zeus* The know- 
ledge of Apollo, on the other hand, is the pecu- 
liar privilege of the sun, who, from his lofty 
position sees everything that .takes place upon 
the earth. Even the secondary divinity Helios 
possesses this prerogative to a certain extent, 

Next to a Hebrew, Mr. Gladstone prefers a 
Phoenician ancestry for the Greek divinities, 
But the same lack of acquaintance with the old 
Aryan mythology vitiates all his conclusions. 
No doubt the Greek mythology is in some 
particulars tinged with Phoenician conceptions. 
Aphrodite was originally a purely Greek divinity, 
but in course of time she acquired some of the 
275 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

attributes of the Semitic Astarte, and was hardly 
improved by the change. Adonis is simply a 
Semitic divinity, imported into Greece. But the 
same cannot be proved of Poseidon ; l far less of 
Hermes, who is identical with the Vedic Sara- 
meyas, the rising wind, the son of Sarama the 
dawn, the lying, tricksome wind-god, who in- 
vented music, and conducts the souls of dead 
men to the house of Hades, even as his coun- 
terpart the Norse Odin rushes over the tree- 
tops leading the host of the departed. When 
one sees Iris, the messenger of Zeus, referred 
to a Hebrew original, because of Jehovah's 
promise to Noah, one is at a loss to understand 
the relationship between the two conceptions. 
Nothing could be more natural to the Greeks 
than to call the rainbow the messenger of the 
sky-god to earth-dwelling men ; to call it a token 
set in the sky by Jevohah, as the Hebrews did, 
was a very different thing. We may admit the 

1 I have no opinion as to the nationality of the Earth- 
shaker, and, regarding the etymology of his name, I believe 
we can hardly do better than acknowledge, with Mr. Cox, 
that it is unknown. It may well be doubted, however, whether 
much good is likely to come of comparisons between Posei- 
don, Dagon, Cannes, and Noah, or of distinctions between 
the children of Shem and the children of Ham. See Brown's 
Poseidon $ a Link between Semite, Hamite, and Aryan, 
London, 1872, a book which is open to several of the 
criticisms here directed against Mr. Gladstone's manner of 
theorizing. 

276 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

very close resemblance between the myth of 
Bellerophon and Anteia, and that of Joseph and 
Zuleikha ; but the fact that the Greek story is 
explicable from Aryan antecedents, while "the 
Hebrew story is isolated, might perhaps suggest 
the inference that the Hebrews were the bor- 
rowers, as they undoubtedly were in the case of 
the myth of Eden. Lastly, to conclude that 
Helios is an Eastern deity, because he reigns in 
the East over Thrinakia, is wholly unwarranted. 
Is not Helios pure Greek for the sun ? and where 
should his sacred island be placed, if not in the 
East? As for his oxen, which wrought such 
dire destruction to the comrades of Odysseus, 
and which seem to Mr. Gladstone so anoma- 
lous, they are those very same unhappy cattle, 
the clouds, which were stolen by the storm- 
demon Cacus and the wind-deity Hermes, and 
which furnished endless material for legends to 
the poets of the Veda. 

But the whole subject of comparative my- 
thology seems to be terra incognita to Mr. 
Gladstone. He pursues the even tenor of his 
way in utter disregard of Grimm, and Kuhn, 
and Breal, and Dasent, and Burnouf. He takes 
no note of the Rig- Veda, nor does he seem to 
realize that there was ever a time when the an- 
cestors of the Greeks and Hindus worshipped 
the same gods. Two or three times he cites 
Max Muller, but makes no use of the copious 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

data which might be gathered from him. The 
only work which seems really to have attracted 
his attention is M. Jacolliot's very discreditable 
performance called The Bible in India." Mr. 
Gladstone does not, indeed, unreservedly ap- 
prove of this book ; but neither does he appear 
to suspect that it is a disgraceful piece of char- 
latanry, written by a man ignorant of the very 
rudiments of the subject which he professes to 
handle* 

Mr. Gladstone is equally out of his depth 
when he comes to treat purely philological ques- 
tions* Of the science of philology, as based 
upon established laws of phonetic change, he 
seems to have no knowledge whatever. He 
seems to think that two words are sufficiently 
proved to be connected when they are seen to 
resemble each other in spelling or in sound. 
Thus he quotes approvingly a derivation of the 
name Themis from an assumed verb them, " to 
speak," whereas it is notoriously derived from 
riffrjfii, as statute comes ultimately from stare. 
His reference of hieros y " a priest," and geron> 
" an old man," to the same root, is utterly base- 
less ; tl^e one is the Sanskrit ishiras, (C a power- 
ful man," the other is the Sanskrit jaran y " an 
old man/* The list of words on pages 96100 
are disfigured by many such errors ; and, indeed, 
the whole purpose for which they are given 
shows how sadly Mr. Gladstone's philology is 
278 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

in arrears. The theory of Nlebuhr that the 
words common to Greek and Latin, mostly de- 
scriptive of peaceful occupations, are Pelasgian 
was serviceable enough in its day, but is now 
rendered wholly antiquated by the discovery 
that such words are Aryan, in the widest sense. 
The Pelasgian theory works very smoothly so 
long as we only compare the Greek with the 
Latin words, as, for instance, tpyov with ju- 
gum ; but when we add the English yoke and 
the Sanskrit yugam y it is evident that we have 
got far out of the range of the PelasgoL But 
what shall we say when we find Mr. Gladstone 
citing the Latin thalamus in support of this an- 
tiquated theory ? Doubtless the word thalamus 
is, or should be, significative of peaceful occu- 
pations ; but it is not a Latin word at all, except 
by adoption. One might as well cite the word 
ensemble to prove the original identity or kin- 
ship between English and French. 

When Mr. Gladstone, leaving the danger- 
ous ground of pure and applied philology, con- 
fines himself to illustrating the contents of the 
Homeric poems, he is always excellent. His 
chapter on the " Outer Geography. " of the 
Odyssey is exceedingly interesting ; showing as 
it does how much may be obtained from the 
patient and attentive study of even a single 
author. Mr. Gladstone's knowledge of the sur- 
face of the Iliad and Odyssey, so to speak, is 
279 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

extensive and accurate. It is when he attempts 
to penetrate beneath the surface and survey the 
treasures hidden in the bowels of* the earth, that 
he shows himself unprovided with the talisman 
of the wise dervise, which alone can unlock those 
mysteries. But modern philology is an exact- 
Ing science : to approach its higher problems 
requires an amount of preparation sufficient to 
terrify at the outset all but the boldest ; and 
a man who has had to regulate taxation, and 
make out financial statements, and lead a polit- 
ical party in a great nation, may well be excused 
for ignorance of philology. It is difficult enough 
for those who have little else to do but to pore 
over treatises on phonetics, and thumb their 
lexicons, to keep fully abreast with the latest 
views in linguistics. In matters of detail one 
can hardly ever broach a new hypothesis with- 
out misgivings lest somebody, in some weekly 
journal published in Germany, may just have 
anticipated and refuted it. Yet while Mr. Glad- 
stone may be excused for being unsound in 
philology, it is far less excusable that he should 
sit down to write a book about Homer, 
abounding in philological statements, without 
the slightest knowledge of what has been 
achieved in that science for several years past. 
In spite of all drawbacks, however, his book 
shows an abiding taste for scholarly pursuits, 
and therefore deserves a certain kind of praise. 



JUVENTUS MUNDI 

I hope though just now the idea savours 
of the ludicrous that the day may some time 
arrive when our Congressmen and Secretaries 
of the Treasury will spend their vacations in 
writing books about Greek antiquities or in 
Illustrating the meaning of Homeric phrases, 
j? 1870. 



VII 
THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

NO earnest student of human culture can 
as yet have forgotten or wholly out- 
lived the feeling of delight awakened 
by the first perusal of Max Muller's brilliant 
<c Essay on Comparative Mythology/' a 
work in which the scientific principles of myth 
interpretation, though not newly announced, 
were at least brought home to the reader with 
such an amount of fresh and striking concrete 
illustration as they had not before received. 
Yet it must have occurred to more than one 
reader that, while the analyses of myths con- 
tained in this noble essay are in the main sound 
in principle and correct in detail, nevertheless 
the author's theory of the genesis of myth is 
expressed, and most likely conceived, in a way 
that is /very suggestive of carelessness and fal- 
lacy*/ There are obvious reasons for doubt- 
ing whether the existence of mythology can be 
due to any f disease," abnormity, or hyper- 
trophy of metaphor in language; and the criti- 
psm at once arises, that with the myth-makers 
it was not so much the character of the expres- 
282 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

sion which originated the thought, as it was the 
thought which gave character to the expression. 
It is not that the early Aryans were myth-makers 
because their language abounded in metaphor ; 
it is that the Aryan mother-tongue abounded 
in metaphor because the men and women who 
spoke it were myth-makers. And they were 
myth-makers because they had nothing but the 
phenomena of human will and effort with which 
to compare objective phenomena. Therefore it 
was that they spoke of the sun as an unwearied 
voyager or a matchless archer, and classified 
inanimate no less than animate objects as mas- 
culine and feminine. Max Muller's way of 
stating his theory, both in this Essay and in 
his later Lectures, affords one among several 
instances of the curious manner in which he 
combines a marvellous penetration into the 
significance of details with a certain looseness 
of general conception. 1 The principles of philo- 

1 The expression that the Erinys, Saranyu, the Dawn, 
finds out the criminal, was originally quite free from mytho- 
logy ; // meant no more than that crime would be brought to 
light some day or other. It became mythological, however, 
as soon as the etymological meaning of Erinys was forgotten, 
and as soon as the Dawn, a portion of time, assumed the 
rank of a personal being." Science of Language, 6th edi- 
tion, iL 615. This paragraph, in which the italicizing is 
mine, contains Max Muller's theory in a nutshell. It seems 
to me wholly at variance with the facts of history. The facts 
concerning primitive culture which are to be cited in this 

283 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

logical Interpretation are an indispensable aid 
to us in detecting the hidden meaning of many 
a legend in which the powers of nature are re- 
presented in the guise of living and thinking 
persons ; but before we can get at the secret of 
the myth-making tendency itself, we must leave 
philology and enter upon a psychological study. 
We must inquire into the characteristics of that 
primitive style of thinking to which it seemed 
quite natural that the sun should be an un- 
erring archer, and the thundercloud a black 
demon or gigantic robber finding his richly 
merited doom at the hands of the indignant 
Lord of Light. 

Among recent treatises which have dealt with 
this interesting problem, we shall find it advan- 
tageous to give especial attention to Mr. Tylor's 
c< Primitive Culture," 1 one of the few erudite 

paper will show that the case is just the other way. Instead 
of the expression ** Erinys finds the criminal " being originally 
a metaphor, it was originally a literal statement of what was 
believed to be fact. The Dawn (not tf a portion of time," 
( !) but the rosy flush of the morning sky) was originally re- 
garded as a real person. Primitive men, strictly speaking, do 
not talk in metaphors ; they believe in the literal truth of 
their similes and personifications, from which, by survival in 
culture, our poetic metaphors are lineally descended. Homer's 
allusion to a rolling stone as eoW/x^os, or ee yearning " (to 
keep on rolling), is to us a mere figurative expression ; but 
to the savage it is the description of a feet. 

1 Primitive Culture: Researches into the Development 
84 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

works which are at once truly great and thor- 
oughly entertaining. The learning displayed in 
it would do credit to a German specialist, both 
for extent and for minuteness, while the orderly 
arrangement of the arguments and the elegant 
lucidity of the style are such as we are accus- 
tomed to expect from French essay-writers. 
And what is still more admirable is the way in 
which the enthusiasm characteristic of a genial 
and original speculator is tempered by the pa- 
tience and caution of a cool-headed critic. Pa- 
tience and caution are nowhere more needed 
than in writers who deal with mythology and 
with primitive religious ideas ; but these quali- 
ties are too seldom found in combination with 
the speculative boldness which is required when 
fresh theories are to be framed or new paths 
of investigation opened. The state of mind in 
which the explaining powers of a favourite 
theory are fondly contemplated is, to some ex- 
tent, antagonistic to the state of jmind in which 
facts are seen, with the eye of impartial criticism. 
In all their obstinate and uncompromising real- 
ity. To be able to preserve the balance between 
the two opposing tendencies is to give evidence 
of the most consummate scientific training. It is 
from the want of such a balance that the recent 
great work of Mr. Cox is at times so unsatis- 

of Mythology, Philosophy, Religion, Art, and Custom. 
By Edward B. Tylor. z vols. 8vo. London, 1871. 
- 1285 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

factory. It may, I fear, seem ill-natured to say 
so, but the eagerness with which Mr. Cox way- 
lays every available illustration of the physical 
theory of the origin of myths has now and then 
the curious effect of weakening the reader's con- 
viction of the soundness of the theory. For 
my own part, though by no means inclined to 
waver in adherence to a doctrine once adopted 
on good grounds, I never felt so much like 
rebelling against the mythologic supremacy of 
the Sun and the Dawn as when reading Mr. 
Cox's volumes. That Mr* Tylor, while defend- 
ing the same fundamental theory, awakens no 
such rebellious feelings, is due to his clear per- 
ception and realization of the fact that it is 
impossible to generalize in a single formula such 
many-sided correspondences as those which 
primitive poetry and philosophy have discerned 
between the life of man and the life of outward 
nature. Whoso goes roaming up and down the 
elfland of popular fancies, with sole intent to 
resolve each episode of myth into some answer- 
ing physical event, his only criterion being out- 
ward resemblance, cannot be trusted in his con- 
clusions, since wherever he turns for evidence 
he is sure to find something that can be made 
to serve as such. As Mr. Tylor observes, no 
household legend or nursery rhyme is safe from 
his hermeneutics. " Should he, for instance, 
demand as his property the nursery c Song of 
286 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

Sixpence/ his claim would be easily established, 
obviously the four-and-twenty blackbirds are 
the four-and-twenty hours, and the pie that 
holds them is the underlying earth coYered with 
the overarching sky, how true a touch of 
nature it is that when the pie is opened, that is, 
when day breaks, the birds begin to sing ; the 
King is the Sun, and his counting out his money 
is pouring out the sunshine, the golden shower 
of Danae; the Queen is the Moon, and her 
transparent honey the moonlight ; the Maid is 
the rosy-fingered * Dawn, who rises before the 
Sun, her master, and hangs out the clouds, his 
clothes, across the sky ; the particular black- 
bird, who so tragically ends the tale by snipping 
off her nose, is the hour of sunrise/* In all this 
interpretation there is no a priori improbability, 
save, perhaps, in its unbroken symmetry and 
completeness* That some points, at least, of 
the story are thus derived from antique inter- 
pretations of physical events, is in harmony 
with all that we know concerning nursery 
rhymes* In short, "the time-honoured rhyme 
really wants but one thing to prove it a sun 
myth, that one thing being a proof by some 
argument more valid than analogy." The char- 
acter of the argument which is lacking may be 
illustrated by a reference to the rhyme about 
Jack and Jill, explained some time since in the 
paper on " The Origins of Folk-Lore/* If the 
287 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

argument be thought valid which shows these 
ill-fated children to be the spots on the moon, 
it is because the proof consists, not in the ana- 
logy, which is in this case not especially obvious, 
but in the fact that in the Edda, and among 
ignorant Swedish peasants of our own day, the 
story of Jack and Jill is actually given as an 
explanation of the moon-spots. To the neglect 
of this distinction between what is plausible and 
what is supported by direct evidence, is due 
much of the crude speculation which encum- 
bers the study of myths* 

It is when Mr. Tylor merges the study of 
mythology into the wider inquiry into the char- 
acteristic features of the mode of thinking in 
which myths originated, that we can best ap- 
preciate the practical value of that union of 
speculative boldness and critical sobriety which 
everywhere distinguishes him. It is pleasant to 
meet with a writer who can treat of primitive 
religious ideas without losing his head over al- 
legory and symbolism, and who duly realizes 
the fact that a savage is not a rabbinical com- 
mentator, or a cabalist, or a Rosicrucian, but a 
plain man who draws conclusions like ourselves, 
though with feeble intelligence and scanty know- 
ledge. The mystic allegory with which such 
modern writers as Lord Bacon have invested 
the myths of antiquity is no part of their ori- 
ginal clothing, but is rather the late product of 
288 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

a style of reasoning from analog}' quite similar 
to that which we shall perceive to have guided 
the myth-makers in their primitive constructions. 
The myths and customs and beliefs which,, in 
an advanced stage of culture, seem meaning- 
less save when characterized by some quaintly 
wrought device of symbolic explanation, did 
not seem meaningless in the lower culture which 
gave birth to them. Myths, like words, survive 
their primitive meanings. In the early stage the 
myth is part and parcel of the current mode of 
philosophizing ; the explanation which it offers 
is, for the time, the natural one, the one which 
would most readily occur to any one thinking 
on the theme with which the myth is concerned. 
But by and by the mode of philosophizing has 
changed ; explanations which formerly seemed 
quite obvious no longer occur to any one, but 
the myth has acquired an independent substan- 
tive existence, and continues to be handed down 
from parents to children as something true, 
though no one can tell why it is true. Lastly, 
the myth itself gradually fades from remem- 
brance, often leaving behind it some utterly 
unintelligible custom or seemingly absurd su- 
perstitious notion. For example, to recur to 
an illustration already cited in a previous pa- 
per, it is still believed here and there by 
some venerable granny that it is wicked to kill 
robins ; but he who should attribute the belief 
289 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

to the old granny's refined sympathy with all 
sentient existence would be making one of the 
blunders which are always committed by those 
who reason a priori about historical matters 
without following the historical method. At an 
earlier date the superstition existed in the shape 
of a belief that the killing of a robin portends 
some calamity ; in a still earlier form the calam- 
ity is specified as death ; and again, still earlier, 
as death by lightning. Another step backward 
reveals that the dread sanctity of the robin is 
owing to the fact that he is the bird of Thor, 
the lightning god ; and finally we reach that 
primitive stage of philosophizing in which the 
lightning is explained as a red bird dropping 
from its beak a worm which cleaveth the rocks. 
Again, the belief that some harm is sure to 
come to him who saves the life of a drowning 
man is unintelligible until it is regarded as a 
case of survival in culture. In the older form of 
the superstition it is held that the rescuer will 
sooner or later be drowned himself; and thus 
we pass to the fetichistic interpretation of drown- 
ing as the seizing of the unfortunate person by 
the water-spirit or nixy, who is naturally angry 
at being deprived of his victim, and henceforth 
bears a special grudge against the bold mortal 
who has thus dared to frustrate him. 

The interpretation of the lightning as a red 
bird, and of drowning as the work of a smiling 
290 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

but treacherous fiend, are parts of that primi- 
tive philosophy of nature in which all forces ob- 
jectively existing are conceived as identical with 
the force subjectively known as volition. It is 
this philosophy, currently known as fetichism, 
but treated by Mr. Tylor under the somewhat 
more comprehensive name of cc animism/* which 
we must now consider in a few of Its most con- 
spicuous exemplifications. When we have pro- 
perly characterized some of the processes which 
the untrained mind habitually goes through, we 
shall have incidentally arrived at a fair solution 
of the genesis of mythology. 

Let us first note the ease with which the bar- 
baric or uncultivated mind reaches all manner 
of apparently fanciful conclusions through reck- 
less reasoning from analogy. It is through the 
operation of certain laws of ideal association that 
all human thinking, that of the highest as well 
as that of the lowest minds, is conducted : the 
discovery of the law of gravitation, as well as 
the invention of such a superstition as the Hand 
of Glory, is at bottom but a case of association 
of ideas. The difference between the scientific 
and the mythologic inference consists solely in 
the number of checks which in the former case 
combine to prevent any other than the true 
conclusion from being framed into a proposi- 
tion to which the mind assents. Countless ac- 
cumulated experiences have taught the modern 
291 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

that there are many associations of ideas which 
do not correspond to any actual connection of 
cause and effect in the world of phenomena; 
and he has learned accordingly to apply to his 
newly framed notions the rigid test of verifica- 
tion* Besides which the same accumulation of 
experiences has built up an organized structure 
of ideal associations into which only the less 
extravagant newly framed notions have any 
chance of fitting. The primitive man, or the 
modern savage who is to some extent his coun- 
terpart, must reason without the aid of these 
multifarious checks. That immense mass of 
associations which answer to what are called 
physical laws, and which in the mind of the civ- 
ilized modern have become almost organic, have 
not been formed in the mind of the savage ; nor 
h*as he learned the necessity of experimentally 
testing any of his newly framed notions, save 
perhaps a few of the commonest. Consequently 
there is nothing but superficial analogy to guide 
the course of his thought hither or thither, and 
the conclusions at which he arrives will be de- 
termined by associations of ideas occurring ap- 
parently at haphazard. Hence the quaint or 
grotesque fancies with which European and bar- 
baric folk-lore is filled, in the framing of which 
the myth-maker was but reasoning according to 
the best methods at his command. To this sim- 
plest class, in which the association of ideas is 
292 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

determined by mere analogy, belong such cases 
as that of the Zulu, who chews a piece of wood 
in order to soften the heart of the man with 
whom he is about to trade for cows, or the Hes- 
sian lad who " thinks he may escape the con- 
scription by carrying a baby-girl's cap in his 
pocket, a symbolic way of repudiating man- 
hood." 1 A similar style of thinking underlies 
the mediaeval necromancer's practice of making 
a waxen image of his enemy and shooting at it 
with arrows, in order to bring about the enemy's 
death ; as also the case of the magic rod, men- 
tioned in a previous paper, by means of which 
a sound thrashing can be administered to an 
absent foe through the medium of an old coat 
which is imagined to cover him. The principle 
involved here is one which is doubtless famil- 
iar to most children, and is closely akin to that 
which Irving so amusingly illustrates in his 
doughty general who struts through a field of 
cabbages or corn-stalks, smiting them to earth 
with his cane, and imagining himself a hero 
of chivalry conquering single-handed a host of 
caitiff ruffians. Of like origin are the fancies 
that the breaking of a mirror heralds a death in 
the family, probably because of the destruc- 
tion of the reflected human image; that the 
" hair of the dog that bit you " will prevent 
hydrophobia if laid upon the wound ; or that 
1 Tylor, op. at. i. 107. 
293 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the tears shed by human victims, sacrificed to 
mother earth, will bring down showers upon 
the land. Mr. Tylor cites Lord Chesterfield's 
remark " that the king had been ill, and that 
people generally expected the illness to be fatal, 
because the oldest lion in the Tower, about the 
king's age, had, just died. ' So wild and capri- 
cious is the human mind/ " observes the ele- 
gant letter-writer. But indeed, as Mr. Tylor 
justly remarks, "the thought was neither wild 
nor capricious ; it was simply such an argu- 
ment from analogy as the educated world has 
at length painfully learned to be worthless, but 
which, it is not too much to declare, would to 
this day carry considerable weight to the minds 
of four fifths of the human race." Upon such 
symbolism are based most of the practices of 
divination and the great pseudo-science of as- 
trology. ( It is an old story, that when two 
brothers were once taken ill together, Hippo- 
krates, the physician, concluded from the coin- 
cidence that they were twins, but Poseidonios, 
the astrologer, considered rather that they were 
born under the same constellation ; we may add 
that either argument would be thought reason- 
able by a savage." So when a Maori fortress is 
attacked, the besiegers and besieged look to see 
if Venus is near the moon. The moon repre- 
sents the fortress ; and if it appears below the 
companion planet, the besiegers will carry the 
294 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

day 5 otherwise they will be repulsed. Equally 
primitive and childlike was Rousseau's train 
of thought on the memorable day at Les Char- 
mettes when, being distressed with doubts as to 
the safety of his soul, he sought to determine 
the point by throwing a stone at a tree. cc Hit, 
sign of salvation ; miss, sign of damnation ! " 
The tree being a large one and very near at 
hand, the result of the experiment was reassur- 
ing, and the young philosopher walked away 
without further misgivings concerning this mo- 
mentous question. 1 

When the savage, whose highest intellectual 
efforts result only in speculations of this child- 
like character, is confronted with the phenomena 
of dreams, it is easy to see what he will make 
of them. His practical knowledge of psychology 
is too limited to admit of his distinguishing 
between the solidity of waking experience and 
what we may call the unsubstantialness of the 
dream. He may, indeed, have learned that the 
dream is not to be relied on for telling the 
truth ; the Zulu, for example, has even reached 
the perverse triumph of critical logic achieved 
by our own Aryan ancestors in the saying that 
c< dreams go by contraries/' But the Zulu has 
not learned, nor had the primeval Aryan Iearned 3 

1 Rousseau, Confessions, i. vi. For further illustration, 
see especially the note on the "doctrine of signatures,** 
supra, p. 75. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

to disregard the utterances of the dream as 
being purely subjective phenomena. To the 
mind as yet untouched by modern culture, the 
visions seen and the voices heard in sleep pos- 
sess as much objective reality as the gestures 
and shouts of waking hours. When the sav- 
age relates his dream, he tells how he saw cer- 
tain dogs, dead warriors, or demons last night, 
the implication being that the things seen were 
objects external to himself. As Mr. Spencer 
observes, a his rude language fails to state the 
difference between seeing and dreaming that he 
saw, doing and dreaming that he did. From 
this inadequacy of his language it not only re- 
sults that he cannot truly represent this differ- 
ence to others, but also that he cannot truly 
represent it to himself. Hence in the absence 
of an alternative interpretation, his belief, and 
that of those to whom he. tells his adventures, 
is that his other self has been away and came 
back when he awoke. And this belief, which 
we find among various existing savage tribes, 
we equally find in the traditions of the early 
civilized races." 1 

Let us consider, for a moment, this assump- 
tion of the other self, for upon this is based the 
great mass of crude inference which constitutes 
the primitive man's philosophy of nature. The 

1 Spencer, Recent Discussions in Science, etc., p. 36, 
The Origin of Animal Worship/* 
296 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

hypothesis of the other self, which serves to ac- 
count for the savage's wanderings during sleep 
in strange lands and among strange people, 
serves also to account for the presence in his 
dreams of parents, comrades, or enemies, known 
to be dead and buried* The other self of the 
dreamer meets and converses with the other 
selves of his dead brethren, joins with them in 
the hunt, or sits down with them to the wild 
cannibal -banquet. Thus arises the belief in an 
ever-present world of souls or ghosts, a belief 
which the entire experience of uncivilized man 
goes to strengthen and expand. The existence 
of some tribe or tribes of savages wholly desti- 
tute of religious belief has often been hastily 
asserted and as often called in question. But 
there is no question that, while many savages 
are unable to frame a conception so general as 
that of godhood, on the other hand no tribe 
has ever been found so low in the scale of in- 
telligence as not to have framed the concep- 
tion of ghosts or spiritual personalities, capable 
of being angered, propitiated, or conjured with. 
Indeed it is not improbable a priori that the 
original inference involved in the notion of the 
other self may be sufficiently simple and ob- 
vious to fall within the capacity of animals even 
less intelligent than uncivilized man. An au- 
thentic case is on record of a Skye terrier who, 
being accustomed to obtain favours from his 
297 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

master by sitting on his haunches, will also sit 
before his pet india-rubber ball placed on the 
chimney-piece, evidently beseeching it to jump 
down and play with him. 1 Such a fact as this 
is quite in harmony with Auguste Comte's sug- 
gestion that such intelligent animals as dogs, 
apes, and elephants may be capable of forming 
a few fetichistlc notions. The behaviour of the 
terrier here rests upon the assumption that the 
ball is open to the same sort of entreaty which 
prevails with the master; which implies, not 
that the wistful brute accredits the ball with a 
soul, but that in his mind the distinction be- 
tween life and inanimate existence has never 
been thoroughly established. Just this confu- 
sion between things living and things not living 
is present throughout the whole philosophy of 
fetichism; and the confusion between things 
seen and things dreamed, which suggests the 
notion of another self, belongs to this same 
twilight stage of intelligence in which primeval 
man has not yet clearly demonstrated his im- 
measurable superiority to the brutes. 2 

1 See Nature, vol. vi. p. 262, August i, 1872. The 
circumstances narrated are such as to exclude the supposition 
that the sitting up Is intended to attract the master's attention. 
The dog has frequently been seen trying to soften the heart 
of the ball, while observed unawares by his master. 

2 < t We would, however, commend to Mr. Fiske's atten- 
tion Mr. Mark Twain's dog, who * couldn't be depended 
on for a special providence,' as being nearer to the actual dog 

298 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

The conception of a soul or other self, capa- 
ble of going away from the body and returning 

of every -day life than is the Skye terrier mentioned by a 
certain correspondent of Nature, to whose letter Mr. Fiske 
refers. The terrier is held to have had * a few fetichistic 
notions,* because he was found standing upon his hind legs in 
front of a mantel-piece, upon which lay an india-rubber ball 
with which he wished to play, but which he could not reach, 
and which, says the letter-writer, he was evidently beseech- 
ing to come down and pky with him. We consider it more 
reasonable to suppose that a dog who had been drilled into a 
belief that standing upon his hind legs was very pleasing to 
Ms master, and who, therefore, had accustomed himself to 
stand on his hind legs whenever he desired anything, and 
whose usual way of getting what he desired was to induce 
somebody to get it for him, may have stood up in front of the 
mantel-piece rather from force of habit and eagerness of de- 
sire than because he had any fetichistic notions, or expected 
the india-rubber ball to listen to his supplications. We admit, 
however, to avoid polemical controversy, that in matter of 
religion the dog is capable of anything." The Nation, vol. 
xv. p. 284, October I, 1872. To be sure, I do not know 
for certain what was going on in the dog's mind ; and so, 
letting both explanations stand, I will only add another fact 
of similar import. ** The tendency in savages to imagine 
that natural objects and agencies are animated by spiritual or 
living essences is perhaps illustrated by a little fact which I 
once noticed : my dog, a full-grown and very sensible animal, 
was lying on the lawn during a hot and still day ; but at a 
little distance a slight breeze occasionally moved an open par- 
asol, which would have been wholly disregarded by the dog 
had any one stood near it. As it was, every time that the 
parasol slightly moved, the dog growled fiercely and barked. 
He must, I think, have reasoned to himself, in a rapid and 
299 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

to it, receives decisive confirmation from the 
phenomena of fainting, trance, catalepsy, and 
ecstasy, 1 which occur less rarely among savages, 
owing to their irregular mode of life, than 
among civilized men. " Further verification," 
observes Mr. Spencer, <c is afforded by every 
epileptic subject, into whose body, during the 
absence of the other self, some enemy has en- 
tered; for* how else does it happen that the 
other self on returning denies all knowledge 
of what his body has been doing ? And this 
supposition, that the body has been c possessed * 
by some other being, is confirmed by the phe- 

unconscious manner, that movement without any apparent 
cause indicated the presence of some strange living agent, and 
no stranger had a right to be on his territory." Darwin, 
Descent of Man, vol. i. p. 64. Without insisting upon all 
the details of this explanation, one may readily grant, I think, 
that in the dog, as in the savage, there is an undisturbed as- 
sociation between motion and a living motor agency ; and that 
out of a multitude of just such associations common to both, 
the savage, with his greater generalizing power, frames a 
truly fetichisdc conception. 

1 Note the fetichism wrapped up in the etymologies of 
these Greek words. Catalepsy, /caroX^ts, a seizing of the 
body by some spirit or demon, who holds it rigid. Ecstasy, 
/c<rracm, a displacement or removal of the soul from the 
body, into which the demon enters and causes strange laugh- 
ing, crying, or contortions. It is not metaphor, but the 
literal belief in a ghost- world, which has given rise to such 
words as these, and to such expressions as " a man beside 
himself 'or transported" 

300 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

nomena of somnambulism and Insanity," Still 
further, as Mr. Spencer points out, when we 
recollect that savages are very generally unwill- 
ing to have their portraits taken,, lest a portion 
of themselves should get carried off and be ex- 
posed to foul play, 1 we must readily admit that 

1 Something akin to the savage's belief in the animation 
of pictures may be seen in young children. I have often been 
asked by my three-year-old boy, whether the dog in a certain 
picture would bite him if he were to go near it ; and I can 
remember that, in my own childhood, when reading a book 
about insects, which had the formidable likeness of a spider 
stamped on the centre of the cover, I was always uneasy lest 
my finger should come in contact with the dreaded thing as 
I held the book. 

With the savage's unwillingness to have his portrait taken, 
lest it fall into the hands of some enemy who may injure 
him by conjuring with it, may be compared the reluctance 
which he often shows toward telling his name, or mentioning 
the name of his friend, or king, or tutelar ghost-deity. In 
fetichistic thought, the name is an entity mysteriously associ- 
ated with its owner, and it is not well to run the risk of its 
getting into hostile hands. Along with this caution goes the 
similarly originated fear that the person whose name is spoken 
may resent such meddling with his personality. For the latter 
reason the Dayak will not allude by name to the small-pox, but 
will call it <* the chief" or ff jungle-leaves ; " the Laplander 
speaks of the bear as the *< old man with the fur coat ; " in An- 
nam the tiger is called * grandfather iy or ee Lord ; " while in 
more civilized communities such sayings are current as f< talk of 
the Devil, and he will appear," with which we may also com- 
pare such expressions as ef Eumenides" or * gracious ones " 
for ^the Furies, and other like euphemisms. Indeed, the 
301 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

the weird reflection of the person and imitation 
of the gestures in rivers or still woodland pools 
will go far to intensify the belief in the other 
self. Less frequent but uniform confirmation 
is to be found in echoes, which in Europe 
within two centuries have been commonly in- 

maxim nil mortuis nisi bonum had most likely at one time a 
fetichistic flavour. 

In various islands of the Pacific, for both the reasons above 
specified, the name of the reigning chief is so rigorously 
**tabu," that common words and even syllables resembling 
that name in sound must be omitted from the language. 
In New Zealand, where a chief's name was Maripi, or 
** knife," it became necessary to call knives nekra ,- and in 
Tahiti, />/#, t star,*' had to be changed into />//#, and tui, 
** to strike/' became tiai, etc., because the king's name was 
Tu. Curious freaks are played with the languages of these 
islands by this ever-recurring necessity. Among the Kafirs 
the women have come to speak a different dialect from the 
men, because words resembling the names of their lords or 
male relatives are in like manner " tabu." The student of hu- 
man culture will trace among such primeval notions the origin 
of the Jew's unwillingness to pronounce the name of Jehovah ; 
and hence we may perhaps have before us the ultimate source 
of the horror with which the Hebraizing Puritan regards such 
forms of light swearing " Mon Dieu," etc. as are 
still tolerated on the continent of Europe, but have disap- 
peared from good society in Puritanic England and America. 
The reader interested in this group of ideas and customs may 
consult Tylor, Early History of Mankind, pp. 142, 363 ; 
Max Miiller, Science of Language* 6th edition, vol. ii. p. 
37 ; Mackay, Religious Development of the Greeks and 
Hebrews, vol. i. p. 146. 

302 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

terpreted as the voices of mocking fiends or 
wood-nymphs, and which the savage might well 
regard as the utterances of his other self. 

Chamisso's well-known tale of Peter Schle- 
mihl belongs to a widely diffused family of 
legends, which show that a man's shadow has 
been generally regarded not only as an entity, 
but as a sort of spiritual attendant of the body, 
which under certain circumstances it may per- 
manently forsake. It is in strict accordance with 
this idea that not only in the classic languages, 
but in various barbaric tongues, the word for 
cc shadow " expresses also the soul or other self. 
Tasmanians, Algonquins, Central - Americans, 
Abipones, Basutos, and Zulus are cited by Mr. 
Tylor as thus implicitly asserting the identity 
of the shadow with the ghost or phantasm seen 
in dreams ; the Basutos going so far as to 
think " that if a man walks on the river-bank, a 
crocodile may seize his shadow in the water and 
draw him in." Among the Algonquins a sick 
person is supposed to have his shadow or other 
self temporarily detached from his body, and 
the convalescent is at times c< reproached for 
exposing himself before his shadow was safely 
settled down in him." If the sick man has been 
plunged into stupor, it is because his other self 
has travelled away as far as the brink of the 
river of death, but not being allowed to cross 
has come back and reentered him* And acting 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

upon a similar notion the ailing Fiji will some- 
times lie down and raise a hue and cry for his 
soul to be brought back. Thus, continues Mr. 
Tylor, " in various countries the bringing back 
of lost souls becomes a regular part of the sor- 
cerer's or priest's profession." * On Aryan soil 
we.find the notion of a temporary departure of 
the soul surviving to a late date in the theory 
that the witch may attend the infernal Sabbath 
while her earthly tabernacle is quietly sleeping 
at home. The primeval conception reappears, 
clothed in bitterest sarcasm, in Dante's reference 
to his living contemporaries whose souls he met 
with in the vaults of hell, while their bodies 
were still walking about on the earth, inhabited 
by devils. 

The theory which identifies the soul with the 
shadow, and supposes the shadow to depart 
with the sickness and death of the body, -vpould 
seem liable to be attended with some difficul- 
ties in the way of verification, even to the dim 
intelligence of the savage. But the propriety of 
identifying soul and breath is borne out by all 
primeval experience. The breath, which really 
quits the body at its decease, has furnished the 
chief name for the soul, not only to the He- 

1 Tylor, Primitive Culture, \. 394. "The Zulus hold 
that a dead body can cast no shadow, because that appurte- 
nance departed from it at the close of life.* * Hardwick, Tra- 
ditions, Superstitions, and Folk-Lore, p. 123. 

304 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

brew, the Sanskrit, and the classic tongues; 
not only to German and English, where geist y 
and ghost, according to Max Miiller, have the 
meaning of u breath," and are akin to such 
words as gas, gust y and geyser ; but also to nu- 
merous barbaric languages. Among the natives 
of Nicaragua and California, in Java and in 
West Australia, the soul is described as the 
air or breeze which passes in and out through 
the nostrils and mouth ; and the Greenlanders, 
according to Cranz, reckon two separate souls, 
the breath and the shadow. " Among the Sem- 
inoles of Florida, when a woman died in child- 
birth, the infant was held over her face to re- 
ceive her parting spirit, and thus acquire strength 
and knowledge for its future, use, . . . Their 
state of mind is kept up to this day among Ty- 
rolese peasants, who can still fancy a good man's 
soul to issue from his mouth at death like a lit- 
tle white cloud." * It is kept up, too, in Lan- 
cashire, where a well-known witch died a few 
years since ; " but before she could ' shuffle off 
this mortal coil ' she must needs transfer her 
familiar spirit to some trusty successor. An in- 
timate acquaintance from a neighbouring town- 
ship was consequently sent for in all haste, and 
on her arrival was immediately closeted with 
her dying friend. What passed between them 
has never folly transpired, but it is confidently 
1 Tylor, of. at. L 391. 

305 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

affirmed that at the close of the Interview this 
associate received the witch's last breath into her 
mouth and with it her familiar spirit. The 
dreaded woman thus ceased to exist, but her 
powers for good or evil were transferred to her 
companion ; and on passing along the road from 
Burnley to Blackburn we can point out a farm- 
house at no great distance with whose thrifty 
matron no neighbouring farmer will yet dare to 
quarrel" 1 

Of the theory of embodiment there will be 
occasion to speak further on. At present let us 
not pass over the fact that the other self is not 
only conceived as shadow or breath, which can 
at times quit the body during life, but is also 
supposed to become temporarily embodied in 
the visible form of some bird or beast* In dis- 
cussing elsewhere the myth of Bishop Hatto, 
we saw that the soul is sometimes represented 
in the form of a rat or mouse ; and in treating 
of werewolves we noticed the belief that the 
spirits of dead ancestors, borne along in the 
night-wind, have taken on the semblance of 
howling dogs or wolves. cc Consistent with these 
quaint ideas are ceremonies in vogue in China 
of bringing home in a cock (live or artificial) 
the spirit of a man deceased in a distant place, 
and of enticing into a sick man's coat the de- 
1 Harland and Wilkinson, Lancashire Folk- Lore, 1867, 

p. 210. 

306 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

parting spirit which has already left his body 
and so conveying it back." * In Castren's great 
work on Finnish mythology, we find the story 
of the giant who could not be killed because 
he kept his soul hidden in a twelve-headed 
snake which he carried in a bag as he rode on 
horseback ; only when the secret was discovered 
and the snake carefully killed, did the giant 
yield up his life. In this Finnish legend we 
have one of the thousand phases of the story 
of the " Giant who had no Heart in his Body," 
but whose heart was concealed, for safe keep- 
ing, in a duck's egg, or in a pigeon, carefully 
disposed in some belfry at the world's end a 
million miles away, or encased in a well-nigh 
infinite series of Chinese boxes. 2 Since, in spite 
of all these precautions, the poor giant's heart 
invariably came to grief, we need not wonder at 
the Karen superstition that the soul is in dan- 
ger when it quits the body on its excursions, as 
exemplified in countless Indo-European stories 

1 Tylor, op. cit. ii. 139* 

3 In Russia the souls of the dead are supposed to be em- 
bodied in pigeons or crows. * Thus when the Deacon Theo- 
dore and his three schismatic brethren were burnt in 1681, 
the souls of the martyrs, as the * Old Believers ' affirm, ap- 
peared in the air as pigeons. In Volhynia dead children are 
supposed to come back in the spring to their native village 
under the semblance of swallows and other small birds, and 
to seek by soft twittering or song to console their sorrowing 
parents." Ralston, Songs of the Russian People, p. 118. 
307 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

of the accidental killing of the weird mouse or 
pigeon which embodies the wandering spirit. 
Conversely it is held that the detachment of 
the other self is fraught with danger to the self 
which remains. In the philosophy of " wraiths " 
and "fetches," the appearance of a double, like 
that which troubled Mistress Affery in her wak- 
ing dreams of Mr. Flintwinch, has been from 
time out of mind a signal of alarm. cc In New 
Zealand it is ominous to see the figure of an 
absent person ; for if it be shadowy and the face 
not visible, his death may erelong be expected, 
but if the face be seen he is dead already. A 
party of Maoris (one of whom told the story) 
were seated round a fire in the open air, when 
there appeared, seen only by two of them, the 
figure of a relative, left ill at . home ; they ex- 
claimed, the figure vanished, and on the return 
of the party it appeared that the sick man had 
died about the time of the vision." * The belief 
in wraiths has survived into modern times, and 
now and then appears in the records of that 
remnant of primeval philosophy known as 
a spiritualism," as, for example, in the case of 
the lady who " thought she saw her own father 
look in at the church window at the moment 
he was dying in his own house." 

The belief in the "death-fetch," like the 
doctrine which identifies soul with shadow, is 
1 Tylor, op. at. L 404. 
308 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

instructive as showing that in barbaric thought 
the other self is supposed to resemble the ma- 
terial self with which it has customarily been 
associated. In various savage superstitions the 
minute resemblance of soul to body is forcibly 
stated. The Australian, for instance, not con- 
tent with slaying his enemy, cuts off the right 
thumb of the corpse, so that the departed soul 
may be incapacitated from throwing a spear. 
Even the half-civilized Chinese prefer cruci- 
fixion to decapitation, that their souls may not 
wander headless about the spirit world. 1 Thus 
we see how far removed from the Christian 
doctrine of souls is the primeval theory of the 
soul or other self that figures in dreamland. So 
grossly materialistic is the primitive conception 
that the savage who cherishes it will bore holes 
in the coffin of his dead friend, so that the soul 
may again have a chance, if it likes, to revisit 
the body. To this day, among the peasants in 
some parts of Northern Europe, when Odin, 
the spectral hunter, rides by attended by his 
furious host, the windows in every sickroom 
are opened, in order that the soul, if it chooses 
to depart, may not be hindered from joining in 
the headlong chase. And so, adds Mr. Tylor, 
after the Indians of North America had spent 
a riotous night in singeing an unfortunate cap- 
tive to death with firebrands, they would howl 
1 Tylor, op. at. L 407. 
309 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

like the fiends they were, and beat the air with 
brushwood, to drive away the distressed and 
revengeful ghost. " With a kindlier feeling, the 
Congo negroes abstained for a whole year after 
a death from sweeping the house, lest the dust 
should injure the delicate substance of the 
ghost ; " and even now, " it remains a German 
peasant saying that it is wrong to slam a door, 
lest one should pinch a soul in it" 1 Dante's 
experience with the ghosts in hell and purga- 
tory, who were astonished at his weighing down 
the boat in which they were carried, is belied 
by the sweet German notion ** that the dead 
mother's coming back in the night to suckle 
the baby she has left on earth may be known 
by the hollow pressed down in the bed where 
she lay/' Almost universally ghosts, however 
impervious to thrust of sword or shot of pistol, 
can eat and drink like Squire Westerns, And 
lastly, we have the grotesque conception of souls 
sufficiently material to be killed over again, as 
In the case of the negro widows who, wishing to 
marry a second time, will go and duck them- 
selves in the pond, in order to drown the souls 
1 Tylor, op. tit. i. 410. In the next stage of survival 
this beHef will take the shape that it is wrong to slam a door, 
no reason being assigned ; and in the succeeding stage, when 
the child asks why it is naughty to slam a door, he will be 
told, because it is an evidence of bad temper. Thus do old- 
world fancies disappear before the inroads of the practical 
sense. 

310 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

of their departed husbands, which are supposed 
to cling about their necks ; while, according to 
the Fiji theory, the ghost of every dead warrior 
must go through a terrible fight with Samu 
and his brethren, in which, if he succeeds, he 
will enter Paradise, but if he fails he will be 
killed over again and finally eaten by the 
dreaded Samu and his unearthly company. 

From the conception of souls embodied in 
beast forms, as above illustrated, it is not a wide 
step to the conception of beast souls which, like 
human souls, survive the death of the tangible 
body. The widespread superstitions concerning 
werewolves and swan-maidens, and the hardly 
less general belief in metempsychosis, show that 
primitive culture has not arrived at the distinc- 
tion attained by modern philosophy- between 
the immortal man and the soulless brute. Still 
more direct evidence is furnished by sundry 
savage customs. The Kafir who has killed an 
elephant will cry that he did n't mean to do it, 
and, lest the elephant's soul should still seek 
vengeance, he will cut off and bury the trunk, 
so that the mighty beast may go crippled to 
the spirit land. In like manner the Samoyeds, 
after shooting a bear, will gather about the body 
offering excuses and laying the blame on the 
Russians ; and the American redskin will even 
put the pipe of peace into the dead animal's 
mouth, and beseech him to forgive the deed. 
311 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

In Assam it is believed that the ghosts of slain 
animals will become in the next world the pro- 
perty of the hunter who kills them ; and the 
Kamtchadales expressly declare that all animals, 
even flies and bugs, will live after death, a 
belief which, in our own day, has been indorsed 
on philosophical grounds by an eminent liv- 
ing naturalist. 1 The Greenlanders, too, give 
evidence of the same belief by supposing that 
when after an exhausting fever the patient 
comes up in unprecedented health and vigour, 
it is because he has lost his former soul and 
had it replaced by that of a young child or a 
reindeer, rtn a recent wbrk in which the crudest 
fancies of primeval savagery are thinly disguised 
in a jargon learned from the superficial reading 
of modern books of science, M. Figuier main- 
tains that human souls are for the most part the 
surviving souls of deceased animals ; in general, 
the souls of precocious musical children like 
Mozart come from nightingales, while the souls 
of great architects have passed into them from 
beavers, etc., etc? 

The practice of begging pardon of the animal 
one has just slain is in some parts of the world 
extended to the case of plants. When the Talein 
offers a prayer to the tree which he is about to 
cut down, it is obviously because he regards the 

1 Agassiz, Essay on Classification ', pp 9799. 

8 Figuier, The To-morrow of Death, p. 247. 

312 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

tree as endowed with a soul or ghost which in 
the next life may need to be propitiated. And 
the doctrine of transmigration distinctly includes 
plants along with animals among the future ex- 
istences into which the human soul may pass. 

As plants, like animals, manifest phenomena 
of life, though to a much less conspicuous de- 
gree, it is not incomprehensible that the savage 
should attribute souls to them. But the primi- 
tive process of anthropomorphization does not 
end here. Not only the horse and dog, the 
bamboo, and the oak-tree, but even lifeless ob- 
jects, such as the hatchet, or bow and arrows, 
or food and drink of the dead man, possess other 
selves which pass into the world of ghosts. Fijis 
and other contemporary savages, when ques- 
tioned, expressly declare that this is their belief. 
c< If an axe or a chisel is worn out or broken up, 
away flies its soul for the service of the gods." 
The Algonquins told Charlevoix that since 
hatchets and kettles have shadows, no less than 
men and women, it follows, of course, that these 
shadows (or souls) must pass along with human 
shadows (or souls) into the spirit land. In this 
we see how simple and consistent is the logic 
which guides the savage, and how inevitable is 
the genesis of the great mass of beliefs, to our 
minds so arbitrary and grotesque, which prevail 
throughout the barbaric world. However ab- 
surd the belief that pots and kettles have souls 
3*3 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

may seem to us, It is nevertheless the only 
belief which can be held consistently by the 
savage to whom pots and kettles, no less than 
human friends or enemies, may appear in his 
dreams ; who sees them followed by shadows as 
they are moved about ; who hears their voices, 
dull or ringing, when they are struck ; and who 
watches their doubles fantastically dancing in the 
water as they are carried across the stream. 1 To 
minds, even in civilized countries, which are 
unused to the severe training of science, no 
stronger evidence can be alleged than what i-s 
called " the evidence of the senses ; " for it is 
only long familiarity with science which teaches 
us that the evidence of the senses is trustworthy 
only in so far as it is correctly interpreted by rea- 
son. For the truth of his belief in the ghosts of 
men and beasts, trees and axes, the savage has 
undeniably the evidence of his senses which 
have so often seen, heard, and handled these 
other selves. 

The funeral ceremonies of uncultured races 
freshly illustrate this crude philosophy, and re- 
ceive fresh illustration from it. On the primi- 

1 Here, as usually, the doctrine of metempsychosis comes 
in to complete the proof. * c Mr. Darwin saw two Malay 
women in Keeling Island, who had a wooden spoon dressed 
in clothes like a doll ; this spoon had been carried to the grave 
of a dead man, and becoming inspired at full moon, in fact 
Junatic, it danced about convulsively like a table or a hat at a 
modern spmt-sfafffe." Tylor, op. tit. ii. 139. 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

tive belief in the ghostly survival of persons 
and objects rest the almost universal custom of 
sacrificing the wives, servants, horses, and dogs 
of the departed chief of the tribe, as well as of 
presenting at his shrine sacred offerings of food, 
ornaments, weapons, and money. Among the 
Kayans the slaves who are killed at their master's 
tomb are enjoined to take great care of their 
master's ghost, to wash and shampoo it, and to 
nurse it when sick. Other savages think that 
<c all whom they kill in this world shall attend 
them as slaves after death," and for this reason 
the thrifty Dayaks of Borneo until lately would 
not allow their young men to marry until they 
had acquired some posf-mortem property by pro- 
curing at least one human head. It is hardly 
necessary to do more than allude to the Fiji cus- 
tom of strangling all the wives of the deceased 
at his funeral, or to the equally well-known 
Hindu rite of suttee. Though, as Wilson has 
shown, the latter rite is not supported by any 
genuine Vedic authority, but only by a shame- 
less Brahmanic corruption of the sacred text, 
Mr. Tylor is nevertheless quite right in arguing 
that unless the horrible custom had received the 
sanction of a public opinion bequeathed from 
pre- Vedic times, the Brahmans would have had 
no motive for fraudulently reviving it ; and this 
opinion is virtually established by the fact of 
the prevalence of widow sacrifice among Gauls, 

3'$ 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

Scandinavians, Slavs, and other European Ar- 
yans. 1 Though under English rule the rite has 
been forcibly suppressed, yet the archaic senti- 
ments which so long maintained it are not yet 
extinct. Within the present year there has ap- 
peared in the newspapers a not improbable story 
of a beautiful and accomplished Hindu lady 
who, having become the wife of a wealthy Eng- 
lishman, and after living several years in Eng- 
land amid the influences of modern society, 
nevertheless went off and privately burned 
herself to death soon after her husband's de- 
cease. 

The reader who thinks it far-fetched to in- 
terpret funeral offerings of food, weapons, orna- 
ments, or money, on the theory of object souls, 
will probably suggest that such offerings may 
be mere memorials of affection or esteem for 
the dead man. Such, indeed, they have come to 
be in many countries after surviving the phase 
of culture in which they originated ; but there 
is ample evidence to show that at the outset 
they were presented in the belief that their 
ghosts would be eaten or otherwise employed 
by the ghost of the dead man. The stout club 
which is buried with the dead Fiji sends its soul 
along with him that he may be able to defend 
himself against the hostile ghosts which will lie 

p^ l t ^ I 4.14-4.22. 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

in ambush for him on the road to Mbulu, seek- 
ing to kill and eat him. Sometimes the club is 
afterwards removed from the grave as of no 
further use, since its ghost is all that the dead 
man needs. In like manner, " as the Greeks 
gave the dead man the obolus for Charon's toll, 
and the old Prussians furnished him with spend- 
ing money, to buy refreshment on his weary 
journey, so to this day German peasants bury 
a corpse with money in his mouth or hand," 
and this is also said to be one of the regular 
ceremonies of an Irish wake. Of similar pur- 
port were the funeral feasts and oblations of 
food in Greece and Italy, the " rice-cakes made 
with ghee " destined for the Hindu sojourning 
in Yama's kingdom, and the meat and gruel 
offered by the Chinaman to the manes of his 
ancestors. " Many travellers have described the 
imagination with which the Chinese make such 
offerings. It is that the spirits of the dead 
consume the impalpable essence of the food, 
leaving behind its coarse material substance, 
wherefore the dutiful sacrificers, having set out 
sumptuous feasts for ancestral souls, allow them 
a proper time to satisfy their appetite, and then 
fall to themselves/' 1 So in the Homeric sacri- 
fice to the gods, after the deity has smelled the 
sweet savour and consumed the curling steam 
1 Tylor, of. fit. I. 435, 446 ; iL 30, 36. 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

that rises ghost-like from the roasting viands, 
the assembled warriors devour the remains, 1 

Thus far the course of fetichistic thought 
which we have traced out, with Mr. Tylor's aid, 
is such as is not always obvious to the modern 
inquirer without considerable concrete illustra- 
tion. The remainder of the process, resulting 
in that systematic and complete anthropomor- 
phization of nature which has given rise to 
mythology, may be more succinctly described. 
Gathering together the conclusions already ob- 
tained, we find that daily or frequent experience 
of the phenomena of shadows and dreams has 
combined with less frequent experience of the 
phenomena of trance, ecstasy, and insanity, to 
generate in the mind of uncultured man the 
notion of a twofold existence appertaining alike 
to all animate or inanimate objects : as all alike 
possess material bodies, so all alike possess 
ghosts or souls. Now when the theory of ob- 
ject souls is expanded into a general doctrine 
of spirits, the philosophic scheme of animism is 
completed. Once habituated to the conception 
of souls of knives and tobacco pipes passing 
to the land of ghosts, the savage cannot avoid 
carrying the interpretation still further, so that 
wind and water, fire and storm, are accredited 
with indwelling spirits akin by nature to the soul 

1 According to the Karens, blindness occurs when the soul 
gfthe eye Is eaten by demons. Id. ii. 353. 

318 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

which Inhabits the human frame. That the 
mighty spirit or demon by whose impelling will 
the trees are rooted up and the storm-clouds 
driven across the sky should resemble a freed 
human soul, is a natural inference, since uncul- 
tured man has not attained to the conception of 
physical force acting in accordance with uniform 
methods, and hence all events are to his mind 
the manifestations of capricious volition. If the 
fire burns down his hut, it is because the fire is 
a person with a soul, and is angry with him, and 
needs to be coaxed into a kindlier mood by 
means of prayer or sacrifice. Thus the savage 
has a priori no alternative but to regard fire- 
soul as something akin to human-soul ; and in 
point of fact we find that savage philosophy 
makes no distinction between the human ghost 
and the elemental demon or deity* This is suf- 
ficiently proved by the universal prevalence of 
the worship of ancestors. The essential princi- 
ple of manes worship is that the tribal chief or 
patriarch, who has governed the community 
iduring life, continues also to govern it after 
death, assisting it in its warfare with hostile 
tribes, rewarding brave warriors, and punishing 
traitors and cowards* Thus from the concep- 
tion of the living king we pass to the notion of 
what Mr. Spencer calls " the god-king," and 
thence to the rudimentary notion of deity. 
Among such higher savages as the Zulus, the 

3*9 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

doctrine of divine ancestors has been devel- 
oped to the extent of recognizing a first ances- 
tor, the Great Father, Unkukmkulu, who made 
the world* But in the stratum of savage thought 
in which barbaric or Aryan folk-lore is for the 
most part based, we find no such exalted spec- 
ulation. The ancestors of the rude Veddas and 
of the Guinea negroes, the Hindu pitris (patres, 
" fathers "), and the Roman manes have become 
elemental deities which send rain or sunshine, 
health or sickness, plenty or famine, and to 
which their living offspring appeal for guidance 
amid the vicissitudes of life. 1 The theory of 
embodiment, already alluded" to, shows how 
thoroughly the demons which cause disease are 
identified with human and object souls. In 
Australasia it is a dead man's ghost which creeps 

1 The following citation is interesting as an illustration of 
the directness of descent from heathen manes- worship to 
Christian saint-worship : ff It is well known that Romulus, 
mindful of his own adventurous infancy, became after death 
a Roman deity, propitious to the health and safety of young 
children, so that nurses and mothers would carry sickly in- 
fants to present them in his little round temple at the foot 
of the Palatine. In after ages the temple was replaced by the 
church of St. Theodoras, and there Dr. Conyers Middle- 
ton, who drew public attention to its curious history, used to 
look in and see ten or a dozen women, each with a sick 
child in her lap, sitting in silent reverence before the altar of 
the saint. The ceremony of blessing children, especially 
after vaccination, may still be seen there on Thursday morn- 
ings." Op. dt. ii. in. 

320 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

up into the liver of the impious wretch who has 
ventured to pronounce his name; while con- 
versely in the well-known European theory of 
demoniacal possession, it is a fairy from elfland, 
or an imp from hell, which has entered the 
body of the sufferer. In the close kinship, more- 
over, between disease possession and oracle pos- 
session, where the body of the Pythia, or the 
medicine-man, is placed under the direct control 
of some great deity, 1 we may see how by insen- 
sible transitions the conception of the human 
ghost passes into the conception of the spiritual 
numen, or divinity. 

To pursue this line of inquiry through the 
countless nymphs and dryads and nixies of the 
higher nature-worship up to the Olympian 
divinities of classic polytheism, would be to en- 
ter upon the history of religious belief, and in 
so doing to lose sight of our present purpose, 

1 Want of space prevents me from remarking at length, 
npon Mr. Tylor's admirable treatment of the phenomena of 
oracular inspiration. Attention should be called, however, 
to the brilliant explanation of the importance accorded by all 
religions to the rite of fasting. Prolonged abstinence from 
food tends to bring on a mental state which is favourable to 
visions. The savage priest or medicine-man qualifies himself 
for the performance of his duties by fasting, and where this 
is not sufficient, often uses intoxicating drugs ; whence the 
sacredness of the hasheesh, as also of the Vedic soma-juice* 
The practice of fasting among civilized peoples is an instance 
of survival. 

321 



MYTHS AND MYTH-MAKERS 

which has merely been to show by what mental 
process the myth-maker can speak of natural 
objects in language which implies that they are 
animated persons. Brief as our account of this 
process has been, I believe that enough has 
been said, not only to reveal the inadequacy of 
purely philological solutions (like those con- 
tained in Max M filler's famous Essay) to ex- 
plain the growth of myths, but also to exhibit 
the vast importance for this purpose of the kind 
of psychological inquiry into the mental habits 
of savages which Mr. Tylor has so ably con- 
ducted. Indeed, however lacking we may still 
be in points of detail, I think we have already 
reached a very satisfactory explanation of the 
genesis of mythology. Since the essential char- 
acteristic of a myth is that it is an attempt to 
explain some natural phenomenon by endowing 
with human feelings and capacities the senseless 
factors in the phenomenon, and since it has 
here been shown how uncultured man, by the 
best use he can make of his rude common sense, 
must inevitably come, and has invariably come, 
to regard all objects as endowed with souls, and 
all nature as peopled with supra-human entities 
shaped after the general pattern of the human 
soul, I am inclined to suspect that we have 
got very near to the root of the whole matter. 
We can certainly find no difficulty in seeing 
why a waterspout should be described in the 
322 



THE PRIMEVAL GHOST-WORLD 

Arabian Nights " as a living demon : " The 
sea became troubled before them, and there 
arose from it a black pillar, ascending towards 
the sky, and approaching the meadow, . . . and 
behold it was a Jinni, of gigantic stature/* We 
can see why the Moslem camel-driver should 
find it most natural to regard the whirling 
simoom as a malignant Jinni ; we may under- 
stand how it is that the Persian sees in bodily 
shape the scarlet fever as " a blushing maid with 
locks of flame and cheeks all rosy red ; " and 
we need not consider it strange that the pri- 
meval Aryan should have regarded the sun as 
a voyager, a climber, or an archer, and the 
clouds as cows driven by the wind-god Hermes 
to their milking. The identification of William 
Tell with the sun becomes thoroughly intelli- 
gible ; nor can we be longer surprised at the con- 
ception of the howling night-wind as a ravenous 
wolf. When pots and kettles are thought to 
have souls that live hereafter, there is no diffi- 
culty in understanding how the blue sky can 
have been regarded as the sire of gods and men. 
And thus, as the elves and bogarts of popular 
lore are in many cases descended from ancient 
divinities of Olympos and Valhalla, so these in 
turn must acknowledge their ancestors in the 
shadowy denizens of the primeval ghost-world 

August, 1872. 

323 



NOTE 

THE following are some of the modern works most likely 
to be of use to the reader who is interested in the legend of 
William Tell. 

HISELY, J. J. Dissertatdo historica inauguralis de Gulielmo 
Tellio, etc. Groningae, 1824. 

IDELER, J. L. Die Sage von dem Schuss des Tell. Ber- 
lin, 1836. 

HAUSSER, L. Die Sage vom Tell aufs Neue kritisch un- 
tersucht. Heidelberg, 1840. 

HISELY, J. J. Recherches critiques sur 1'histoire de Guil- 
laume Tell. Lausanne, 1843. 

LIEBENAU, H. Die Tell-Sage zu dem Jahre 1230 his- 
torisch nach neuesten Quellen. Aarau, 1864. 

VISCHER, W. Die Sage von der Befreiung der Waldstatte, 
etc. Nebst einer Beilage : das alteste Tellenschauspiel. 
Leipzig, 1867. 

BORDIER, H. L. Le Grutli et Guillaume Tell, on defense 
de la tradition vulgaire sur les origines de la confedera- 
tion suisse. Geneve et Bale, I 869. 

The same. La querelle sur les traditions concernant 1'ori- 
gine de la confederation suisse. Geneve et Bale, 1 869. 

RJLLIET, A. Les origines de la confederation suisse : his- 
toire et legende. z e ed., revue et corrigee. Geneve 
et Bale, 1869. 

The same. Lettre a M. Henri Bordier a propos de sa 
defense de la tradition vulgaire sur les origines de la 
confederation suisse. Geneve et Bale, 1869. 

HUNGERBUHLER, H. Etude critique sur les traditions re- 
latives aux origines de la confederation suisse. Geneve 
et Bale, 1869. 



NOTE 

MEYER, KARL. Die Tellsage. [In Bartsdh, Germanis- 
tische Studien, L 159-170,] Wien, 1872. 

See, also, the articles by M. Scherer, in Le Temps, 18 
Feb., 1868 ; by M. Reuss, in the Revue critique d* histoire, 
1868 ; by M. de Wiss, in the Journal de Geneve, 7 July, 
1868 ; also Revue critique, 17 July, 1869 ; Journal de 
Geneve, 24 Oct., 1868 ; Gazette de Lausanne, feuilleton 
litteraire, 25 Nov., 1868, t Les engines de la confederation 
siiisse/' par M. Secretan ; Edinburgh Review, Jan., 1869, 
The Legend of TeH and Rutli." 



INDEX 



INDEX 



ABGOTT, significance of the word, 
142.. 

Achaians, In the Homeric poems, 
24,3 5 in the historic period, 24.3. 

Achilleis, Crete's theory of, 253. 

Achilleus, Greek form of the San- 
skrit Aharyu, 2.7, 16411. 5 his 
spear a solar weapon, 32. ; as a 
sun-myth, 33, 152,, 267,2-72,; 
the Wrath of, considered as a 
structural part of the Iliad, 252, 
256 ; not conceived of by Homer 
as an ordinary mortal, 2,60 $ his 
part in the Iliad, 2,61, 2,62,5 
known in Aryana-vaedjo, 263 ; 
his parallel in the Rig- Veda, 2.65. 

Adeva, 164. 

Aditi, in the Rig-Veda, 142., 149. 

Adonis, pierced by winter as a boar's 
tusk, 33 $ a Semitic divinity, 2,76. 

./Esop's fables, La Fontaine *s bor- 
rowed from, 8. 

Agamemnon, his part in the Iliad 
structurally considered, 2,53-2,55 5 
compared with Charlemagne, 
270-2,70-. _ 

Agassiz, Louis, on the belief that 

animals will live after death, in 
Essay on ClassJJjcation t 312.. 

Agni, as patron of marriage, 88 ; 
contradiction in the Aryan con- 
ception of, 149. 

Ahana, the Sanskrit form of the 
Greek Athene, 2,6. 

Aharyu, Sanskrit form of the Greek 
Achilleus, 2-7, i64n. 5 in the 
Rig-Veda solar myth, 265. 

Ahi, a personification of the storm- 
cloud, 78, 155, l6oj -charac- 



teristics of, retained by the Devil, 
168. 

Ahmed, arrow of, 58 5 fairy pavil- 
ion of, 67. 

Ahriman, as represented in the 
Zendavesta, 164, 165 ; how re- 
lated to Satan, 165167. 

Ahuramazda in the Zendavesta, 165. 

Aias not conceived of by Homer as 
an ordinary mortal, 261. 

Aimoin, on the Prankish explana- 
tion of the word JDaras, in D 
Gestrs Francorunt) 97. 

Aineias, as the sun, 151 ; not con- 
ceived of by Homer as an ordinary 
mortal, 2,61. 

Aladdin, ring of, 60 ; and the roc*s 
egg, 68. 

Aleian land as the sky, 67. 

Alexandrian library, burning of by 
Omar, an iintrustworthy tradition, 
20. 

Alexikakos, epithet of Herakles, 

159- . 

Algonquin-Lenape have partial dis- 
tinction between animate and in- 
animate in their language, 24. n. 

Allegorical interpretation of myths 
inadequate, 28, 288. 

Altdorf, TelTs lime-tree at, a. 

Ambrosia, 86. 

American myths, 4062,15, a*9 ; 
their resemblance to Aryan myths, 
206, 2-135 absence of a certain 
class of dawn-myths in, a 1 3-- 
0-15. 

Amrita or water of life, 86. 

Analogical reasoning among barbari- 
ans, 291 j examples of, 293. 



329, 



INDEX 



Anaxagoras, feis idea of the moon, 25. 

Ancestor - worsMp, connected with 
the feeling of metempsychosis, 
102, 1 06 5 the oldest systema- 
tized form of feticMstic religion, 
102. ; among the Hindus, loan. ; 
in China, 103 ; a portion of Brah- 
manism, 103 ; in the Vedic reli- 
gion, 103 ; rudimentary notion 
of deity developed from, 319; be- 
came worship of elemental deities, 
320. 

Angels, related to the Valkyries, the 
Apsaras, and the Houris, 139. 

Animals, supposed by savages to have 
souls, 3x15 instances of the belief, 
311, 312; belief that they will 
live after death, 312. 

Animate and inanimate in primitive 
philosophy, 24, 298. 

Animism and myth-making, 291, 

318- 
Anro-mainyas in the Zendavesta, 

164. 
Antigone in the Oidipous-myth, 

X . 55 - , 
Antiquity of man, 238. 

Antwerp, origin and legend of the 
name, 98. 

Aphrodite, as the moon in ancient 
mythology, 25 ; as Ursula of Ger- 
man mythology, 38 ; Hephaistos 
and, 88 n. ; in pre-Homeric, 
Homeric, and post-Homeric times, 
2,56, 257 ; a Greek divinity with 
attributes of the Semitic Astarte, 
275. 

Apollo, and Laomedoe, 32 5 and his 
lyre, classed among wind-myths, 
44 ; and his cattle, 47 5 derived 
by Gladstone from the Hebrew 
Messiah, 0-74; and Athene, the 
highest types of divinity among 
the Greeks, 2,74, 275. 

Apsaras, the clouds so called in San- 
skrit, 131 ; identical with the 
Valkyries, 1395 related to the 
Mussulman Houris, 139. 

Arabian Nights, the Jinni's soul in, 



14 n. ; Hassan of El-Basrah in, 
17 n. ; feather dresses in, 135 n. 5 
Queen Labe in, 151 n. ; water- 
spout as demon in, 32,2. 

Argives, in the Homeric poems, 
243 5 in the historic period, 243. 

Argo and the Symplegades, 73. 

Argonauts, the myth of, 1 80. 

Argos, the, of the Iliad-myth, 273. 

Aristotle on the date of the Homeric 
poems, 244. 

Arkadians, etymologically ** the 
children of light," 100. 

Arktoi, the Greek name of the con- 
stellation Great Bear, 99. 

Armida's gardens, 41. 

Artemis, in ancient mythology, 25 5 
as Ursula in German mythology, 

3 8 -' 
jdryana Valdjo^ a projected work, 

1 66 n. 

Aryan folk-lore, correspondence in, 
18,19. 

Aryan immigration into Europe, 
266. 

Aryan language, has been partly re- 
constructed, 2375 its stage of de- 
velopment at time of break-up of 
tribal communities, 237. 

Aryans, Tell legend known to, while 
in Central Asia, 7 5 their first 
conception of a Divine Power 
suggested by the Sun, 147 ; their 
earliest religion not a monotheism, 
147, 148 5 their conception of the 
gods, vague and unsystematized, 
148-150 ; their personifications 
and conceptions of the Sun, 149 
156 ; as myth-makers, 283. 

Ash, as a lightning-tree, 74 ; ety- 
mology of, connects it with spear 
and arrow, 75 n. ; therapeutic 
properties of, 83 ; avoidance of, 
by snakes, 83 ; first man made 
of, in Norse mythology, 88 5 
as a love-charm, 89 n. 

Asmodeus and the scharmr, 58. 

Ass, story of the enchanted, 138. 

Association of ideas variously illus* 



33 



INDEX 



trated in scientific and in barbaric 

thought, 291. 

Astarte as rising from the sea, 33. 
Astrology based on primitive analogy, 

294. 

Astyages, a mythical creation, 
Asuras churning the ocean, 85. 
Asvins, American parallel of, aim. 
Atavism explained in the Middle 

Ages as diabolical metamorphosis, 

115, 116. 
Athene, the Greek form of the 

Sanskrit Ahana, 26 ; derived by 

Gladstone from the Logos, 274 5 

and Apollo, the highest types of 

deity among the Greeks, 274, 

275. 
Athenians, personification of the sky 

by, 24 ; personification of the 

moon by, 25. 
Attic dramatists and dawn-myths, 

214. 
Austria, Duke of, and the rebellion 

of the Swiss, 2. 
Australian idea of departed souls, 

309. 
Autolykos, meaning of the word, 

97- 

Auvergne, werewolf case in, 124. 
Aymar, Jacques, 51, 54. 
Azidahaka, 15411. 

Baba Abdallah, ointment of, 58, 79. 

Babel, real and false etymology of, 
98 n. 

Bacon, Francis, Lord, his allegorical 
interpretation of myths, 288. 

Baga, of the Cuneiform Inscriptions, 
141., 

Bagaios, epithet of Zeus, 141. 

Balder, skin by winter as a sprig of 
mistletoe, 34. 

Banier, Abb, his false theory of the 
character of myths, 20. 

Barbaric languages, have no com- 
mon ancestor, 201, 203 j neither 
widespread nor durable, 202. 

Barbarossa, Frederic, his sleep as a 
winter myth, 35, 272. 



Baring-Gould, Sabine, on the belief 
in werewolves, 96 5 on homicidal 
insanity, no; his reduction of 
legends to story-roots, 156 n. ; 
his cok of Werevud've^ on 
thunder and snow-myths, 65 n. ; 
on the Hindu storm-wind, 106 5 
on cannibalism, 1 1 ii 14 ; on 
the significance of the word Leick- 
nam t 138 n. 5 his Curious Myths 
of the Middle Ag&s,^ on supersti- 
tions, 23 ; on winter-myths, 3 5 n. 5 
on legend of Tannhauser, 39 ; on 
story of Aymar, 545 on light- 
ning as serpents, 70 n. ; on story 
of Melusina, 132 n. ; on swan- 
maidens, 222 n. ; his Legends of 
the Patriarchs and Prophets, on 
building of Solomon's Temple, 
59 n. ; on deluge-myths, 206 ; 
his Silver Store,, on the luck- 
flower, 56. 

Bazra, meaning of the word, 97, 

Beauty and the Beast, the story of, 
134 n. 

Bedivere, Sir, his brand Excalibur a 
solar weapon, 32. 

Bedreddin Hassan, purse of, 89. 

Belisarius, story of his blindness an 
untrustworthy tradition, 19. 

Bellerophon, as the sun in ancient 
mythology, 25, 1 50 ; arrows of, 
31, 78, 79 5 in the Aleian knd, 
67 j and Anteia, myth of, and 
that of Joseph and Zuleikha, re- 
semblance between, 277. 

Benaiah and the schamir, 58. 

Berserkers, our substitutes for, 108 5 
the madness of, 108, 109, 122. 

Beth Gellert, shown as the grave of 
Llewellyn's dog, 9 5 name de- 
rived from St. Celert, 9 n. 

Bhaga, in Old Aryan, 141 ; the 
Aryan conception of, 141, 149. 

Bible, the story of the serpent in, 
166 ; Satan in, 166, 167, 

Birds, as bearers of rock-splitting 
talismans, 59, 60, 69 j as clouds, 
68. 



331 



INDEX 



Bkck, W. H. L, bis Hottentot 
Fables and Tales, on the story 
of the Leopard and the Ram, 
lyyn. 5 on moon-myths, 219; 
on the werewolf-myth, 22.3 n. ; 
on cannibals, 228. 

Blue-Beard and lightning - myths, 
Si n. 

Boabdil, King, his sleep a winter- 
myth, 35. 

Bog, the Slavonic, 141-145. 

Bogie, the origin of, 141-143. 

Boots, the crafty, 12; as a wind- 
myth, 48 ; who ate a Match with 
the Troll, story of, 1 77. 

Bordier, H. L., in Tell bibliography, 

3*S 

Brahman and goat, story of, 16. 

Breal, Michel, prefatory note on, 
vii 5 on dogs as psychopomps, 
47 5 his Her cult et Coats, 150 n,, 
157. ^ 

Breath, identified with soul, 304. 

Brebeuf^ Jean de, and Iroquois super- 
stitions, 212. 

Bridge of the Dead, myth of, 205. 

Brinton, D. G., his Myths of the 
Ne'W World, on fire-myth of 
Sioux Indians, 84 ; on American 
myths, 206-214 j on Carib light- 
ning-myth, 229 n. 

Briseis, Greek form of the Sanskrit 
Brisaya, 27 ; her parallel in the 
Rig-Veda, 2-65. 

Brown, Robert, his Poseidon, 276 n. ; 
no Polyphemos's eye, 72 n. 

Browning, Robert, his Pied Piper 
of Hamelin, 42. 

Brunehault, Bnmhild or Brynhild 
possibly drawn from, 2-72. 

Brynhild, 180 ; and Sigurd, a solar 
myth, 181 ; how far a personifi- 
cation, 272. 

Buckle, H. T., on the Devil, in 
History of Civilisation, 169 n. 

Bug-a-boo, the origin of, 141-143. 

Bugbear, the origin of, 141-143. 

Bunsen, C. K. J., Philosophy of 
Universal History , 97. i 



Burnouf, Eugene, Ms 

Parana, on Sanskrit myth-tellers, 
72 n. 5 on the India legend, 
161 n. 

Byrsa, Greek word for hide, con- 
founded with Bazra, 97. 

Cacus, Hercules and, explained as a 
sun-myth, 157164; the name, 
corrupted from Caechis, 159 ; a 
kinsman of Orthros and KLerberos, 
1 60. 

Caddo, no distinction between ani- 
mate and inanimate in language 
of, 24 n. 

CaeciuSj the original form of Cacus, 

*59- 
Cain as pkced in the moon by Dante, 

36. 
Calender, one-eyed, tale of, founded 

on lightning-myth, 8x* 
Callaway, Henry, his Zulu Nursery 

Tales, on the chark, 85 n. ; on 

cannibals, 224, 227, 228. 
Campbell, Lord Archibald, on Trolls, 

hi Tales of the West Highlands, 

176 n. 
Cannibalism, cases of, in modern 

civilized communities, 1 1 i-i 1 5. 
Cannibals of Zulu legends, origin of, 

224 ; myths of, 225. 
Captain of the Phantom Ship, place 

of the story among myths, 36. 
Cardinal points, primitive worship ofl 

217 n. 

Carib lightnmg-myth, 229. 
Carlovingian romance compared with 

Iliad-myth, 269272. 
arvara, Sanskrit form of the Greek 

Kerberos, 27, 168. 
Oaseburg, case of werewolf trans- 
formation near, 123. 
Cassim Baba, 57. 
Castren, M. A., found Tell legend 

in Finland, 6 j on the soul as 

embodied in animals, 307, 
Catequil, Peru thunder-god, 89 n. 
Cat-women, 125 n. 
Catalepsy, fetichism and, 300. 



33 2 



INDEX 



Catalogue of Ships, the arrangement 

of, 248. 
Cattle, of Hercules, 157, 1605 as 

clouds, 1 6 1, 1 80. 
Celestinus and the Miller's Horse, 

the tale of, 1 69 n. 
Ceylon, moon-myth of, 218. 
Chalons, the cannibalistic tailor of, 

in. 
Chamisso, Adelbert von, his Peter 

Schlemihl, 303. 
Changelings, the belief in, was an 

attempt to explain the obscure 

phenomena of mental disease, 

117-119. 
Chapiel, La Doctrine des Signatures, 

75- 

Chans in the Homeric poems and 
later, 256, 2,57. 

Charites, the, 2,57. 

Chark, description of, 84 j is still in 
use, 85. 

Charlemagne of romance, the, 269 
272. 

Charon*s ferry-boat as a cloud, in 
primitive Aryan lore, 66. 

Chateau Vert, corrupted into Shot- 
over, 98. 

Chaucer, Geoffrey, tales of, adopted 
from Boccaccio, 8 ; his myth of 
the Man hi the Moon, 36. 

Cherokee have partial distinction be- 
tween animate and inanimate in 
their language, 24 n. 

Chesterfield, P. D. Stanhope, Lord, 
his remark on the capriciousness 
of the human mind, 2.94. 

Chimaira, relationship of, 155. 

Chinese, their version of the GeUert 
story, 9 ; their description of the 
roc, 68 n. ; their idea of departed 
souls, 306, 309. 

Chios, its claim to be the birthplace 
of Homer, 241 ; home of Ho- 
merids, 247. 

Choctaws, no distinction between 
animate and inanimate in language 
of, 24 n. 

'Cinderella, 177. 



Clerk and the Image, finite of Ag. 

79- 

Cloud-myths appear in all countries, 
205. 

Clouds, as cows in ancient mythology, 
25 ; as sheep, 2-5 ; as swan- 
maidens, 2.5, 131, 139; as moun- 
tains or rocks, 2,5, 73 ; as Val- 
kyries, 2,5, 1 80 ; as ships, 66, 
1315 as psychopomps, 66 j as 
birds, 67-72., 131 5 as cattle, 
161, 180 ; as the Golden Fleece, 
1 80. 

Codadad and his brethren, the tale of, 
a sun-myth, x8i. 

Colenso, J. W., on the Pentateuch^ 
98 n. 

Comte, Auguste, on fetichistic no- 
tions in animals, 298. 

Cows, as douds, 25 ; as psycho- 
pomps, 66. See Cattle. 

Cox, G. W., on the tellers of old 
tales, 1 8 ; on the belief in were- 
wolves, 96, 100, 1 20 ; on the 
Lykaon myth, 96, 100 j on the 
Berserker madness, 12.2, n. ; his 
scepticism and dogmatism, 12.2 n.; 
on the legend of the Herakleids, 
242. 5 on Poseidon, 2.76 n. ; his 
Mythology of tkt Aryan Nations, 
li n. j on Cyrus, 154; on the 
devil, 169 n., 170 ; on the. Iliad, 
261 ; on the Odyssey, 266 ; his 
Manual of Mythology on the 
grove of the Erinyes, 155 ; his 
Tales of Ancient Greece on the 
Iliad and Odyssey, 266; his 
methods criticised, 285. 

Cranz, David, on the Greenlanders* 
idea of the soul, 305. 

Criminals, detection of, by the 
divining-rod, 55 5 in myths, 77, 
283 n. 

Criticism, modern, and William Tell, 
I. 

Cross, fragments of the true, as valid 
proofs, 2. 

Culotte-Verte, the story of, a sun- 
myth, iSx. 



333 



INDEX 



Cushna in the Rig-Veda, 1 60. 
Cyras, how fer mythical, 154 n. 5 a 
solar hero, 268. 

Dagon in ancient mythology, 25. 

Dahana, the Dawn, 154. 

Danaos, daughters of, and the rainy 
sky, 66. 

Danish account of William Tell, 
4-6. 

Dante Alighieri, places Cain as the 
Man in the Moon, 36 ; on souls 
of earthly bodies in hell, 304. 

Daphne, the dawn, 154. 

Daras, the town, the Frankish ex- 
planation of the word, 97. 

Darwin, C. R., the chark in Nat" 
rajhi*s Voyage, 85 n. 5 on the 
dog and the parasol in Descent of 
Man y 298 n. 

Dasent, Sir G. W., prefatory note 
on, vii; on Tell legend among 
Turks and Mongolians, 6 ; on 
the Berserker madness, 109 n. ; 
his tale of the white bear that 
marries a young girl, 133, 134; 
his Prose Edda on Freyr's cloud- 
ship, 67 n. ; his Burnt Njal on 
witchcraft, 107 n. ; his Popular 
Tales from the Norse on Not a Pin 
to choose between them, 1 73 n. j 
on Trolls, 1 76 n. 

Dasyu, night demon, 153. 

Davy's locker, 169. \ 

Dawn as detecting crime, 78, 
483 n. 

Dawn-myths, 153, 155; Ameri- 
can, 213 ; Aryan, 214. See also 
Erinys. 

Daybreak-myths, resemblance be- 
tween lightning-myths and, 78. 

Death, savages' idea of, 102. 

Decius and the Seven Sleepers, 35. 

Delepierre, Octave, Historical Diffi- 
culties, 4. 

Deluge-myths, origin of, 105, 

Demainetos, story of, 94. 

Demon, the application of, 142. 

Descent of Fire, the, 50-93. 



Deulin, Charles, on Gambrinus, m 
Contes d'un JSuveur d& J3iere 9 
175 n. 

Devas churning the ocean, 85. 

Devil, and the walnut, as a wind- 
myth, 48 ; derivation and history 
of the word, 143, 144 5 the 
mediaeval conception of, 167 
169 ; as represented by the Scotch 
divines of the seventeenth century, 
169 ; mediaeval legends concern- 
ing, 169-175. See Satan. 

Dewel, gypsy name for God, 143 n. 

Dido, and the ox-hides, 97 5 her 
part in the sun-myth, 151. 

Dietrich, how far historical, 272. 

Dieu, derivation of the word, 143 n., 
145. 

Digamma, in the Homeric poems, 
248. 

Diocletian's ostrich, story of, men- 
tioned, 59 n. 

Diodorus Siculus, 158. 

Diomedes not conceived of by 
Homer as an ordinary mortal, 
261, 262. 

Dionysos imitated by the Devil, 
168. 

Dioskouroi, American parallel of, 
211 n. 

Divination based on primitive anal- 
^ogy, 294. 

Divining-rod, used to find water in 
an American village, 5055 ; 
as symbolic of lightning, in find- 
ing water, 55, 77, 1625 in 
cleaving ^rocfcs,^ 55, 74, 162 5 
in detecting criminals, 55, 77 5 
in finding hidden treasure, 55, 
74) 77 $7 5 roust be forked, 
74, 87 ; in curing disease, 815 
in bringing down fire, 84 ; as the 
wish-rod, 89. 

Doctrine of signatures, 295 n. 

Dog which appeared in Faust's 
study, 1 68. 

Dogs, howling of, 47, 104 ; as the 
wind bearing away souls, 47, 
104 j as a psychoppmp in Persia 



334 



INDEX 



and India, 47 n., 104 ; how far 

capable of fetichistic notions, 297. 
Don Carlos and Queen Elizabeth, 

30. 
Don Juan, Ms prototype the Sun, 

150. 
Don Sebastian of Portugal, his sleep 

as a winter-myth, 35. 
Donaldson, J. W., on the word 

Babe^ in jVtfw Craty/us, 98 n. 
Dorians, date of their conquest of 

Peloponnesos, 240-244, 259 5 as 

known to Homer, 243 5 in the 

historical period, 243. 
Dousterswivel, 51. 
Dreams, primitive philosophy of, 

*95> 3*8- 

Drowning, superstitions in regard to, 
290. 

Durandal, a solar weapon, 32. 

Dyaks of Borneo, post-mortem pro- 
perty of. 315. 

Dyaus, the meaning of, and the 
form in cognate languages, 26, 
67, 145-147, 149, 267 5 yielded 
as a deity to .Brahma and Vishnu, 
71. 

Earth, symbols of, in mythology, 
233, 234 ; in the hypotheses of 
Plato and Kepler, 234. 

Echidna, a personification of the 
storm-cloud, 78, 160 5 charac- 
teristics of, retained by the Devil, 
168. 

Echoes, other self in, 302. 

Ecstasy, fetichism in, 300, 318. 

Edda, the prose, the story of FrodPs 
quern in, 89 ; the composition 
of, 249. 

Eden, serpent in, an Aryan myth, 
166. 

Edward I., King, legend concerning, 
30. 

Efreets, the Arabian, 48, 168, 175, 

179- 

Egg, the earth as an, 233. 
Egil, the Tell of Iceland, 6 ; legend 

of, traced to sun-myth, 32. 



Egyptian story of a WaE and a 
pot of herbs, 9. 

Eilden, sorceress of the, and Thomas 
of Erceldoune, 40. 

Eleanor, wife of Edward I., 30. 

Elizabeth, wife of Philip IL, 305 
Hungarian Countess, homicidal 
insanity of, no. 

Elves in Teutonic mythology, 131. 

Embodiment, theory of, 306. 

Endymion, his slumber as a winter- 
myth, 34 j and Selene, 219. 

England as the Phaiakhn land of 
German mythology, 38. 

English peasants, superstitions of, in 
regard to the wind, 43. 

Eos, a more recent personification 
than Athene, 268 ; the goddess 
of the sensuous glories of day- 
break, 275.^ 

Epilepsy explained by our ancestors 
by a belief in changelings, 117, 
119. 

Epimenides, Ms sleep as a winter- 
myth, 35. 

Epimetheus and Prometheus, 87, 

Erckmann, nwk, and Chatrian,, 
Alexandre, story of Vittikab, 44. 

Erinys, the Greek form of the San- 
skrit Saranyu, or morning light, 
77, 155 5 in the Oidipous sun- 
myth, 153-155 ; the degradation 
of, 1675 detecting crime, 283 n. 

Erlking, legend of the, as a wind- 
mydb, 41, 44. 

Eros and Psyche, story of, 1 34 n. 

Esquimaux, no distinction between 
animate and inanimate in the 
language of, 24 n. 5 a moon- 
myth of, 219. 

Es-Sirat, bridge of, Mohammedan 
rainbow-myth, 65* 

Etymology a source of myths, 96. 

Etzel, how far historical, 272. 

Euhemerism, whereof it consists, 
20 5 and American myths, 207. 

Euphemisms for dreaded beings, , 
301 n. 

Eurykleia and Odysseus, 34. 



335 



INDEX 



Excalibur, a solar weapon, 3 a. 

Excursions of an Evolutionist, chap- 
ters Hi v., possibly fragments of 
the projected work, Aryana 
Faldjo, 1 66 n. 

Faber, no mention of Tell in chron- 
icles of, 2. 

"Faded metaphors," 263 n. 
Fafnir, 180. 
Fairies degraded by Christianity, 133, 

"75- 

Faithful John, story of, 105 con- 
nection with Gellert myth, 10. 

Farid-Uddin-Attar, Tell legend in 
Persian poem of, 7. 

Faro Islands, belief of the inhabitants 
of, in regard to seals, 136. 

Fasting, use of, in producing oracular 
inspiration, 3*1 n. 

Feather dresses in folk-lore, 134, 

"35- 
Fena, use and form of the word, 97 ; 

wrongly identified with PMnix, 

97- 

Fern, renders its bearer invisible, 60 ; 
avoided by snakes, 83. 

Ferrar, W. H., on the word Latium, 
in Comparative Grammar of 
Greek, iatin^ and Sanskrit,, 99 n. 

Fetches, philosophy of, 308. 

Fetichism, as the earliest form of re- 
ligion, 148, 319 ; in primeval 
philosophy, 191-341 ; in ani- 
mals, 298. 

Ficfc, August, on Bhaga, in Watr- 
tertuch der Indogermanischfn 
Grundspracfa, 142 n. 

Ficus rcligiosa, its spear-like leaves, 
75 . 

Figuier, Louis, on human souls, in 
The To-morrow of Death, 312. 

Fijians, give souls to natural objects, 
24 n. 5 their theory of a second 
death, 311. 

Fingal, derivation of, 97. 

Finnish conception, of the earth as 
an egg, 22 ; of the storm-cloud, 
76. 



Fire, ancient Hindu method of ob- 
taining, 84. 

Fire-drill, Hindu, 84-87. 

Fire-myths, 84. 

Foi scientific, and divination, 52 ; 
preventive against self-deception, 

53- 
Folk-lore of all Aryan countries has a 

common origin with Greek gods 

and heroes, 48, 323. 
Folliculus, story of, 10 n. 
Forget-me-not, the luck-flower in 

lightning-myths, 56. 
Forty Thieves, story of, as a light- 
ning-myth, 57. 
Forum Boarium, the place where 

Hercules pastured his oxen, 158. 
Fouque, F. H. K., Baron de la 

Motte, his Sir Elidoc, 82. 
Four and the primitive worship of 

the cardinal points, 217. 
Freeman, E. A., on Carlovingian 

romance, 269, 271. 
Freischiitz and Devil, 172. 
Frere, Mary, Old Deccan Days, on 

Punchkin, 13. 
Freudenberger, Uriel, condemned to 

be burnt for doubting the story of 

Tell, 4. 
Freyr, the cloud-ship of, 67 ; Norse 

Frodi identified with, 90. 
Frodi, story of his quern a lightning- 
myth, 89, 90 5 identified with 

Freyr, 90. 
Frost-Giants, 176. 
Funeral sacrifices illustrating theory 

of object-souls, 315. 
Fury, its prototype in Sanskrit means 

the morning light, 77. 
Fuseli, J. H., his Mara, 126. 

Geelic musician, lyre of the, classed 
among wind-myths, 44. 

Gaia, a more recent personification 
than Demeter, 268. 

Galton, Francis, his theory with re- 
gard to the genius of the Greeks, 
251. 

Gambrinusand the Devil, 173-175. 



INDEX 



Gandharba Sena, story of, 134 n. 
Gandharvas, or cloud-demons, 130. 
Garcilaso de la Vega, Ms anecdote of 

the Peruvian Inca, 151. 
Garrows in Bengal place their dead 

in boats, 66 n. 
Gellert story, proved to be a myth, 

8 ; a form of, occurs in nearly 

every Aryan nation, 9 5 versions 

of, in various nations, 915. 
Gellius, Aulus, on Kaikias, 160. 
Genesis of Language, essay on, 

196 n. 
Geryon in the myth of Hercules and 

Cacus and in the Greek myth, 

157-161. 
Gessler, no such name appears on 

the charters of Kiissenach, a. 
Gesta Romanorum, story of Folliculus 

in, 10 n. 5 story of Diocletian's 

ostrich in, 59 n. $ tales of the 

devil in, 169 n. 
Ghosts, primitive belief in, 297 ; 

connected with men's shadows, 

303 5 etymology of, 305 j and 

funeral sacrifices, 314, 316. 
Giant who had no Heart in his Body, 

story of, 12, 179 ; resemblance 

to Punchkin, 13, 215. 
Giant with his Soul in a Snake, 307, 
Giants or Trolls as uncivilized pre- 

historic Europeans, 176. 
Gibbs, J. W., on "faded meta- 

phors,** in Philological Studies , 

263 n. 
Girdles used by werewolves, 122, 

1*3- 

Gladstone, W. E., his Juventus 
Mvndi reviewed, 135281 ; his 
Studies on Homer and the Homeric 

<**, *35- 

Glistening Heath, 180. 
Gloves of Flemish Nixies, 135. 
God, derivation of the name, 143 5 

originally meant storw'wind, 268. 
Goethe, J. W. von, his Erlking, 

41 ; added a new part to Faust, 



Golden Fleece as clouds, 180. 



Gorgon Medusa, benumbing power 
of, 79. 

Graiai, realm of the, the sky, 67. 

Great Bear, the constellation, origin 
of the name, 99. 

Greek gods and heroes, names of, 
occur in Sanskrit with physical 
meanings, 26 5 regarded merely as 
persons by the Greeks, 27 ; have 
a common origin with folk-lore 
heroes of all Aryan nations, 48, 

3*3- 
Greeks, their idea of the sky, 66 ; 

the date of their entrance into 

Europe, 266 j their colonization 

of Asia, 271. 

Greenlanders' idea of the soul, 305. 
Grenier, Jean, the case of, 113, 

Grey, Sir George, the Australian 
natives, in his Journals, 183 n. 

Grimm, J. L. K. , on interpretation 
of mythology, viii ; on the com- 
mon origin of Aryan mythology, 
194 ; on the root <&, 144. 

Grote, George, on the discrimination, 
of iancy from reality, 240 ; on 
the earliest date of Greek History, 
242 5 on the artistic structure of 
the Homeric Poems, 252-256 ; 
his History of Greece on the 
Homeric Poems, 245, 248. 

Guillimann, Fra^ois, one of the 
first authors to doubt the story of 
William Tell, 3. 

Gunadhya, Sanskrit, classed among 
wind-myths, 44. 

Gunther, a personification, 472. 

Guodan, the name, how related to 
God, 143. 

Gyges, ring of, 60. 

Gypsies, their use of the word d&oil f 
H3- 

Hagen, and Siegfried in sun-myth, 
33 ; a personification, 272. 

Hamlet as a sun-myth, 263 n. 

Hammerlin, no mention of Tell in 
chronicles of, 2. 



337 



INDEX 



Hand of Glory, in North Europe 
mythology, 61 5 story of, 6ij 
corresponding hand among Mexi- 
cans, 62 5 used by Irish thieves 
in 1831, 62 ; used to find buried 
treasure in the Middle Ages, 63 j 
interpretation of the myth, 76. 

Hardrada, Harold and Hemingr, 6. 

Hardwkk, Charles, on the soul, in 
Traditions, Superstitions, and Folk- 
Lore, 304 n. 

Hardy, R. S., his Manual of 
Buddhism, 105 n. 

Hare-lip, origin of, according to 
Hottentot myth, 219. 

Harland, John, his Lancashire Folk- 
Lore, on love-charms, 89 n. 5 on 
witch of Lancashire, 306. 

Harold Blue-tooth, and Palnatoki, 
4-6. 

Haroun Alraschid and the luck- 
flower, 57. 

Hasheesh, reason of its sacredness, 
321 n. 

Hassan of El-Basrah, story of, 17 n., 
135 n. 

Hatto, Bishop, story of, 45 5 his 
tower a " customs-tower,*' 98. 

Hausser, L., in Tell bibliography, 

3*5* 

Hazel, as a lightning-tree, 74 ; 
avoided by snakes, 83 5 nuts of, 
as love charms, 88, 89. 

Hazel rod, used to find water in an 
American village, 50-53 j as a 
thrashing-rod, 91. 

Head, Sir Edmund, on the Berserker 
madness, in Viga. Glum*s Saga, 
109 n. 

Heartless Giant, story of, 12, 179 5 
resemblance to Ptuichkin, 13, 
215. 

Hekataios, no literary Greek history 
before the age of, 259. 

Hektor, his part in the Iliad, struc- 
turally considered, 255, 256 ; not 
conceived of by Homer as an ordi- 
nary mortal, 261, 

Helena, the Greek form of the San*- 



338 



skrit Sarama, 26, 164 n. 5 origin 
of the myth of the faithlessness 
of, 1645 not conceived of by- 
Homer as an ordinary mortal, 
260, 267 ; known in Aryana- 
vaedjo, 263 5 her parallel in the 
Rig-Veda, 265 ; connected with 
the root sar, 267. 

Helios, the same as Surya, x64n. 5 
a more recent personification than 
Apollo, 268 ; Gladstone's ex- 
planation of, 277. 

Helle and Phrixos, 180. 

Hellenes, in the Homeric poems, 
243 5 in the historical period, 
243. 

Hemingr, the Tell of Norway, 6 5 
story of, traced to sun-myth, 32. 

Henderson, William, Folk~Lore of 
the Northern Counties of England, 
62 n. 

Hengst and Horsa, credibility of the 
legend of, 242. 

Hephaistos, and Aphrodite, 88n. $ 
in the Iliad and Odyssey, 256, 
257. 

Herakleids, legend of, 242. 

Herakles, as degraded by Euhemeros, 
20 ; and Eurystheus, 32 ; and 
Nessos, 33 ; as the sun, 25, 150, 
152 ; etymology of, 158 n. ; con- 
fused with Hercules, 158 ; his 
epithet Alexikaios, 159; barbaric 
parallel to, 213, 232. 

Heraldic emblems a relic of the 
totems of savagery, 106. 

Hercules, etymology of, 15811, j con- 
fused with Herakles, 158 ; origi- 
nal character of, 158. 

Hercules and Cacus, the myth of, 
explained as a sun-myth, 157 
164 5 attached to the mediaeval 
Devil, 169. 

Here, queen of the blue air in ancient 
mythology, 26. 

Hermai, mutilation of the, 91. 

Hermes, the Greek form of the 
Sanskrit Sarameias, 25, 26, 47, 
164 n., 276; as the wind-god. 



INDEX 



*5, 47 5 fusion of sun and wind j 
gods in, 4.3, 91 j in Homeric | 
Hymns, 47 ; rod of, as the light- 
ning, 90 ; leader of the Pitris in 
Vedic religion, 104 ; the wish- 
hound of, 104 5 characteristic of, 
retained by the Devil, 1685 Ameri- 
can parallel to, 206, 213. 

Herodotos, on the date of Homer, 
242 ; no literary Greek history 
before the age of, 259. 

Hertz, Wilhelm, on the belief in 
werewolves, 96. 

Hiatus in Homeric poems, 249. 

Hildesheim, monk of, his sleep as a 
winter-myth, 35. 

Hindus, their ideas of rain-clouds, 
66 5 myth of churning the ocean 
with Mount Mandara, 85 5 their 
belief in metempsychosis, 101 5 
their practice of self-immolation 
for purposes of revenge, 102 n. 

Hisely, J. J., in Tell bMography, 

3*5; 

Historic period, beginning of, 239, 
240. 

Hitopadesa, story of the Brahman 
and the Goat in, 16. 

Horsel, the Aphrodite or moon-god- 
dess of German mythology, 38, 
257. 

Horselberg, legend of the, 38. 

Holda, 46. 

Holy water traced to rainwater-myth, 
86 n. 

Homer, knew nothing of the source 
of his myths, 72 ; the birthplace 
of, 240, 241 ; identity of, 240 5 
his date, 240-244, 258. 

Homeric Hymns, Hermes in, 47. 

Homeric legends may have some 
historical basis, 27 n. 

Homeric poems, the state of society 
depicted in, 237 5 date of, 240- 
2445 Greece and the Greek 
tribes, according to, 242, 243 5 
possibly the oldest existing speci- 
mens of Aryan literature, 244; 
,]Wolf theory of the composition 



of, 2455 Wolf's objection tte 
they are too long to have been 
preserved by memory, 246 j com- 
posed long before they were com- 
mitted to writing, 248 5 the evi- 
dence of language on the question 
of their composition, 248 5 inter- 
nal evidence of their unity of 
composition, 249-256 5 the lit- 
erary characteristics of, 250-252 j 
their artistic structure examined, 
252256 ; Grote's theory of the 
composition of the Iliad, 252 
256 ; arguments for the divided 
authorship of, 256 5 Hske*s view 
of the authorship of, 257 ; Glad- 
stone's view of the authorship of, 
258 5 their value as testimony to 
the truth of statements therein 
contained, 260, 273 ; their con- 
tents compared with those of the 
Veda, the Edda, and the Nibe- 
lungenlied, 263266. 

Homerids, the, 247. 

Homicidal insanity, the cases of the 
Marechal de Retz and the Count- 
ess Elizabeth, 1105 accompanied 
by cannibalism, in 5 accom- 
panied by hallucination, 112. 

Horn and Hengst, credibility of the 
legend of, 242. 

Hottentot myth of the moon and 
the hare, 218, 

Houris, related to the Valkyries 
and the Apsaras, 139. 

Humboldt, F. H. A., Baron von, 
worship of the cardinal points in 
his Komos, 21 7 n. 

Hungerbuhler, H., in Tell biblio- 
graphy, 325. 

Hydrophobia, myth of the prevention 
of, 293. 

Hyllos and Oxylos, not historical 
personages, 242. 

Hyperboreans, tie garden of, 155. 

Ida, meaning of, 154. 
Ideler, J. L., in Tell bibliography 
3*5* 



339 . 



INDEX 



Idiocy, explained in the Middle Ages 
as diabolical metamorphosis, 06. 

Diad, the sixth and the twenty-fourth 
books compared, 151 5 Grote's 
theory of the structure of, 252- 
3^56 ; the characters of, not con- 
ceived of by Homer as ordinary 
mortals, 260, 261. See Homeric 
poems. 

Iliad myth, known in Aryana- 
vaedjo, 5163, 369 ; appears in the 
Veda and the NibelungenKed, 
263 j how rar to be considered 
an account of the victory of light 
over darkness, 2.63 n. 5 formed 
of mythical conceptions and genu- 
ine tradition, 269 ; compared with 
Carlovingian romance, 269-272. 

Use, Princess, and the luck-flower, 

Bsenstein shepherd, story of, a light- 

ning-mytfe, 56, 
Inanimate objects, supposed by the 

savages to have souls, 24 n., 313, 

3.*3- 

Indian summer a sun-myth, 34. 

Indians, American, their sun-god 
and winter - myth, 34 5 regard 
lightning as fiery serpents, 69, 

| 70 ; their explanation of the 
sun's course, 152 ; had no word 

I to express the idea of God, 148 n, 5 

: mythology of, 206-217; their 
practice of driving away ghosts of 
slain, 309. 

Indo-European nations, descended 
from a common Aryan stock, 
192 ; possess common myths and 
legends, 192. 

Indra, and the cloud mountains, 
72 n. 5 mead drunk by, 86 j de- 
gradation of, 144 n. 5 contradic- 
tion in the Aryan conception of, 
149 j a personification of light 
and warmth, 149 5 in the Rig- 
Veda, 160, 161, 163,265. 

Jhdra conquering Vritra, myth of, 
one of the theorems of primitive j 
Aryan science, 1945 contained! 



germs of a theology, 194 5 the 
parent of countless myths, 194. 

Indra Savitar, the golden hand of, 
76. 

Insanity and other self, 301, 318. 

lokaste in the Oidipous sun-myth, 
153, 154. 

lole as the morning and evening 
light in ancient mythology, 25, 
265. 

loskeha, legend of, 211. 

Iris, Gladstone on, 276. 

Irish, the, origin of the theory of 
then* being Phoenicians, 97, 

Iroquois have partial distinction be- 
tween animate and inanimate in 
their language, 24 n. 

Itshe-likantunjambili, legend of, 227. 

Itu in Polynesian sun-myth, 230. 

Ixion, his wheel as the sun, 26, 67 ; 
his treasure-house as a lightning- 
cavern, 8l. 

Jack and Jill, as a moon-myth, 37, 

288 ; in Sanskrit myths, 38. 
Jack and the Bean-Stalk, found all 

over the world, 31, 204 j in 

Malay myth, 221. 
Jack the Giant-Killer, 177, 182. 
Jacolliot, Louis, his Bible in India 

a disgraceful piece of charlatanry, 

278. 
Jehovah, as dispensing good and evil, 

1 66 5 unwillingness of the Jews 

to pronounce, 301 n. 
Jews, their idea of the sky, 65 ; their 

conception of Satan, 166. 
Jinn, 175. 
Job, Book of, conception of Satan 

in, 166. 
fotuns, 175. 

fonah and the whale, 105 n. 
foseph and Zuleikha, myth of, and 

that of BeEerophon and Anteia, 

resemblance between, 277. 
foseph of Arimathaea and the Holy 

Grail, place of the legend of, 

among myths, 36. 
[upiter, etymology of, 25, 145, 



340 



INDEX 



146 ; the original hero of the 
Cacus-myth, 159. 

Justi on clouds as mountains in 
Orient und Occident ', 73 n. 

Justinian, Emperor, supposed connec- 
tion with Daras, 97. 

Juventus Mundi, 235-281. 

Kadmos, American parallel to, 
206. 

Kaikias, a Greek demon, 159. 

Kalidasa, Kali Das, author of drama 
on Urvasi and Pururavas, 130; 
and the dawn-myths, 214. 

Kallisto, origin of myth of, 100. 

Kalypso, a goddess of night, 272. 

Kalypso and Odysseus, story of, 
ckssed among moon-myths, 40 ; 
corresponds to Venus-Ursuk in 
the Tannhauser-myth, 1 5 1 n. 

Kamtchatkan lightning-myth, 229. 

Karl the Great of history, 270. 

Kasimbaha, legend of, 220. 

Kelly, W. . K,, on connection of 
suicides and storms, 77 ; his Indo~ 
European Folk-Lore, on placing 
the dead in boats, 66 n. ; on 
snakes* avoidance of certain trees 
and plants, 84 n. j on churning 
the ocean, 86, 

Kennedy, Patrick, his Fictions of 
the Irish Celts, on the story of 
Richard, 119 n. ; on seal-women, 
136 n. ; on Red James, 138 n. ; 
on story of Sculloge of Muskerry, 
184. 

Kerberos, Greek form of the San- 
skrit 9arvara, ^7 5 a kinsman of 
Cacus and Orthros, 160 ; charac- 
teristics of, retained by the Devil, 
168. 

King Arthur's boat, 66. 

Kirkeas a dawn-maiden, 151 n. 

Klakkr, Old Norse, means both cloud 
and rock, 73 n. 

Kleisthenes, edicts of, 247. 
Kolbeck, dancers of, their place 

among myths, 36. 
Koroibos, the Olympiad of, the ear- 



liest ascertainable date in Greek 

history, 240. 

Crates on the date of Homer, 241. 
SCrilof, I. A., his story of the Gnat 

and the Shepherd, 10 n. 
ECuhn, Adalbert, prefatory note on, 

vii ; his Die Herabkunft de* 

Feuers und des Gottertranks, 63 ; 

on the Mara, 131 n. ; his Beitrage 

on the Gypsy use of the word 

devil 9 143 n. 

La Fontaine, Jean de, rabies of, pat- 
terned after those of ^Esop and 
Phzedrus, 8. 

Labe, Queen, 151 n. 

Lachmann, Karl, on the composi- 
tion of the Iliad, 251. 

Lad who went to the North Wind, 
story of the, 91. 

Lady of Shalott's boat, 66, 

Laios in the Oidipous sun-myth, 
152-154. 

Lancashire witch transfers her famil- 
iar spirit, 305. 

Lane, E. W., his Arabian Nights, 
on the JinnTs soul, 14 n. ; on 
Hassan of El-Basrah, 1 7 n. j on 
feather dresses, 135 n. 

Language, a permanent, must have 
a basis of civilization, 202, 203. 

Languages, all, cannot be traced to a 
common ancestor, 201. 

Lapps as Giants or Trolls, 1 76. 

Latium, real and Vergilian etymology 
of, 98. 

Lazarus, Dr., account of, in De 
I* Intelligence, 53. 

Legends, borrowing and lending of, 
8, 1 8 ; community of origin of, 
10, 19 5 correspondence in con- 
ception of, 15, 19 j tales of gran- 
nies, peasants, and servants the 
source of, 185 the beauty and 
faithful repetition of, 19; the 
marvellous in, 21 ; distinction be- 
tween myths, misrepresentations 
arid, 29. See also Myths. 
^ etymology of, 138. . 



INDEX 



Leopard and Ram, story <4 177 n. 

Leopold, Duke, at tie battle of 
Morgarten, 3. 

Lewis, Sir G. C., the retentive 
memory of, 246. 

Liebenau, in Tell bibliography, 325. 

Light and Darkness, 141-190. 

Lightning, symbolized by a divining- 
rod, 55, 74, 77, 7?, 84, 89; 
symbolized by certain plants or 
trees, 56-58, 74; as schamir, 
58, 69, 76 ; as carried by birds, 
59 5 benumbing power of, 79 ; 
as a benefactor, 81-89 ; as the 
rod of Hermes, 90. 

Lightning-myths, 55-93 ; resem- 
blance to daybreak-myths, 78. 

Lightning-plants, 5659. See Plants 
symbolic of Hghtning. 

Lightning-trees, 74. 

Literature, the beginnings of, mark 
the growth of the world, 238, 
239 ; the date of the beginnings 
of, 239, 140. 

Littre, M. P. E., onfoi mcntifyue 
and divination, 52, 

Livy on the myth of Hercules and 
Cacus, 157. 

Llewellyn and his dog, story of, 
proved to be a myth, 8 ; story of, 
occurs among nearly every Aryan 
people, 9. See Gellert story. 

Logos the source of Athene, ac- 
cording to Gladstone, 2.74. 

Lotos-eaters, country of, the sky, 67. 

Loup-garou, etymology and meaning 
of, 95* See Werewolf. 

Luck-flower, story of, 56 ; found in 
Persia, 57; makes Its finder in- 
visible, 60 n. 

Lucretius, the laissez-faire divinities 
of, 104. 

Lunar spots, myths concerning the, 
36. See Moon-myths. 

Luxman and Rama, story of, and its 
connection with Gellert myth, 1 1 . 

Lycanthropy, regarded as a species 
of witchcraft, 1 08 5 modern cases 
of, in, 115* See Werewolves. 



Lydus, Johannes, on Sancus, 1 59. ~ 

Lykaios, epithet of Zeus, meaning 
of, 96. 

Lykaon, king of Arkadia, story of, 
94 ; origin of story of, 96, 100 ; 
his legend a variation of that of 
Tantalos, 100. 

Lykegenes, epithet of Phoibos, 
meaning of, 96. 

Lykians, etymologically "the chil- 
dren of light," 100, 269. 

Lykourgos, his career not histori- 
cally clear, 259. 

Mackay, R. W., on personification 
of names, in Religious Develop* 
ment of the Greeks and HebreiuS) 
301 n. 

M'Lennan, The Worship of Animak 
and Plants, on object-souls, 24 n.; 
on metempsychosis and ancestor- 
worship, 1 01, 102 n. 

Mausethurm, story of, 45 ; origin 
of the word, 98. 

Magnusson, Eirikr, on the Berser- 
ker madness, in Gretth Saga, 
109 n. 

Mahabharata, the, a collection of 
ballads, 245, 249. 

Mahafry, J. P., his Prolegomena to 
Ancient History , on etymologies, 
27 n. 5 on Odysseus and Polyphe- 
mos, 72 j on myth-makers, 
183 n. 

Maitland, Edward, blasphemous re- 
mark of, 141. 

Malalas, Joannes, on the explana- 
tion of the word Doras or Doras y 
97. 

Malays, their belief that men turn 
into crocodiles, 222 n. ; instance 
of belief in metempsychosis among, 

3*4 n- 
Malleus Malcfc&ntm^ story of Tell 

in, 6. 
Man in the Moon, legends of the, 

36, 37- 

Manabozho, legend of, 208. 
Mandanu Mount, as the churning* 



342 



INDEX 



stick of gods and devils in Hindu 
myth, 85. 

Manes-worship developed into the 
worship of deities, 319, 32,0. 
See Ancestor-worship. 

Maoris, their divination with Venus 
and the moon, 294 ; wraith ap- 
pearing to, 308. 

Mara, a female demon, or night- 
mare, ta6 $ character of the, as 
nightmare, illustrated by Nether- 
landish story, lay 5 as a beautiful 
lady, lay, ia8 ; as related to 
the Nixies, or Swan-maidens, 
ia8, lag ; original characteristics 
of, degraded by Christianity, 129, 

1 30 5 in Teutonic mythology, 

131 ; South German prescription 
for getting rid of, 131. 

Marcus Aurelius, personification of 

the sky in, 24 n. 
Martin, B. L. H., on the Marechal 

de Retz, in. 
Marvellous, the, in legends, ai 5 an 

important factor in the minds of 

primitive men, 2123. 
Master Thief, legend of the, 15 j 

as a wind-myth, 48. 
Maui in Polynesian sun-myth, 230. 
Mbulu, abode of departed spirits ac- 
cording to Fijians, a4 n. 
Medela as a dawn-maiden, 151 n. 
Medusa, her relationship, 155. 
Meleagros as the sun, 25, 33, 154. 
Melusina, story of, 131133. 
Memnon, son of the Dawn, 2,69. 
Memory, cases of extraordinary, 246, 

247. 

Menelaos, how far historical, 272 
Merchant of Louvain and Devil, 

171- 

Merlin, spellbound, as a winter-myth, 

Mermaid as foretokening shipwreck, 

140. 
Mermaid's cap b witchcraft, 136, 

J 37* 

Metempsychosis, the doctrine of, 
found in all parts of the world. 



101 ; connected with ancestor- 
worship, 101, 1 02 5 connected 
with belief in werewolves, 105- 
108, 311 ; in Malay, 314 n. 

tfeyer, Karl, in Tell bibliography, 
3 a6. 

tfice as souls, 45, 46, 306. 

Vlichabo, sun-god of American In- 
dians, 34, 100 $ etymology of the 
name, 100, 209 ; legends of, 
208-212 ; a sun-god, ao9, 212. 

Michelet, Jules, on the Marechal 
de Retz, no. 

Vliddleton, Conyers, on children be- 
ing brought to St. Theodoras, 



Miledh, the epithet, misunderstood, 

97- 

Milesian, sobriquet of the Irish, 97. 
Milesius, the mythical hero, origin 

of, 97. 

Milky Way, myth of, 205. 
Mill, J. S*, on the Iliad, in Disserte* 

tions and Discussions^ a 5 6. 
Mirror, myth that the breaking of, 

portends death, 293. 
Mishkat-ul-Ma'sabih, explanation of 

the nature of the stars in, 29. 
Misrepresentations, distinction be- 

tween myths, legends, and, 30. 
Mistletoe, as a lightning-tree, 74; 

therapeutic properties of, 83 5 and 

marriage, 88, 89. 
Mitra in the Rig-Veda, 149. 
Moira as the curse in the story of 

the Wandering Jew, 155 n. 
Mole in American sun-myth, 231. 
Mommsen, Theodor, on Heraklea 

and Hercules, in Romische Ge 

schichte, 159 n. 
Monotheism not a primitive reli- 

gion, 147, 148. 
Moon, and hare in Hottentot moon- 

myth, ia8 5 Jack and Jill in the, 

37* 
Moon-myths, in ancient mythology, 

36-41 ; barbaric, 218-220. 
Morris, William, on the Berserkers, 

in GrettisSaga 9 109 n. 



343 



INDEX 



Mouse tower, story of, 45. 

Muller, Max, prefatory note on, 
TO 5 on Greek and Sanskrit ety- 
mologies, 27 5 on the Great Bear, 
99 5 on Sarama, Helena and 
Paris, i64. ; on the study of 
words and myths, 196-200 ; his 
Essay on Comparative MytAotogy, 

282 ; on the genesis of myths, 

283 5 on the personification of 
names, 301 n. ; "on the etymology 
of gfat, 305 ; his Rig-Veda 
Sanhita^ on clouds as mountains, 
73 n. ; on Bhaga, 142 n, ; on 
Contradictions in the theogonic 
speculations of the Aryans, 149 ; 
his CJupsfrom a German fjTork- 
stop, on the Mara, 131 n. ; on 
the degradation of Indra, 144 n. j 
on the predominance of solar 
myths, 183 n. 5 on words in de- 
rivative languages, 196, 197 ; his 
Science of Language on Paris, 
263 n., 268. 

Muir, Sir William, on the Hindu 
storm-wind, in Sanskrit Texts, 
1 06 ; on Bhaga, 142 n. 

Muri-ranga.-whenua in Polynesian 
sun-myth, 230. 

Muskoghee, no distinction between 
animate and inanimate in language 
of, 24 n. 

Mykenai, the seat of suzerainty in 
the Iliad, 271. 

^Mythology, of the ancients, was their 
attempt to explain natural phe- 
nomena, 2128, 194; methods 
of philology applied to, 195-200, 
204, 322 ; physical geography 
compared to, 200 ; psychology 
and, 284, 322 j summary of the 
sjarjd devetoment^ 322". 
" 



" the mar- 

vellous as the root of, 21 j em- 
body man's first ideas on physi- 
cal phenomena, 2128, 1945 
allegorical interpretation of, inade- 
quate, 28, 288 5 distinction be- 
tween legends, misrepresentations, 



and, 29 ; leading incidents remain 
constant in corresponding, 30 5 
rading of primitive meanings of, 
70 5 no philosophical symmetry 
in, 71 ; incongruities in, 71, 72 ; 
etymological, 96 ; descended from 
a common original, 193 5 resem- 
blance between,, 195, 197, 205, 
215 ; description of natural phe- 
nomena in, 194, 205, 286 ; 
Aryan and barbaric compared, 
195, 201, 206, 213, 216, 217, 
225, 232 ; kinship in, 200, 203, 
205 ; common conceptions in, 
205 ; identity in details, 216 5 
genesis of, 282, 289, 291, 322 5 
as developed into superstitions, 
289. '; 

Myths of the Barbaric World, 191- 
234 5 personification of "natural 
phenomena in, 195, 215 ; can 
have no common origin, 203 5 
kinship in, 204, 217; absence 
of a certain class of dawn-myths 
in, 213-215. 

Myth-makers, explanation of natural 
phenomena the reason for the ex- 
istence of, 283 ; believed in the 
literal truth of their personifica- 
tions, 283 n. ; mode of thought 
of, analyzed, 284-322. 

Names of lords and chiefs, unwilling- 

ness of savages to tell, 298 n. 
Nation^ The, on how Jfar dogs are 

capable of fetichistic notions, 

298 n. 
Nature^ on how far dogs are capable 

of fetichistic notions, 298 n. 
Nausikaa, origin of the myth of, 



Necklace of Swan-maidens, 135. 
Nephele, the children of, correspond 

to the Panis of the Rig-Veda solar 

myth, 264. 
Nessos, the cloud fiend, in ancient 

mythology, 33. 
Nestor, not conceived of by Homer 

as an ordinary mortal, 261. 



344 



INDEX 



New World, mythology of, 206. 
Nibelungen bards and dawn-myths, 

214. 
"Nibelungenlied, the myth which 

serves as the basic of, I 80 ; the 

Wrath of Achilbus in, 2,63 j 

compared with the Iliad, 272. 
Nibelungs correspond to the Panis of 

the Rig- Veda solar myth, 264. 
Niebuhr, B. C., the retentive mem- 
ory of, 246 ; his philological 

^theory, 279. 
Night - and - morning - myths, their 

connection with storm-myths, 

161-164. 

Nightmare, etymology of, 12,6 n. 
Nixies of Flemish legend, 135. See 

Mara. 
Not a Pin to choose between them, 

173 n. 
Jtfoivveau Journal ^tfsiattque on the 

roc in mythology, 68. 
Numa and Egeria, legend of, classed 

among moon-myths, 40. 
Numen, transition from conception 

of human ghost to that of, 321. 
Numerals, loss and change of, in 

barbaric languages, 2-02. 
Nymph, meaning of the word, 

132 n, 

Oberon, and his horn classed among 
wind-myths, 44 ; goblet of, 89* 

Object souls, 313-318, 322,. &e 
Souls. 

Odin, as a psychopomp, 44, 46, 47, 
309 j his golden ship as a cloud, 
66 ; as lord of the gallows, 77 ; 
his lightning spear, 91 5 leader of 
the Pitris in Vedic religion, 1045 
as the ogre of the story of Jack 
and the Bean-Stalk, 108 ; the 
name, how related to God 9 143 5 
characteristic of, retained by the 
Devil, 1 68. 

Odysseus, as the sun, 32, 33, 795 
putting out the eye of Polyphe- 
mos, 7* n. ; and Kalypso, 40, 
41, 151 n., 17*. 



Odyssey, Grote's theory of the struc- 

ture of, 252. See Homeric 

poems. 
Oidipous, 29, 81 5 the story of, as a 

sun-myth, 152-156, 268. 
Oinone as the morning and evening 

light in. ancient mythology, 25, 

154* 
Ointment, tajismanic, has no special 

mythical significance, 74. 
Olaf, Saint, the story of, 1 78, 1 79. 
Olaf Tryggvesson, his sleep as a 

winter-myth, 35. 
Old Aryan, Indo-European languages 

descended from the, 191. 
Old Nick, 169. 
Olger Danske, his sleep as a winter- 

myth, 35. _ 
Oracle possession, 321 5 fasting and, 

321 n. 
Ormuzd, how represented in the 

Zendavesta, 164, 165. 
Orpheus, legend o, as a wind-myth, 

43 5 and the Symplegades, 73 ; 

characteristic of, retained by the 

Devil, 1 68. 
Orthros, a kinsman of Cacus and 

Kerberos, 1 60 5 the Vritra of the 

Rig-Veda, 160. 
Ossa, a cloud mountain, 73. 
Other self, primitive doctrine of, 2965 

in catalepsy, 300 5 in portraits 

and reflections, 301 ; in echoes, 

302; in shadows, 303. See also 

Soul. 
Ovid, story of Lykaon in, 94 ; on 

the myth of "Hercules and Cacus, 

157. 

Oxylos and Hyllos, not historical 
personages, 242. 

Palnatoki, the Danish William Tell, 
4-6; story of, traced to sun-myth, 

3 a * 
Pan, characteristics of, retained by 

the Devil, 168. 
Panch Phul Ranee, Hindu story of, 



Panchatantra, Gellert story in, 9. 



345 



INDEX 



Panis, Sanskrit prototype of Greek 
Paris, 27; and Ahi, 78 ; in die 
Rig-Veda, 160, 163, 164, 264, 
2.67; whether answering to Paris, 
l64n. 5 in the Zendavesta, 1645 
compared with Trolls and Zulu 
cannibals, 225. 

Pansa the Splay-footed, the Tell of 
Norway, 6. 

Panther in the fire-myth of Sioux 
Indians, 84. 

Pardon begged of a slain animal or 
hewn tree, 311-313. 

Paris, Greek form of Sanskrit Panis, 
27, 1 64 n. 5 his part in the Iliad, 
261, 267 5 known in Aryana- 
vaedjo, 2,63 5 invested with at- 
tributes of solar heroes, 263 n., 
268. 

Parkrnan, Francis, on the idea of 
God among the North Ameri- 
can Indians, in Jesuits in North 
America^ 148 n. 

Parvata means both cloud and moun- 
tain, 73 n. 

Patroklos, his part in the Iliad, 
structurally considered, 2-55, 256. 

Paul Pry as a wind-myth, 48. 

Pausanias, his testimony with regard 
to a remote antiquity, of what 
value, 259. 

Peisistratos, Homeric poems said to 
have been arranged under the 
orders of, 245. 

Pelasgian theory, Niebuhr's, 279. 

Pelasgiana in the Homeric poems, 
243. 

Pelion, a cloud mountain, 73. 

Pentateuch, the composition of, 249. 

Permanence in language and culture, 
conditions essential to, 203* 

Perseus, a solar hero, 32, 181, 
268. 

Pereonification, of natural phenom- 
ena, 24, 194, 322, 323 5 of in- 
animate objects, 24, 313-318, 
322. 

Peter Schlemihl belongs to a widely 
diffused family of legends, 303. 



Phaedrus, fahles of, borrowed by 
La Fontaine, 8. 

Phatithon, son of the sun in ancient 
mythology, 25. 

Philip II. . the charge of the murder 
of Elizabeth a misrepresentation, 
30. 

Philology, in connection with my- 
thology, 195200, 204 ; what it 
tells us in regard to civilization, 
202 5 an exacting science, 280. 

Philosopher's stone, 89. 

Phoibos, the sun in ancient mythol- 
ogy, 25 ; Chrysaor, the bolt of, 
315 Lykegenes, meaning of the 
epithet, 96. 

Phoinix, wrongly identified with 
Fetta 9 97. 

Phoroneus as the first man, 88. 

Phrixos and Helle, 180. 

Pictures, animation of, by savages 
and young children, 301. 

Piper of Hamelin, story of, 42; as a 
wind-myth, 42, 43 ; appearance 
of the story in Abyssinia, 43 ; as 
a psychopomp, is followed by rats, 

45- 
Pitris, the, in the Vedic religion, 

103, 104; became elementary 

deities, 320. 
Planchette, its relation to la Jot $cien~ 

Kf<l ue <> 53* 
Plants, symbolic of lightning, 56 
59 ; reasons for the choice of, 
uncertain, 74 ; therapeutic proper- 
ties of, 82 5 as love-charms, 885 
supposed by savages to have souls, 

3^3- 
Plato, on Demametos in the Repu&Ifc, 

95 * 
PHny, his account of springwort, 

59 ; on a snake and ash rod, 83 ; 

on the festival of Zeus Lykaios, 

94. 
Plutarch, his testimony with regard 

to a remote antiquity, of what 

value, 259, 
Polornyia, the cannibalistic beggar of t 

ill. 



346 



INDEX 



Polyidos and Glaukos, Greek story 

of, 82. | 

Polynesian sun-myths, 229. | 

Polyphemos, his eye, as the sun, 
put out by Odysseus, 67, 72 n. 5 j 
the story of, reappears in connec- 
tion with the Devil, 1 70. ! 
Pomeranian myths, schamir in, 60. 
Porta Trigemina, its connection with 
the myth of Hercules and Cacus, 
158. 
Poseidon, uncertainty in regard to, 

* 76 : 

Possession, and primitive doctrine of 
other self, 300 ; demoniacal, 
European theory of, 32,1 ; kinship 
between that of disease and that of 
oracle, 321. 

Pott, A. F., on the Gypsy use of 
the word devil, in Die Zigeuner, 
143 n. 

Prarnantha, or Hindu fire-drill, 87. 

Preller, Ludwig, on Sancua and 
Herakles in Romische Mythologie, 
1 60 n. 

Primeval Ghost-World, The, 283- 

3*3- 

Primeval philosophy and rise of 
myths, 21-28, 194, 289, 291. 
See also Myths. 

Princess Parizade, story of, men- 
tioned, 15. 

Prior, R. C. A. , Popular Names of 
British Plants, 75 n. 

Procopius, De Bella Gothico, 38 n. 

Prometheus, etymologically con- 
nected with the Hindu fire-drill, 
87 ; myths of, 87. 

Pronunciation as throwing light on 
the composition of the Homeric 
poems, 248. 

Propertius on the myth of Hercules 
and Cacus, 157. 

Psalms, the composition of, 249. 

Psychopomp, the wind as a, 43 ; 
symbolized as a dog, 47 ; Odin 
as, 44, 46, 47, 39 5 *** pi P er 
of Hamelin as, 45, 

Puck, his relationship, 141. 



Puncher, the Tell of the Uppef 

Rhine, 6. 
Punchkin, story of, 13, 179; his 

resemblance to the Heartless 

Giant, 215. 

Pururavas and Urvasi, story of, 130. 
Putraka, story of, 17. 
Pythian festivals, passages from the 

Iliad sung at, 247. 

Quetzalcoatl, legend of, 207, 213. 
Quichuas, sun-god of the, 212. 

Rain-myths, 86. 

Rainbow-myths, 205. 

Rakshasa, storm-wind of Hindu 
folk-lore, 105 ; Cacus as, 1 60. 

Ralston, W. R. S., his Krilof and 
his Fables, 10 n. ; his Songs of 
the Russian People, on the raven- 
stone, 60 n. ; on werewolves, 
121 n. ; on feather dresses in folk- 
lore, 135 n. 5 on souls in pigeons 
and swallows, 307 n. 

Rats as disembodied spirits or souls, 
45, 46, 306. 

Raven-stone as rendering its owner 
invisible, 60. 

Reade, Charles, the chark in Newer 
too Late to Mend, 85. 

Red James, story of, 136, 137. 

Red Riding-Hood, true version of, 
105 n. 

Reflections and other self, 302. 

Relics as evidences of the truth ol 
miracles, 2. 

Renan, J. E., his suggestion rela- 
tive to possible discoveries on the 
origin of language, 236 5 his His* 
toire des Langues Semitiques, on 
science and myth-making, 28 n. ; 
on the word Babel, 98 n. 

Retz, Marechal de, homicidal insan- 
ity of, no. 

Reuss, E. W. E. , inTell bibliography, 
326. 

Reville, Albert, on Satan, 166. 

Reynard, story of, as a wind-myth. 



347 



INDEX 



Rhampsinitos, story of, as a wind- 
myth, 48. 

Rhapsodes, Solon's ordinance respect- 
ing, 245. 
Rickard the Rake, story of, 117, 

Rig- Veda. See Veda. 

Riffiet, A., in Tell bibliography, 

3*5- 

Rip Van Winkle, his sleep as a win- 
ter-myth, 35. 

Robin, as representing the storm- 
cloud, 69 ; its connection with 
the god Thor, 69 ; wickedness 
of killing the, 69, 70, 289. 

Roc, the, as the storm-cloud, 68 ; 
egg of, as the sun, 68 ; Euhemer- 
ism and, 68 5 in Chinese my- 
thology, 68 n. ; in Arabic and 
European tradition, 69. 

Roland's blade Durandal a solar 
weapon, 32. 

Romulus, as a solar hero, 268 5 as 
guardian of children, 3 20 n. 

Roulet, Jacques, the case of, 114, 
122. 

Rousseau, J. J., his method of in- 
quiring into the safety of his soul, 

Rumford, Count, his process of ob- 
taining fire by friction, 84. 

Russ, Melchoir, the younger, first 
chronicler of William Tell, 2. 

St. George and the Dragon, tale of, 
found in all Aryan nations, 30 ; 
a sun-myth, 182. 

St. Gertrude, symbolized as a mouse, 
also the receiver of children's souls, 
46. 

St. John's sleep at Ephesus, legend 
of, as a winter-myth, 35. 

St. Theodorus, church of, and Rom- 
ulus, 320 n. 

St. Veronica, handkerchief of, as a 



proof of miracles, 2, 
Saint - worship, Christian, as de- 
veloped from manes - worship, 
320 n, 

348 



Saktideva and the fish, 105 a. 
Samoan moon-myth, 218. 
Samoyeds, Tell legend among the, 

7 S- 

Sancus, the Sabine name of Jupiter, 
159, 1 60 n. 

Sangreal and wish talismans," 89. 

Sarama, the Sanskrit form of the 
Greek Helena, 26, 164 n. 5 in 
the Rig- Veda solar myths, 161, 
163, 265, 2675 meaning of, 
2-67. 

Sarameias, Sanskrit form of Greek 
Hermes, 26, 47, 164 n. ; some- 
times pictured as a dog, 47. 

Saranyu, meaning of, 77 ; detecting 
crime, 283 n. 

Sarpedon, not conceived of by Homer 
as an ordinary mortal, 260, 262 5 
a solar hero, 269. 

Sassafras as a rock-breaking plant, 
58. 

Satan, how related to the Persian 
Ahriman, 165-167 ; in the Book 
of Job and in the later books of 
the Bible, 166, 167. See Devil. 

Saxo Grammaticus, Danish account 
of Tell by, 4-6. 

Scaletta, a passage in the Alps, tradi- 
tion of its name, 98. 

Scandinavians, primitive philosophy 
of, 22 j their tales of elf-maidens 
a form of wind-myth, 43 ; their 
practice of burying their dead in 
boats, 66. 

Scarlet fever, Persian personification 

<>*, 3*3- 

Schamir, as a worm or a stone, 585 
as carried by birds, 59 5 as the 
hand of glory, 60, 76 ; as render- 
ing its possessor invisible, 60 ; 
myths of, explain the rending of 
the thunder-cloud, 63, 162. 

Scherer in Tell bibliography, 326. 



Sclavonic rain-myth, 86. 



Scott, Sir Walter, drew material for 
I'vanhoe from William of Cloudes- 
lee, 6. 

Scribe, A. E., his remark about the 



INDEX 



possible number of dramatic situa- 
tions, 156, 1 80. 

Sculloge of Muskerry, the legend of, 
i 84-1 90. 

Sea, saltness of, explained by a myth, 
90. 

Sea of Streams of Story, mentioned, 
17. 

Seal-women, 136. 

Sebastian of Portugal, 35. 

Selene, and Endymion, 219 5 a more 
recent personification than Artemis 
and Persephone, 268. 

Seminoles, their idea of breath as the 
soul, 305. 

Serpent in Eden, the story of, is 
Aryan, 166 ; not alluded to in 
Old Testament, 1 66; identified 
with Satan in modern theology 
only, 1 6 6. 

Serpents, lightning as, 69. 

Sesame, its talismanic power, 571. 

Sesha used as a rope around Mount 
Mandara, 85. 

Seven, number, as connected with 
the adoration of the sun, moon 
and five planets, 217. 

Seven Sleepers of Ephesus, as a win- 
ter-myth, 35. 

Seyf-el-Mulook and Bedeea-el-Jemal, 
story of, 14 n. 

Shadow, as soul or other self, 303, 
3x8. 

Shakespeare, William, his myth of 
the Man in the Moon, 36 ; 
miraculous fern-seed in his King 
Henry IV., 60 n. ; his Hamlet 
originally the story of the quar- 
rel between summer and winter, 
2*63 n. 

Shotover, corruption of Chateau 
Vert, 98. 

Siberian swan-maiden-myth, 221. 

Siegfried, as a sun-myth, 33 ; his 
slumber as a winter-myth, 345 
a personification of physical phe- 
nomena, 272. 

Sieve of the daughters of Danaos, 
66. 



Signature, old medical doctrine of, 

Sigurd, sword of, a solar weapon, 
32 5 slain by winter as a thorn, 
34 $ the tale of, and that of Her- 
cules and Cacus, resemblance be- 
tween, 1 80, 181. 

Simoon, Moslem personification of, 

.3*3- 

Simrock, Karl, on the Hamlet- 
myth, in Die gjueHen des Shake- 
ipeare, 263 n. 

Sindbad, tale of, 68. 

Sioux Indians, their fire-myth corre- 
sponds with Aryan lightning-myth, 

Sirens, Greek, legend of, as a wind- 
^ myth, 43. 

Sisyphos, stone of, as the sun, 67. 

Skin- changers, a name for were- 
wolves, 121. 

Skithblathnir, the cloud -ship of 
Freyr, 67 n. 

Sky, as revealed by science, 63 ; 
children's idea of, 64, 65 5 an- 
cient Jewish idea of, 65 j Greek 
idea of, 66 j as a sea, 66, 131 ; 
starry, as a valley of diamonds, 
68. 

Skye-terrier and ball, 297. 

Sleeping Beauty as a winter-myth in 
ancient mythology, 34, 

Smith, Sir William, Dictionary of 
the Bible, 98 n. 

Snakes, their avoidance of the ash, 
83, 

Snow, German myth of, 65 n. 

Solar myth in early times a type of 
all myths, 272. See Sun-myths. 

Solomon and the schamir, 58. 

Solon, inference drawn from his 
ordinance respecting rhapsodes, 
245 ; edicts of, 247. 

Soma as life-imparting deity, 88 n. 

Soma-juice, reason of its sacredness, 
321 n. 

Somadeva Bhatta, his Sea of Streams 
of Story on tale of Putraka, 17 ; 
on Saktideva and the fish, 105 a. 



349 



INDEX 



Somnambulism and other self, 301. 

Song of Sixpence, interpretation of, 
287. 

Sophocles, E. A., the retentive 
memory of, 246* 

Souls, symbolized by rats, 45, 46, 
306 5 as quitting the body during 
lifetime, 303, 304 5 as shadows, 
303, 3135 as breath, 3045 as 
temporarily embodied in birds or 
beasts, 306-3085 as resembling 
bodies, 308-310 ; as killed over 
again, 3105 of beasts, 311 j of 
plants, 3ia; of inanimate ob- 
jects, 04 n., 313, 318, 322. 

Sourisy derivation of the two French 
words, 197. 

South African werewolf-myth, 2x2. 

Spencer, Herbert, on metempsychosis 
and ancestor - worship, in Tk& 
Origin of Animal WorsMfa loi, 
loan., 1 06, 296 n. 5 his Recent 
Discussions in Science^ 102 n. 5 
on the animation of pictures, 
301. 

Spenser, Edmund, story of Sir Guyon 
in his Faery S^ueen^ 81 n. 

Spentomainyas in the Zendavesta, 
165. 

Sphinx, as the thunder-cloud, SI I j 
in the Oidipous sun-myth, 153- 

*55- 

Spirits, doctrine of, 304-318 ; peo- 
pling of natural phenomena with, 
318. See also Souls. 

Spiritualism and belief in wraiths, 
308. 

Spoon, dancing, 3 14 n. 

Springwort, its power to cleave rock 
in lightning-myths, 59, 74. 

Stars, nature of, as explained by 
science and ancient mythology, 
29 j in the Vedic religion, 103 5 
German and English superstitions 
with regard to, 104. 

Stauffecher, his feme less wide than 
William TeH's, I. 

Storm-cloud as a bird, 59, 69. 

Storm-myths* thgir connection with 



night and-moming-myths, 1 6 i 
164. 

Sun, suggested the earliest conception 
of a Divine Power, 147 ; Aryan 
personifications and conceptions 
of, 25. 149-1 56* 

Sun-myths, Aryan folk-lore tales as, 
1-31 ; in ancient mythology, I, 
31-33, 67; incongruity in, 72 ; 
their great variety, 150156, 
180182; why they are so nu- 
merous, 184 ; appear in all coun- 
tries, 205 ; Barbaric, 208-215, 
229, 231 5 the Iliad-myth as, 
263-266. 

Sunset clouds as representing hell to 
childish and barbaric minds, 64. 

Superstitions, interpretation of, diffi- 
cult, vii $ of our primitive ances- 
tors, 22, 23. 

Surya, the same as Helios, 1 64 n. 

Suttee, not sustained by Vedic au- 
thority, 315; found among Euro- 
pean Aryans, 316; remarkable 
case of, in England, 316. 

Swan, Charles, translator. See Gesta 
Romanorum. 

Swan-maidens, and their dress, 1 34, 
1 3 5 ; compared with werewolves, 
139 ; originally, the clouds, 189 j 
barbaric myths of, 220-222. 

Swearing, objection to, traced to its 
source, 301 n. 

Swiss, cicerone class of, I. 

Symplegades, as cloud mountains, 
73 ; as the gates of night, 73 n. 

Table-tipping and fat set 

S3- 

Tahitian language, loss and change 
of numerals in, 202. 

Taine, H. A., his De P Intelligence 
on Dr. Lazarus, 53 n. ; on were- 
wolves, 121 n. 

Tannhauser, story of, 38 ; in the 
German moon-myths, 38, 41 j 
recurs in the folk-lore of all Aryaa 
nations, 40. 

Tantalos, the legend of, 100. 



350 



INDEX 



Tartars, Minussinlan, swan-maiden- 
myths of, aaa. 

Tawiskara, legend of, an. 

Taylor, Isaac, Words and Places, on 
derivation of Beth-Gellert, 9 n. 5 
on the Antwerp legend, 98 n. 

Tell, William, story of, a myth, i~8, 
ao ; details of no two accounts 
agree, 3 ; first authors to doubt 
the story, 3 5 the Danish account 
of, 4 5 account appears in various 
nations, 6 j known to Aryans 
while in central Asia, 7 ; a solar 
myth, 31, 323. 

Tells, sleep of the three, a winter- 
myth, 34. 

Thalamus, Gladstone on, a 79. 

Themis, Gladstone's derivation of, 
a 7 8. 

Theopompos on the date of Homer, 
a4i. 

Thomas of Erceldoune corresponds 
to the Tannhauser legend, 40. 

Thor, as the storm-god of ancient 
mythology, a 5 ; as patron of 
marriage, 88 5 imitated by the 
Devil, 1 6 8. 

Thorpe, Benjamin, his Analecta 
dinglQ-Saxonica,) 64 n. j his North- 
ern Mythology, a 3 ; on were- 
wolves, laa 5 on the cat-woman, 
ia5 n. ; on seal-woman, 136 n. j 
on the hand of glory, 61 ; on the 
Devil, J 7 a n., 173 n. 

Three Princesses of Whiteland, tale 
of, 17. 

Three Snake Leaves, tale of the, 8a. 

Thukydides, his testimony with re- 
gard to a remote antiquity, of what 
value, 259. 

Thunder, North German myth of, 
65 n. 

Thunder-storm as explained by sci- 
ence and by ancient mythology, 
29. 

Thursday as day of the fire-god, 
88. 

Tithonos, place of the story of, 
among myths, 36. 



Tom of Coventry as a wind-mytJi 
48. 

Tom Thumb and the cow, 105 n. 

Torquernada on the talismanic hand 
among Mexican thieves, 6a. 

Tortoise - myths, Hindu, o^a 5 
American Indian, a3a 

Totemism connected with the feel- 
ing of metempsychosis, 102, 106. 

Trances, fetichism in, 300. 

Trefoil, yellow, as a love-charm, 
89 n. 

Tristram, goblet of, 89. 

Trojan War, Greek and Sanskrit 
version compared, 27 ; elements 
of the myth found in the Vedas, 
a7, 30, a 63 5 the evidence for, 
a6o j how far a sun-myth, 263 n.; 
how far a genuine tradition, aSg 
a74* 

Trolls, I75-I79, aS- 

True and Untrue, American parallel 
of the brothers, an n. 

Trypanon, the Greek name for fire- 
drill, 87. 

Tuesday, etymology of, 146. 

Turn-coats a name for werewolves, 
iai. 

Twelve, derivation of, 196 j the 
Genesis of Language on, 196 n. 

Tylor, E. B., prefatory remark on, 
vii 5 on Hessian superstition, a93 ; 
on personification of names, 301 n. j 
on other self, 303 j on breath as 
soul, 305 ; on the soul embodied 
in animals, 3065 on metempsy- 
chosis among the Malays, 314^ j 
on funeral ceremonies and object- 
souls, 317; his Early History of 
Mankind, 183 n. ; on an Esqui- 
maux moon-myth, aao j on an 
American sun-myth, a 31 j his 
Primitive Culture praised, a84, 
a88 ; on barbaric idea of the sky, 
64 n. j on lightning-myths, 70 n. , 
88 n. 5 on the chark, 85 n. ; on 
the Hindu practice of self-immo- 
lation, ioa n* j od Red Riding- 
Hood, 105 n. j on cat-woman, 



3S 1 



INDEX 



1*5 n. 5 on tibe word nightmare % 
12,6 n. ; on the word devil * 143 
n. ; on Ra Vub and Ra Kalavo, 
219 ; on Kamtchatkan lightning- 
myth, 229. 

Typhon, characteristics of, retained 
by the Devil, 168. 

Tyrolese, their idea of breath as the 
soul, 305. 

Undine, story of, degraded by Chris- 
tianity, 133; origin of the myth 
of, 139. 

Unkulunkulu, the Great Father of 
the Zulus, 310. 

Urban, Pope, and Tannhauser, 
40. 

Ursula, and the eleven thousand vir- 
gins, as a German moon-myth, 
38 ; In Christian mediaeval mythol- 
ogy, 38 ; as Venus m the legend 
of Tannhauser, 38, 41. 

Urvaai, story of, 1305 as a dawn- 
nyrpph and as a bird, 131. 

Usilosimapundu in Zulu legend, 2,34. 

Utahagi, legend of, 220. 

Uthlakanyana, legend of, 225. 

Valhalla and Odin's golden ship, 66. 

Valkyries, as clouds hovering over 
the battlefields, 25, 180 ; identi- 
cal with the Hindu Apsaras, 139 ; 
related to the Mussulman Houris, 

139- 

Van Diemen*s Land, the home of 
ghosts, 38 n. 

Varuna, or the sky, the Sanskrit 
form of the Greek Ouranos, 67 ; 
contradiction in the Aryan con- 
ception of, 149 5 a personification 
of light and warmth, 149. 

Vasilissa the Beautiful, Russian story 
of, 105 n. 

Veda, mythology 0^23 ; names of 
gods and heroes in,* 26 j the Indra- 
story in, 160, 161, 163 ; divini- 
ties of, identified with Western gods 
and heroes, 1915 the story of the 
Wrath of AcMlleus in, 263-266 5 



records the mental life of the 
"youth of the world,** 267. 

Vedas, the composition of, 249. 

Venus as rising from the sea, 33. 

Venusberg, legend of the, 38. 

Versipellis, the Roman name for 
werewolf, 121. 

Villemarque, J. H., Viscount de la, 
his Bar^as Brem on Van Die- 
men's Land, the home of ghosts, 
38 n. 

Viracocha, legend of, 212 $ deriva- 
tion of the word, 212. 

Virgil, on the etymology of the word 
Latium, in the ^Eneid, 99 n. ; 
on the myth of Hercules and 
Cacus, 157, 1 60. 

Vischer, W., in Tell bibliography, 
325. 

Vishnu in tortoise-myth, 233. 

Vittikab, 1 68. 

Vivasvat, as the sun, in the, Rig- 
Veda, 149. 

Vivien and Merlin, 35. 

Vocabularies, comparing of, 196, 
199, 204. 

Volsunga Saga, 1 80. 

Vollmer, W., on Sancus, in Mytho- 
logie, 1 60 n. 

Vowel changes in rekted languages, 

199". 
Vritra, in the Rig- Veda, 160, 161, 

163 ; the name generalized, 164 ; 

characteristics of, retained by the 

Devil, 1 68 ; and Indra, 194. 
Vulcan is Wayland the Smith of 

Norse mythology, 6. 

Walnamoinen, Finnish, classed among 

wind-myths, 44. 
Wakefulness, eternal, myths of, 

36. 
Wallace, A. R,, on Malay belief 

that men can be transformed into 

crocodiles, 222 n. 
Wandering Jew, legend of, its place 

among myths, 36 ; the curse in 

the legend of, 155 n. 
Water of life, 86. 



352 



INDEX 



Waterspout, Arabian personification 
of, 322. 

Wayland the Smith, the Norse Vul- 
can, 6. 

Weber, Albrecht, on the Mara, in 
Indhche Studien, 131 n. 

Welcker, F. G., his Griechhche 
Gotterhhre, 169 n. 

Werewolf, etymology and meaning 
of the term, 95 ; called by the 
ancient Romans versipellis, 12,1 ; 
theories of the method of change 
from man to wolf, 12-1-123 5 
accidents accompanying change, 
123, 124 ; how cured, 125 ; 
originally, the night-wind and a 
psychopomp, 139 ; compared with 
the swan-maiden, 139; the an- 
cestor of the death-dog, 139. 

Werewolves, and Swan-maidens, 
94-14,0 ; belief in, in ancient, 
medieval, and modern times, 23, 
95 ; presents mixture of mythical 
and historical elements, 965 Cox's 
explanation of the origin of, un- 
satisfactory, 96, loo, 120; real 
origin of, connected with ancestor- 
worship and doctrine of metem- 
psychosis, 105-107, 120, 306 5 
and witchcraft, 107; historical 
development of, 1 07-1 1 6, 119; 
summary of the explanation of the 
origin and development of, 119, 
1 20 j in barbaric myths, 222- 
224. See Lycanthropy. 

Wesleyan peasants* belief in angels 
piping to children, a form of wind- 
myth, 43. 

White Bear that marries the young 
girl, story of, 133. 

White-thorn, as a lightning-tree, 
74 j formed Roman wedding 
torches, 88. 

Wild Huntsman, story of, its place 
among myths, 36. 

Wilkinson, J. T., his Lancashire 
Folk"Lore 9 on lore-charms, 89 n. ; 
on a witch of Lancashire, 306. 

William of Cloudeslee, the Tell of 



England, 6 ; traced to sun-myth, 
32. 

Williams, Howard, on werewolves, 
in Superstitions of Witchcraft^ 
125 n. 

Williams, Sir Monier Monier-, on 
Trolls, in Indian Epic Poetry, 
176 n. 

Wilson, H. H., on Hindu rite of 
suttee, 315. 

Wind-and-Weather, the story of, 
178, 179.^ 

Wind, as musk, 42, 43 ; as psycho- 
pomp, 43-47 ; as elf-maiden, 
43 5 in Hindu folk-lore, 105 5 
the original of the werewolf, 139, 

? 23 ' 
Wind-myths in ancient mythology, 

41-48. 

Winter-myths, 33-36. 

Winterthur, John of, does not men- 
tion Tell in his account of the 
Swiss revolution, 3. 

Wish-bone as a talisman, 75 n. 

Wisb^hound of Hermes, 104. 

Witchcraft and the belief in were- 
wolves, 107, 108. 

Wolf, J. W., on the Mara, in 
Edtrage %ur deutschen Mytkolo" 
gie, 131 n. 

Wolf-girdles used by werewolves, 
122, 123. 

Wolfian hypothesis of the composi- 
tion of the Homeric poems, 245 
256. 

Wolfskins used to change men into 
wolves, 122. 

Wolves, superstitions with regard to, 
105. 

Wraiths, philosophy of, 308. 

Wrath of Achilleus, considered as a 
structural part of the Iliad, 2,52 
256 ; known in Aryana-vaedjo, 
263 ; in the Veda, the Iliad, and 
the Nibelungenlied, 263. 

Wren, as representing the storm- 
cloud, 69. 

Xenophon cites cases of Athenians 



353 



INDEX 



who could repeat Iliad and Odyssey 
verbatim, 347. 

XimeneSj Cardinal, and Ms bonfire 
of books, 247. 

Yama in the Vedlc religion, 103. 
Yellow hair of the Greek heroes, 

*73* 
Yggdrasil, the ash-tree, first man 

made from, in Norse mythology, 

88. 
Youth of the World, as the title of 

Gladstone's work, 35, 236 ; 

may be applied to the Homeric 

age, 238 5 is the period at which 

literature begins, 238, 2-39 as 



applied to the time of the Aryan 
forefathers, 267. 

Zendavesta, the myth of Hercules 
and Cacus in, 164, 165. 

Zeus, etymology of, 26, 145, 146, 
267 ; his slumber on Mount Ida 
a moon-myth, 41 ; derivation .of 
the word forgotten by the Greeks, 
71 ; Lykaios, rites at the festival 
of, 94. 

Zio, etymology of, 146. 

Zulus, their cannibal myths, 234 
228 ; their ideas of dreams, 295 5 
their Great Father, 319. 

Zurich, TelFs cross-bow at, a. 



THE END 




1 36 977